The
Dead Zone
Stephen
King
PROLOGUE
1.
By the time he
graduated from college, John Smith had forgotten all about the bad fall he took
on the ice that January day in 1953. In fact, he would have been hard put to remember
it by the time he graduated from grammar school. And his mother and father
never knew about it at all.
They were skating
on a cleared patch of Runaround Pond in Durham. The bigger boys were playing
hockey with old taped sticks and using a couple of potato baskets for goals.
The little kids were just farting around the way little kids have done since
time immemorial—their ankles bowing comically in and out, their breath puffing
in the frosty twenty-degree air. At one corner of the cleared ice two rubber
tires burned sootily, and a few parents sat nearby, watching their children.
The age of the snowmobile was still distant and winter fun still consisted of
exercising your body rather than a gasoline engine.
Johnny had walked
down from his house, just over the Pownal line, with his skates hung over his
shoulder. At six, he was a pretty fair skater. Not good enough to join in the
big kids” hockey games yet, but able to skate rings around most of the other
first graders, who were always pinwheeling their arms for balance or sprawling
on their butts.
Now he skated
slowly around the outer edge of the clear patch, wishing he could go backward
like Timmy Benedix, listening to the ice thud and crackle mysteriously under
the snow cover farther out, also listening to the shouts of the hockey players,
the rumble of a pulp truck crossing the bridge on its way to U. S. Gypsum in
Lisbon Falls, the murmur of conversation from the adults. He was very glad to
be alive on that cold, fair winter day. Nothing was wrong with him, nothing
troubled his mind, he wanted nothing... except to be able to skate backward,
like Timmy Benedix.
He skated past
the fire and saw that two or three of the grown-ups were passing around a
bottle of booze.
“Gimme some of
that!” he shouted to Chuck Spier. who was bundled up in a big lumberjack shirt
and green flannel snowpants.
Chuck grinned at
him. “Get outta here, kid. I hear your mother callin you.”
Grinning,
six-year old Johnny Smith skated on. And on the road side of the skating area,
he saw Timmy Benedix himself coming down the slope, with his father behind him.
“Timmy!” he
shouted. “Watch this!”
He turned around
and began to skate clumsily backward. Without realising it, he was skating into
the area of the hockey game.
“Hey kid!”
someone shouted. “Get out the way!” Johnny didn't hear. He was doing it I He
was skating backward! He had caught the rhythm—all at once. It was in a kind of
sway of the legs...
He looked down,
fascinated, to see what his legs were doing.
The big kids”
hockey puck, old and scarred and gouged around the edges, buzzed past him,
unseen. One of the big kids, not a very good skater, was chasing it with what
was almost a blind, headlong plunge.
Chuck Spier saw
it coming. He rose to his feet and shouted, “Johnny! Watch out!”
John raised his
head—and the next moment the dumsy skater, all one hundred and sixty pounds of
him, crashed into little John Smith at full speed.
Johnny went
flying, arms out. A bare moment later his head connected with the ice and he
blacked out.
Blacked out...
black i. e... blacked out -.. black ice black. Black.
They told him he
had blacked out. All he was really sure of was that strange repeating thought
and suddenly looking up at a circle of faces—scared hockey players, worried
adults, curious little kids. Timmy Benedix smirking. Chuck Spier was holding
him—
Black ice. Black.
“What?” Chuck
asked. “Johnny... you okay? You took a hell of a knock.”
“Black,” Johnny
said gutturally. “Black ice. Don't jump it no more, Chuck.”
Chuck looked
around, a little scared, then back at Johnny. He touched the large knot that
was rising on the boy's forehead.
“I'm sorry,” the
clumsey hockey player said. “I never even saw him. Little kids are supposed to stay
away from the hockey. It's the rules. “He looked around uncertainly for
support.
“Johnny?” Chuck
said. He didn't like the look of Johnny's eyes. They were dark and faraway,
distant and cold. “Are you okay?”
“Don't jump it no
more,” Johnny said, unaware of what he was saying, thinking only of ice—black
ice. “The explosion. The acid.”
“Think we ought
to take him to the doctor?” Chuck asked Bill Gendron. “He don't know what he's
sayin?
“Give him a
minute,” Bill advised.
They gave him a
minute, and Johnny's head did clear. “I'm okay,” he muttered. “Lemme up. “Timmy
Benedix was still smirking, damn him, Johnny decided he would show Timmy a
thing or two. He would be skating rings around Timmy by the end of the week...
backward and forward.
“You come on over
and sit down by the fire for a while,” Chuck said. “You took a hell of a
knock.”
Johnny let them
help him over to the fire. The smell of melting rubber was strong and
pungent—making him feel a little sick to his stomach. He had a headache. He
felt the lump over his left eye curiously. It felt as though it stuck out a
mile.
“Can you remember
who you are and everything?” Bill asked.
“Sure. Sure I
can. I'm okay.”
“Who's your dad
and mom?”
“Herb and Vera
Herb and Vera Smith.”
Bill and Chuck
looked at each other and shrugged.
“I think he's
okay,” Chuck said, and then; for the third time, “but he sure took a hell of a
knock, didn't he? Wow.”
“Kids,” Bill
said, looking fondly out at his eight year old twin girls, skating hand in
hand, and then back at Johnny. “It probably would have killed a grown-up.
“Not a Polack,”
Chuck replied, and they both burst out laughing. The bottle of Bushmill's began
making its rounds again.
Ten minutes later
Johnny was back out on the ice, his headache already fading, the knotted bruise
standing out on his forehead like a weird brand. By the time he went home for
lunch, he had forgotten all about the fall, and blacking out, in the joy of
having discovered how to skate backward.
“God's mercy!”
Vera Smith said when she saw him. “How did you get that?”
“Fell down,” he
said, and began to slurp up Campbell's tomato soup.
“Are you all
right, John?” she asked, touching it gently. “Sure, Mom. “He was, too except
for the occasional bad dreams that came over the course of the next month or
so... the bad dreams and a tendency to sometimes get very dozy at times of the
day when he had never been dozy before. And that stopped happening at about the
same time the bad dreams stopped happening.
He was all right.
In mid-February,
Chuck Spier got up one morning and found that the battery of his old “48 De
Soto was dead. He tried to jump it from his farm truck. As he attached the
second damp to the De Soto's battery, it exploded in his face, showering him
with fragments and corrosive battery acid. He lost an eye. Vera said it was
God's own mercy he hadn't lost them both. Johnny thought it was a terrible
tragedy and went with his father to visit Chuck in the Lewiston General
Hospital a week after the accident. The sight of Big Chuck lying in that
hospital bed, looking oddly wasted and small, had shaken Johnny badly—and that
night he had dreamed it was him lying there.
From time to time
in the years afterward, Johnny had hunches—he would know what the next record
on the radio was going to be before the DJ played it, that sort of thing—but he
never connected these with his accident on the ice. By then he had forgotten
it.
And the hunches
were never that startling, or even very frequent. It was not until the night of
the county fair and the mask that anything very startling happened. Before the
second accident.
Later, he thought
of that often.
The thing with
the Wheel of Fortune had happened before the second accident.
Like a warning
from his own childhood
2.
The travelling salesman
crisscrossed Nebraska and Iowa tirelessly under the burning sun in that summer
of 1955. He sat behind the wheel of a “53 Mercury sedan that already had better
than seventy thousand miles on it. The Merc was developing a marked wheeze in
the valves. He was a big man who still had the look of a cornfed mid-western
boy on him; in that summer of 1955, only four months after his Omaha
house-painting business had gone broke, Greg Stilison was only twenty-two years
old.
The trunk and the
back seat of the Mercury were filled with cartons, and the cartons were filled
with books. Most of them were Bibles. They came in all shapes and sizes. There
was your basic item, The American Truth-Way Bible, illustrated with sixteen
color plates, bound with airplane glue, for $i . 69 and sure to hold together
for at least ten months; then for the poorer pocketbook there was The American
TruthWay New Testament for sixty-five cents, with no color plates but with the
words of Our Lord Jesus printed in red; and for the big spender there was The
American TruthWay Deluxe Word of God for $19. 95, bound in imitation white
leather, the owner's name to be stenciled in gold leaf on the front cover,
twenty-four color plates, and a section in the middle to note down births,
marriages, and burials. And the Deluxe Word of God might remain in one piece
for as long as two years. There was also a carton of paperbacks entitled
America the Truth Way: The Communist-Jewish Conspiracy Against Our United
States.
Greg did better
with this paperback, printed on cheap pulp stock, than with all the Bibles put
together. It told all about how the Rothschilds and the Roosevelts and the
Greenblatts were taking over the U. S. economy and the U. S. government. There
were graphs showing how the Jews related directly to the
Communist-Marxist-Leninist-Trotskyite axis, and from there to the Antichrist
Itself.
The days of
McCarthyism were not long over in Washington; in the Midwest Joe McCarthy's
star had not yet set, and Margaret Chase Smith of Maine was known as “that
bitch” for her famous Declaration of Conscience. In addition to the stuff about
Communism, Greg Stillson's rural farm constituency seemed to have a morbid
interest in the idea that the Jews were running the world.
Now Greg turned
into the dusty driveway of a farm-house some twenty miles west of Ames, Iowa.
It had a deserted, shut-up look to it—the shades down and the barn doors
closed—but you could never tell until you tried. That motto had served Greg
Stillson well in the two years or so since he and his mother had moved up to
Omaha from Oklahoma. The house-painting business had been no great shakes, but
he had needed to get the taste of Jesus out of his mouth for a little while,
you should pardon the small blasphemy. But now he had come back home—not on the
pulpit or revival side this time, though, and it was something of a relief to
be out of the miracle business at last.
He opened the car
door and as he stepped out into the dust of the driveway a big mean farm dog
advanced out of the barn, its ears laid back. It volleyed barks. “Hello,
pooch,” Greg said in his low, pleasant, but carrying voice—at twenty-two it was
already the voice of a trained spellbinder.
The pooch didn't
respond to the friendliness in his voice. It kept coming, big and mean, intent
on an early lunch of traveling salesman. Greg sat back down in the car, closed
the door, and honked the horn twice. Sweat rolled down his face and turned his
white linen suit darker gray in circular patches under his arms and in a
branching tree-shape up his back. He honked again, but there was no response.
The clodhoppers had loaded themselves into their International Harvester or
their Stud~ baker and gone into town.
Greg smiled.
Instead of
shifting into reverse and backing out of the driveway, he reached behind him
and produced a Flit gun—only this one was loaded with ammonia instead of Flit.
Pulling back the
plunger, Greg stepped out of the car again, smiling easily. The dog, which had
settled down on its haunches, immediately got up again and began to advance on
him, growling.
Greg kept
smiling. “That's right, poochie,” he said in that pleasant, carrying voice.
“You just come on. Come on and get it. “He hated these ugly farm dogs that ran
their half-acre of dooryard like arrogant little Caesars, they told you
something about their masters as well.
“Fucking bunch of
clodhoppers,” he said under his breath. He was still smiling. “Come on,
doggie.”
The dog came. It
tensed its haunches down to spring at him. In the barn a cow mooed, and the
wind rustled tenderly through the corn. As it leaped, Greg's smile turned to a
hard and bitter grimace. He depressed the Flit plunger and sprayed a stinging
cloud of ammonia drops lets directly into the dog's eyes and nose.
Its angry barking
turned immediately to short, agonized yips, and then, as the bite of ammonia
really settled in, to howls of pain. It turned tail at once, a watchdog no
longer but only a vanquished cur.
Greg Stilison's
face had darkened. His eyes had drawn down to ugly slits. He stepped forward
rapidly and ad-ministered a whistling kick to the dog's haunches with one of
his Stride-King airtip shoes. The dog gave a high, wailing sound, and, driven
by its pain and fear, it sealed its own doom by turning around to give battle
to the author of its misery rather than running for the barn.
With a snarl, it
struck out blindly, snagged the right cuff of Greg's white linen pants, and
tore it.
“You
sonofabitch!” he cried out in startled anger, and kicked the dog again, this
time hard enough to send it rolling in the dust. He advanced on the dog once
more, kicked it again, still yelling. Now the dog; eyes watering, nose in fiery
agony, one rib broken and another badly sprung, realized its danger from this
madman, but it was too late.
Greg Stillson
chased it across the dusty farmyard, panting and shouting, sweat rolling down
his cheeks, and kicked the dog until it was screaming and barely able to drag
itself along through the dust. It was bleeding in half a dozen places. It was
dying.
“Shouldn't have
bit me,” Greg whispered. “You hear? You hear me? You shouldn't have bit me, you
dipshit dog. No one gets in my way. You hear? No one. “He delivered another
kick with one blood-spattered airtip, but the dog could do no more than make a
low choking sound. Not much satisfaction in that. Greg's head ached. It was the
sun. Chasing the dog around in the hot sun. Be lucky not to pass out.
He closed his
eyes for a moment, breathing rapidly, the sweat rolling down his face like
tears and nestling in his crewcut like gems, the broken dog dying at his feet.
Colored specks of light, pulsing in rhythm with his heartbeat, floated across
the darkness behind his lids.
His head ached.
Sometimes he
wondered if he was going crazy. Like now. He had meant to give the dog a burst
from the ammonia Flit gun, drive it back into the barn so he could leave his
business card in the crack of the screen door.
Come back some
other time and make a sale. Now look. Look at this mess. Couldn't very well
leave his card now, could he?
He opened his
eyes. The dog lay at his feet, panting rapidly, drizzling blood from its snout.
As Greg Stillson looked down, it licked his shoe humbly, as if to acknowledge
that it had been bested, and then it went back to the business of dying.
“Shouldn't have
torn my pants,” he said to it. “Pants cost me five bucks, you shitpoke dog.”
He had to get out
of here. Wouldn't do him any good if Clem Kadiddlehopper and his wife and their
six kids came back from town now in their Studebaker and saw Fido dying out
here with the bad old salesman standing over him. He'd lose his job. The
American TruthWay Company didn't hire salesmen who killed dogs that be-longed
to Christians.
Giggling
nervously, Greg went back to the Mercury, got in, and backed rapidly out of the
driveway. He turned east on the dirt road that ran straight as a string through
the corn, and was soon cruising along at sixty-five leaving a dust plume two
miles long behind him.
He most assuredly
didn't want to lose the job. Not yet. He was making good money—in addition to the
wrinkles the American TruthWay Company knew about, Greg had added a few of his
own that they didn't know about. He was making it now. Besides, traveling
around, he got to meet a lot of people... a lot of girls. It was a good life,
except -Except he wasn't content.
He drove on, his
head throbbing. No, he just wasn't content. He felt that he was meant for
bigger things than driving around the Midwest and selling Bibles and doctoring
the commission forms in order to make an extra two bucks a day. He felt that he
was meant for .. . for... .
For greatness.
Yes, that was it,
that was surely it. A few weeks ago he had taken some girl up in the hayloft,
her folks had been in Davenport selling a truckload of chickens, she had
started off by asking if he would like a glass of lemonade and one thing had
just led to another and after he'd had her she said it was almost like getting
diddled by a preacher and he had slapped her, he didn't know why. He had
slapped her and then left.
Well, no.
Actually, he had
slapped her three or four times. Until she had cried and screamed for someone
to come and help her and then he had stopped and somehow—he had had to use
every ounce of the charm God had given him—he had made it up with her. His head
had been aching then, too, the pulsing specks of brightness shooting and
caroming across his field of vision, and he tried to tell himself it was the
heat, the explosive heat in the hayloft, but it wasn't just the heat that made
his head ache. It was the same thing he had felt in the dooryard when the dog
tore his pants, something dark and crazy.
“I'm not crazy,”
he said aloud in the car. He unrolled the window swiftly, letting in summer
heat and the smell of dust and corn and manure. He turned on the radio loud and
caught a Patti Page song. His headache went back a little bit.
It was all a
matter of keeping yourself under control and—and keeping your record dean. If
you did those things, they couldn't touch you. And he was getting better at
both of those things. He no longer had the dreams about his father so often,
the dreams where his father was standing above him with his hard hat cocked
back on his head, bellowing: “You're no good, runt! You're no fucking good!”
He didn't have
the dreams so much because they just weren't true. He wasn't a runt anymore.
Okay, he had been sick a lot as a kid, not much size, but he had gotten his
growth, he was taking care. of his mother -And his father was dead. His father
couldn't see. He couldn't make his father eat his words because he had died in
an oil-derrick blowout and he was dead and once, just once, Greg would like to
dig him up and scream into his mouldering face You were wrong, dad, you were
wrong about me! and then give him a good kick the way -The way he had kicked
the dog.
The headache was
back, lowering.
“I'm not crazy,”
he said again below the sound of the music. His mother had told him often he
was meant for something big, something great, and Greg believed it. It was just
a matter of getting things—like slapping the girl or kicking the dog—under
control and keeping his record dean.
Whatever his
greatness was, he would know it when it came to him. Of that he felt quite
sure.
He thought of the
dog again, and this time the thought brought a bare crescent of a smile,
without humor or compassion.
His greatness was
on the way. It might still be years ahead—he was young, sure, nothing wrong
with being young as long as you understood you couldn't have everything all at
once. As long as you believed it would come eventually. He did believe that.
And God and Sonny
Jesus help anyone that got in his way.
Greg Stillson
cocked a sunburned elbow out the window and began to whistle along with the
radio. He stepped on the go-pedal, walked that old Mercury up to seventy, and
rolled down the straight Iowa farm road to-ward whatever future there might be.
PART ONE
The Wheel of
Fortune
CHAPTER ONE
The two things
Sarah remembered about that night later were his run of luck at the Wheel of
Fortune and the mask. But as time passed, years of it, it was the mask she
thought about—when she could bring herself to think about that horrible night
at all.
He lived in an
apartment house in Cleaves Mills. Sarah got there at quarter to eight, parking
around the corner, and buzzing up to be let in. They were taking her car tonight
because Johnny's was laid up at Tibbets” Garage in Hampden with a frozen wheel
bearing or something like that. Something expensive, Johnny had told her over
the phone, and then he had laughed a typical Johnny Smith laugh. Sarah would
have been in tears if it had been her car—her pocketbook.
Sarah went
through the foyer to the stairs, past the bulletin board that hung there. It
was dotted with file cards advertising motorbikes, stereo components, typing
services, and appeals from people who needed rides to Kansas or California,
people who were driving to Florida and needed riders to share the driving and
help pay for the gas. But tonight the board was dominated by a large placard
showing a clenched fist against an angry red back-ground suggesting fire. The
one word on the poster was STRIKE! It was late October of 1970.
Johnny had the
front apartment on the second floor -the penthouse, he called it—where you
could stand in your tux like Ramon Navarro, a big slug of Ripple wine in a
balloon glass, and look down upon the vast, beating heart of Cleaves Mills; its
hurrying after-show crowds, its bustling taxis, its neon signs. There are
almost seven thousand stories in the naked city. This has been one of them.
Actually Cleaves
Mills was mostly a main street with a stop and go light at the intersection (it
turned into a blinker after 6 P. M.), about two dozen stores, and a small
moccasin factory. Like most of the towns surrounding Orono, where the
University of Maine was, its real industry was supplying the things students
consumed -beer, wine, gas, rock “n” roll music, fast food, dope, gro~ ceries,
housing, movies. The movie house was The Shade. It showed art films and “40'S
nostalgia flicks when school was in. In the summertime it reverted to Clint
Eastwood spaghetti Westerns.
Johnny and Sarah
were both out of school a year, and both were teaching at cleaves Mills High,
one of the few high schools in the area that had not consolidated into a
three-or four-town district. University faculty and ad-ministration as well as
university students used Cleaves as their bedroom, and the town had an enviable
tax base. It also had a fine high school with a brand-new media wing. The
townies might bitch about the university crowd with their smart talk and their
Commie marches to end the war and their meddling in town politics, but they had
never said no to the tax dollars that were paid annually on the gracious
faculty homes and the apartment buildings in the area some students called
Fudgey Acres and others called Sleaze Alley.
Sarah rapped on
his door and Johnny's voice, oddly muffled, called, “It's open, Sarah!”
Frowning a
little, she pushed the door open. Johnny's apartment was in total darkness
except for the fitful yellow glow of the blinker half a block up the street. The
furniture was so many humped black shadows.
“Johnny...?”
Wondering if a
fuse had blown or something, she took a tentative step forward—and then the
face appeared before her, floating in the darkness, a horrible face out of a
nightmare. It glowed a spectral, rotting green. One eye was wide open, seeming
to stare at her in wounded fear. The other was squeezed shut in a sinister
leer. The left half of the face, the half with the open eye, appeared to be
normal. But the right half was the face of a monster, drawn and inhuman. the
thick lips drawn back to reveal snaggle teeth that were also glowing.
Sarah uttered a
strangled little shriek and took a stumble-step backward. Then the lights came
on and it was just Johnny's apartment again instead of some black limbo, Nixon
on the wall trying to sell used cars, the braided rug Johnny's mother had made
on the floor, the wine bottles made into candle bases. The face stopped glowing
and she saw it was a dime-store Halloween mask, nothing more. Johnny's blue eye
was twinkling out of the open eyehole at her.
He stripped it
off and stood smiling amiably at her, dressed in faded jeans and a brown
sweater.
“Happy Halloween,
Sarah,” he said.
Her heart was
still racing. He had really frightened her. “Very funny,” she said, and turned
to go. She didn't like being scared like that.
He caught her in
the doorway. “Hey... I'm sorry. “Well you ought to be. “She looked at him
coldly—or tried to. Her anger was already melting away. You just couldn't stay
mad at Johnny, that was the thing. Whether she loved him or not—a thing she was
still trying to puzzle out—it was impossible to be unhappy with him for very
long, or to harbor a feeling of resentment. She wondered if anyone had ever
succeeded in harboring a grudge against Johnny Smith, and the thought was so
ridiculous she just had to smile.
“There, that's
better. Man, I thought you were going to walk out on me.”
“I'm not a man.”
He cast his eyes
upon her. “So I've noticed. “She was wearing a bulky fur coat—imitation raccoon
or something vulgar like that—and his innocent lechery made her smile again.
“In this thing you couldn't tell.”
“Oh, yeah, I can
tell,” he said. He put an arm around her and kissed her. At first she wasn't
going to kiss back, but of course she did.
“I'm sorry I scared
you,” he said, and rubbed her nose companionably with his own before letting
her go. He held up the mask. “I thought you'd get a kick out of it. I'm gonna
wear it in homeroom Friday.”
“Oh, Johnny, that
won't be very good for discipline.”
“I'll muddle through
somehow,” he said with a grin. And the hell of it was, he would.
She came to
school every day wearing big, schoolmarmish glasses, her hair drawn back into
bun so severe it seemed on the verge of a scream. She wore her skirts just
above the knee in a season when most of the girls wore them just below the
edges of their underpants (and my legs are better than any of theirs, Sarah
thought resent-fully). She maintained alphabetical seating charts which, by the
law of averages, at least, should have kept the troublemakers away from each
other, and she resolutely sent unruly pupils to the assistant principal, her
reasoning being that he was getting an extra five hundred a year to act as
ramrod and she wasn't. And still her days were a constant struggle with that
freshman teacher demon, Discipline. More disturbing, she had begun to sense
that there was a collective, unspoken jury—a kind of school consciousness,
maybe—that went into deliberations over every new teacher, and that the verdict
being returned on her was not so good.
Johnny, on the
face of it, appeared to be the antithesis of everything a good teacher should
be. He ambled from dass to dass in an agreeable sort of daze, often showing up
tardy because he had stopped to chat with someone between bells. He let the
kids sit where they wanted so that the same face was never in the same seat
from day to day (and the class thuds invariably gravitated to the back of the
room). Sarah would not have been able to learn their names that way until
March, but Johnny seemed to have them down pat already.
He was a tall man
who had a tendency to slouch, and the kids called him Frankenstein. Johnny
seemed amused rather than outraged by this. And yet his classes were mostly
quiet and well-behaved, there were few skippers (Sarah had a constant problem
with kids cutting class), and that same jury seemed to be coming back in his
favor.
He was the sort
of teacher who, in another ten years, would have the school yearbook dedicated
to him. She just wasn't. And sometimes wondering why drove her crazy.
“You want a beer
before we go? Glass of wine? Anything?”
“No, but I hope
you're going well-heeled,” she said, taking his arm and deciding not to be mad
anymore. “I always eat at least three hot dogs. Especially when it's the last
county fair of the year. “They were going to Esty, twenty miles north of Cleave
Mills, a town whose only dubious claim to fame was that it held ABSOLUTELY THE
LAST AGRICULTRAL FAIR OF THE YEAR IN NEW ENGLAND. The fair would close Friday
night, on Halloween.
“Considering
Friday's payday, I'm doing good. I got eight bucks.”
“Oh... my...
God,” Sarah said, rolling her eyes. “I always knew if I kept myself pure I'd
meet a sugar daddy someday.”
He smiled and
nodded. “Us pimps make biiig money, baby. Just let me get my coat and we're
off.”
She looked after
him with exasperated affection, and the voice that had been surfacing in her
mind more and more often—in the shower, while she was reading a book or
prepping a class or making her supper for one—came up again, like one of those
thirty-second public-service spots on TV: He's a very nice man and all that,
easy to get along with, fun, he never made you cry. But is that love? I mean,
is that all there is to it? Even when you learned to ride your two-wheeler, you
had to fall off a few times and scrape both knees. Call it a rite of passage.
And that was just a little thing.
“Gonna use the
bathroom,” he called to her.
“Uh-huh. “She
smiled a little. Johnny was one of those people who invariably mentioned their
nature calls -God knew why.
She went over to
the window and looked out on Main Street. Kids were pulling into the parking
lot next to O'Mike's, the local pizza-and-beer hangout. She suddenly wished she
were back with them, one of them, with this confusing stuff behind her—or still
ahead of her. The university was safe. It was a kind of never-never land where
everybody, even the teachers, could be a part of Peter Pan's band and never
grow up. And there would always be a Nixon or an Agnew to play Captain Hook.
She had met Johnny
when they started teaching in September, but she had known his face from the Ed
courses they had shared. She had been pinned to a Delta Tau Delta, and none of
the judgments that applied to Johnny had applied to Dan. He had been almost
flawlessly handsome, witty in a sharp and restless way that always made her a
trifle uncomfortable, a heavy drinker, a passionate lover. Sometimes when he
drank he turned mean. She rememberd a night in Bangor's Brass Rail when that
had happened. The man in the next booth had taken joking issue with something
Dan had been saying about the UMO football team, and Dan had asked him if he
would like to go home with his head on backward. The man had apologized, but
Dan hadn't wanted an apology; he had wanted a fight. He began to make personal
remarks about the woman with the other man. Sarah had put her hand on Dan's arm
and asked him to stop. Dan had shaken her hand off and had looked at her with a
queer flat light in his grayish eyes that made any other words she might have spoken
dry up in her throat. Eventually, Dan and the other guy went outside and Dan
beat him up. Dan had beaten him until the other man, who was in his late
thirties and getting a belly, had screamed. Sarah had never heard a man scream
before -she never wanted to hear it again. They had to leave quickly because
the bartender saw how it was going and called the police. She would have gone
home alone that night (oh? are you sure? her mind asked nastily), but it was
twelve miles back to the campus and the buses had stopped running at six and
she was afraid to hitch.
Dan didn't talk
on the way back. He had a scratch on one cheek. Just one scratch. When they got
back to Hart Hall, her dorm, she told him she didn't want to see him anymore.
“Any way you want it, babe,” he said with an indifference that had chilled
her—and the second time he called after the Brass Rail incident she had gone
out with him. Part of her had hated herself for that.
It had continued
all that fall semester of her senior year. He had frightened and attracted her
at the same time. He was her first real lover, and even now, two days shy of
Halloween 1970, he had been her only real lover.
She and Johnny
had not been to bed.
Dan had been very
good. He had used her, but he had been very good. He would not take any
precautious and so she had been forced to go to the university infirmary, where
she talked fumblingly about painful menstruation and got the pill. Sexually,
Dan had dominated her all along. She did not have many orgasms with him, but
his very roughness brought her some, and in the weeks before it had ended she
bad begun to feel a mature woman's greediness for good sex, a desire that was
bewilderingly intermixed with other feelings: dislike for both Dan and herself,
a feeling that no sex that depended so much on humiliation and domination could
really be called “good sex,” and self-contempt for her own inability to call a
halt to a relationship that seemed based on destructive feelings.
It had ended
swiftly, early this year. He flunked out. “Where will you be going?” she asked
him timidly, sitting on his roomie's bed as he threw things into two suitcases.
She had wanted to ask other, more personal questions. Will you be near here?
Will you take a job? Take night classes? Is there a place for me in your plans?
That question, above all others, she had not been able to ask. Because she
wasn't prepared for any answer. The answer he gave to her one neutral question
was shocking enough.
“Vietnam, I
guess.”
“What?”
He reached onto a
shelf, thumbed briefly through the papers there, and tossed her a letter. It
was from the induction center in Bangor: an order to report for his physical
exam.
“Can't you get
out of it?”
“No. Maybe. I
don't know. “He lit a cigarette. “I don't think I even want to try.”
She had stared at
him, shocked.
“I'm tired of
this scene. College and get a job and find a little wifey. You've been applying
for the little wifey spot, I guess. And don't think I haven't thought it over.
It wouldn't work. You know it wouldn't, and so do I. We don't fit, Sarah.”
She had fled
then, all her questions answered, and she never saw him again. She saw his
roommate a few times. He got three letters from Dan between January and June.
He was inducted and sent down south somewhere for basic training. And that was
the last the roommate had heard. It was the last Sarah Bracknell heard, too.
At first she
thought she was going to be okay. All those sad, torchy songs, the ones you
always seem to hear on the car radio after midnight, they didn't apply to her.
Or the cliches about the end of the affair or the crying jags. She didn't pick
up a guy on the rebound or start doing the bars. Most evenings that spring she
spent studying quietly in her dorm room. It was a relief. It wasn't messy.
It was only after
she met Johnny—at a freshman mixer dance last month; they were both
chaperoning, purely by luck of the draw that she realized what a horror her
last semester at school had been. It was the kind of thing you couldn't see
when you were in it, it was too much a part of you. Two donkeys meet at a
hitching rail in a western town. One of them is a town donkey with nothing on
his back but a saddle. The other is a prospector's donkey, loaded down with
packs, camping and cooking gear, and four fifty-pound sacks of ore. His back is
bent into a concertina shape from the weight. The town donkey says, That's
quite a load you got there. And the prospector 5 donkey says, What load?
In retrospect it
was the emptiness that horrified her; it had been five months of Cheyne-Stokes
respiration. Eight months if you counted this summer, when she took a small
apartment on Flagg Street in Veazie and did nothing but apply for teaching jobs
and read paperback novels. She got up, ate breakfast, went out to class or to
whatever job interviews she had scheduled, came home, ate, took a nap (the naps
were sometimes four hours long), ate again, read until eleven-thirty or so,
watched Cavett until she got sleepy, went to bed. She could not remember
thinking during that period. Life was routine. Sometimes there was a vague sort
of ache in her loins, an unfulfilled ache, she believed the lady novelists
sometimes called it, and for this she would either take a cold shower or a
douche. After a while the douches grew painful, and this gave her a bitter, absent
sort of satisfaction.
During this
period she would congratulate herself from time to time on how adult she was
being about the whole thing. She hardly ever thought about Dan—Dan Who, ha-ha.
Later she realized that for eight months she had thought of nothing or no one
else. The whole country had gone through a spasm of shudders during those eight
months, but she had hardly noticed. The marches, the cops in their crash
helmets and gas masks, the mounting attacks on the press by Agnew, the Kent
State shootings, the-summer of violence as Macks and radical groups took to the
streets—those things might have happened on some TV late show. Sarah was
totally wrapped up in how wonderfully she had gotten over Dan, how well she was
adjusting, and how relieved she was to find that everything was just fine. What
load?
Then she had
started at Cleaves Mills High, and that had been a personal upheaval, being on
the other side of the desk after sixteen years as a professional student.
Meeting Johnny Smith at that mixer (and with an absurd name like John Smith,
could he be completely for real?). Coming out of herself enough to see the way
he was looking at her, not lecherously, but with a good healthy appreciation
for the way she looked in the light-gray knitted dress she had worn.
He had asked her
to go to a movie—Citizen Kane was playing at The Shade—and she said okay. They
had a good time and she was thinking to herself, No fireworks. She had enjoyed
his kiss goodnight and had thought, He's sure no Errol Flynn. He had kept her
smiling with his line of patter, which was outrageous, and she had thought, He
wants to be Henry Youngman when he grows up.
Later that
evening, sitting in the bedroom of her apartment and watching Bette Davis play
a bitchy career woman on the late movie, some of these thoughts had come back
to her and she paused with her teeth sunk into an apple, rather shocked at her
own unfairness.
And a voice that
had been silent for the best part of a year—not so much the voice of conscience
as that of perspective—spoke up abruptly. What you mean is, he sure isn't Dan.
Isn't that it?
No! she assured
herself, not just rather shocked now. I don't think about Dan at all anymore.
That... was a long time ago.
Diapers, the
voice replied, that was a long time ago. Dan left yesterday.
She suddenly
realized she was sitting in an apartment by herself late at night, eating an
apple and watching a movie on TV that she cared nothing about, and doing it all
because it was easier than thinking, thinking was so boring really, when all
you had to think about was yourself and your lost love.
Very shocked now.
She had burst
into tears.
She had gone out
with Johnny the second and third time he asked, too” and that was also a
revelation of exactly what she had become. She couldn't very well say that she
had another date because it wasn't so. She was a smart, pretty girl, and she
had been asked out a lot after the affair with Dan ended, but the only dates
she had accepted were hamburger dates at the Den with Dan's roomie, and she
realized now (her disgust tempered with rueful humor) that she had only gone on
those completely innocuous dates in order to pump the poor guy about Dan. What
load?
Most of her
college girl friends had dropped over the horizon after graduation. Bettye
Hackman was with the Peace Corps in Africa, to the utter dismay of her wealthy
old-line Bangor parents, and sometimes Sarah wondered what the Ugandans must
make of Bettye with her white, impossible-to-tan skin and ash-blonde hair and
cool, sorority good looks. Deenie Stubbs was at grad school in Houston. Rachel
Jurgens had married her fella and was currently gestating somewhere in the
wilds of western Massachusetts.
Slightly dazed,
Sarah had been forced to the conclusion that Johnny Smith was the first new friend
she had made in a long, long time—and she had been her senior high school
class's Miss Popularity. She had acepted dates from a couple of other Cleaves
teachers, just to keep things in perspective. One of them was Gene Sedecki, the
new math man—but obviously a veteran bore. The other, George Rounds, had
immediately tried to make her. She had slapped his face—and the next day he'd
had the gall to wink at her as they passed in the hall.
But Johnny was
fun, easy to be with. And he did attract her sexually—just how strongly she
couldn't honestly say, at least not yet. A week ago, after the Friday they'd
had off for the October teachers” convention in Waterville, he had invited her
back to his apartment for a home-cooked spaghetti dinner. While the sauce simmered,
he had dashed around the corner to get some wine and had come back with two
bottles of Apple Zapple. Like announcing his bathroom calls, it was somehow
Johnny's style.
After the meal
they had watched TV and that had turned to necking and God knew what that might
have turned into if a couple of his friends, instructors from the university,
hadn't turned up with a faculty position paper on academic freedom. They wanted
Johnny to look it over and see what he thought. He had done so, but with
noticeably less good will than was usual with him. She had noticed that with a
warm, secret delight and the ache in her own loins—the unfulfilled ache—had
also delighted her, and that night she hadn't killed it with a douche.
She turned away
from the window and walked over to the sofa where Johnny had left the mask.
“Happy
Halloween,” she snorted, and laughed a little.
“What?” Johnny
called out.
“I said if you
don't come pretty quick I'm going with-out you.”
“Be right out.”
“Swell!”
She ran a finger
over the Jekyll-and-Hyde mask, kindly Dr. Jekyll the left half, ferocious,
subhuman Hyde the right half. Where will we be by Thanksgiving? she wondered.
Or by Christmas?
The thought sent
a funny, excited little thrill shooting through her. She liked him. He was a
perfectly ordinary, sweet man.
She looked down
at the mask again, horrible Hyde growing out of Jekyll's face like a lumpy
carcinoma. It had been treated with fluorescent paint so it would glow in the
dark.
What's ordinary?
Nothing, nobody. Not really. If he was so ordinary, how could he be planning to
wear something like that into his homeroom and still be confident of keeping
order? And how can the kids call him Frankenstein and still respect and like
him? What's ordinary?
Johnny came out,
brushing through the beaded curtain that divided the bedroom and bathroom off
from the living room.
If he wants me to
go to bed with him tonight, l think I'm going to say okay.
And it was a warm
thought, like coming home.
“What are you
grinning about?”
“Nothing,” she
said, tossing the mask back to the sofa.
“No, really. Was
it something good?”
“Johnny,” she
said, putting a hand on his chest and standing on tiptoe to kiss him lightly,
“some things will never be told. Come on, let's go.”
2.
They paused
downstairs in the foyer while he buttoned his denim jacket, and she found her
eyes drawn again to the STRIKE! poster with its clenched fist and flaming
background.
“There'll be
another student strike this year,” he said, following her eyes.
“The war?”
“That's only
going to be part of it this time. Vietnam and the fight over ROTC and Kent
State have activated more students than ever before. I doubt if there's ever
been a time when there were so few grunts taking up space at the university.”
“What do you
mean, grunts?”
“Kids just studying
to make grades, with no interest in the system except that it provides them
with a ten-thousand-dollar a year job when they get out. A grunt is a student
who gives a shit about nothing except his sheep skin. That's over. Most of them
are awake. There are going to be some big changes.”
“Is that
important to you? Even though you're out?”
He drew himself
up. “Madam, I am an alumnus. Smith, class of “70. Fill the stems to dear old
Maine.”
She smiled. “Come
on, let's go. I want a ride on the whip before they shut it down for the
night.”
“Very good,” he
said, taking her arm. “I just happen to have your car parked around the
corner.”
“And eight
dollars. The evening fairly glitters before us.
The night was
overcast but not rainy, mild for late October. Overhead, a quarter moon was
struggling to make it through the cloud cover. Johnny slipped an arm around her
and she moved closer to him.
“You know, I
think an awful lot of you, Sarah. “His tone was almost offhand, but only
almost. Her heart slowed a little and then made speed for a dozen beats or so.
“Really?”
“I guess this Dan
guy, he hurt you, didn't he?”
“I don't know
what he did to me,” she said truthfully.
The yellow
blinker, a block behind them now, made their shadows appear and disappear on
the concrete in front of them.
Johnny appeared
to think this over. “I wouldn't want to do that,” he said finally.
“No, I know that.
But Johnny... give it time.”
“Yeah,” he said.
“Time. We've got that, I guess. “And that would come back to her, awake and
even more strongly in her dreams, in tones of inexpressible bitterness and
loss.
They went around
the corner and Johnny opened the passenger door for her. He went around and got
in behind the wheel. “You cold?”
“No,” she said.
“It's a great night for it.”
“It is,” he agreed,
and pulled away from the curb. Her -thoughts went back to that ridiculous mask.
Half Jekyll with Johnny's blue eye visible behind the widened-O eyesocket of
the surprised doctor—Say, that's some cocktail I invented last night) but l
don't think they'll be able to move it in the bars—and that side was all right
because you could see a bit of Johnny inside. It was the Hyde part that had
scared her silly, because that eye was closed down to a slit. It could have
been anybody. Anybody at all. Dan, for instance.
But by the time
they reached the Esty fairgrounds, where the naked bulbs of the midway twinkled
in the darkness and the long spokes of the Ferris wheel neon revolved up and
down, she had forgotten the mask. She was with her guy, and they were going to
have a good time.
3.
They walked up
the midway hand in hand, not talking much, and Sarah found herself reliving the
county fairs of her youth. She had grown up in South Paris, a paper town in
western Maine, and the big fair had been the one in Fryeburg. For Johnny, a
Pownal boy, it probably would have been Topsham. But they were all the same,
really, and they hadn't changed much over the years.
You parked your
car in a dirt parking lot and paid your two bucks at the gate, and when you
were barely inside the fairgrounds you could smell hot dogs, frying peppers and
onions, bacon, cotton candy, sawdust, and sweet, aromatic horseshit. You heard
the heavy, chain-driven rumble of the baby roller coaster, the one they called
The Wild Mouse. You heard the popping of in the shooting galleries, the tinny
blare of the Bingo caller from the PA system strung around the big tent filled
with long tables and folding chairs from the local mortuary. Rock “n” roll
music vied with the calliope for supremacy. You heard the steady cry of the
barkers—two shots for two bits, win one of these stuffed doggies for your baby,
hey-hey-yer-here, pitch till you win. It didn't change. It turned you into a
kid again, willing and eager to be suckered.
“Here!” she said,
stopping him. “The whip! The whip!”
“Of course,”
Johnny said comfortingly. He passed the woman in the ticket cage a dollar bill,
and she pushed back two red tickets and two dimes with barely a glance up from
her Photoplay.
“What do you
mean; “of course”? Why are you “of coursing” me in that tone of voice?”
He shrugged. His
face was much too innocent.
“It wasn't what
you said, John Smith. It was how you said it.”
The ride had
stopped. Passengers were getting off and streaming past them, mostly teenagers in
blue melton CPO shirts or open parkas. Johnny led her up the wooden ramp and
surrendered their tickets to the whip's starter, who looked like the most bored
sentient creature in the universe.
“Nothing,” he
said as the starter settled them into one of the little round shells and
snapped the safety bar into place. “It's just that these cars are on little
circular tracks, right?”
“Right.”
“And the little
circular tracks are embedded on a large
circular dish
that spins around and around, right?”
“Right.”
“Well, when this
ride is going full steam, the little car we're sitting in whips around on its
little circular track and sometimes develops up to seven g, which is only five
less than the astronauts get when they lift off from Cape Kennedy. And I knew
this kid... “Johnny was leaning solemnly over her now.
“Oh, here comes
one of your big lies,” Sarah said uneasily.
“When this kid
was five he fell down the front steps and put a tiny hairline fracture in his
spine at the top of his neck. Then ten years later—he went on the whip at
Topsham Fair... and... “He shrugged and then patted her hand sympathetically.
“But you'll probably be okay, Sarah.”
“Ohhh.. I want to
get olliff...”
And the whip
whirled them away, slamming the fair and the midway into a tilted blur of lights
and faces, and she shrieked and laughed and began to pummel him.
“Hairline
fracture!” she shouted at him. “I'll give you a hairline fracture when we get
off this, you liar!”
“Do you feel
anything giving in your neck yet?” he inquired sweetly.
“Oh, you liar!”
They whirled
around, faster and faster, and as they snapped past the ride starter for
the—tenth? fifteenth? -time, he leaned over and kissed her, and the car
whistled around on its track, pressing their lips together in something that
was hot and exciting and skintight. Then the ride was slowing down, their car
clacked around on its track more reluctantly, and finally came to a swaying,
swinging stop.
They got out, and
Sarah squeezed his neck. “Hairline fracture, you ass! “she whispered.
A fat lady in
blue slacks and penny loafers was passing them. Johnny spoke to her, jerking a
thumb hack toward Sarah. “That girl is bothering me, ma'am. If you see a
policeman would you tell him?”
“You young people
think you're smart,” the fat lady said disdainfully. She waddled away toward
the bingo tent, holding her purse more tightly under her arm” Sarah was
giggling helplessly.
“You're
impossible.”
“I'll come to a
bad end,” Johnny agreed. “My mother always said so.”
They walked up
the midway side by side again, waiting for the world to stop making unstable
motions before their eyes and under their feet.
“She's pretty
religious, your mom, isn't she?” Sarah asked.
“She's as Baptist
as you can get,” Johnny agreed. “But she's okay. She keeps it under control.
She can't resist passing me a few tracts when I'm at home, but that's her
thing. Daddy and I put up with it. I used to try to get on her case about
it—I'd ask her who the heck was in Nod for Cain to go live with if his dad and
mom were the first people on earth, stuff like that—but I decided it was sort
of mean and quit it. Two years ago I thought Eugene McCarthy could save the
world, and at least the Baptists don't have Jesus running for president.”
“Your father's
not religious?”
Johnny laughed.
“I don't know about that, but he's sure no Baptist. After a moment's thought he
added, “Dad's a carpenter,” as if that explained it. She smiled.
“What would your
mother think if she knew you were seeing a lapsed Catholic?”
“Ask me to bring
you home,” Johnny said promptly, “so she could slip you a few tracts.”
She stopped,
still holding his hand. “Would you like to bring me to your house?” she asked,
looking at him closely.
Johnny's long,
pleasant face became serious. “Yeah,” he said. “I'd like you to meet them... and
vice versa.”
“Why?”
“Don't you know
why?” he asked her gently, and suddenly her throat closed and her head throbbed
as if she might cry” and she squeezed his hand tightly.
“Oh Johnny, I do
like you.”
“I like you even
more than that,” he said seriously.
“Take me on the
Ferris wheel,” she demanded suddenly, smiling. No more talk like this until she
had a chance to consider it, to think where it might be leading. “I want to go
up high where we can see everything.”
“Can I kiss you
at the top?”
“Twice, if you're
quick.”
He allowed her to
lead him to the ticket booth, where he surrendered another dollar bill. As he
paid he told her, “When I was in high school, I know this kid who worked at the
fair, and he said most of the guys who put these rides together are dead drunk
and they leave off all sorts of...”
“Co to hell,” she
said merrily, “nobody lives forever.”
“But everybody
tries, you ever notice that?” he said, following her into one of the swaying
gondolas.
As a matter of
fact he got to kiss her several times at the top, with the October wind
ruffling their hair and the midway spread out below them like a glowing
clockface in the dark.
4.
After the Ferris
wheel they did the carousel, even though he told her quite honestly that he
felt like a horse's ass. His legs were so long that he could have stood astride
one of the plaster horses. She told him maliciously that she had known a girl
in high school who had had a weak heart, except nobody knew she had a weak
heart, and she she had gotten on the carousel with her boyfriend and...
“Someday you'll
be sorry,” he told her with quiet sincerity. “A relationship based on lies is
no good, Sarah.”
She gave him a
very moist raspberry.
After the
carousel came the mirror maze, a very good mirror maze as a matter of fact, it
made her think of the one in Bradbury's Something Wicked This Way Comes, where
the little-oldlady schoolteacher almost got lost forever. She could see Johnny
in another part of it, fumbling around, waving to her. Dozens of Johnnies,
dozens of Sarahs. They bypassed each other, flickered around nonEuclidian
angles, and seemed to disappear. She made left turns, right turns, bumped her
nose on panes of clear glass, and got giggling helplessly, partly in a nervous
claustrophobic reaction. One of the mirrors turned her into a squat Tolkein
dwarf. Another created the apotheoeis of teenage gangliness with shins a
quarter of a mile long.
At last they
escaped and he got them a couple of fried hot dogs and a Dixie cup filled with
greasy french fries that tasted the way french fries hardly ever do once you've
gotten past your fifteenth year.
They passed a
kooch joint. Three girls stood out front in sequined skirts and bras. They were
shimmying to an old Jerry Lee Lewis tune while the barker hawked them through a
microphone. “Come on over baby,” Jerry Lee blared, his piano boogying frankly
across the sawdust-sprinkled arcades. “Come on over baby, baby got the bull by
the horns... we ain't fakin... whole lotta shakin goin on...
“Club Playboy,”
Johnny marveled, and laughed. “There used to he a place like this down at
Harrison Beach. The barker used to swear the girls could take the glasses right
off your nose with their hands tied behind their backs.”
“It sounds like
an interesting way to get a social disease,” Sarah said, and Johnny roared with
laughter.
Behind them the
barker's amplified voice grew hollow with distance, counterpointed by Jerry
Lee's pumping piano, music like some mad, dented hot rod that was too tough to
die, rumbling out of the dead and silent fifties like an omen. “Come in, men,
come on over, don't be shy because these girls sure aren't, not in the least
little bit! It's all on the inside... your education isn't complete until
you've seen the Club Playboy show...
“Don't you want
to go on back and finish your education?” she asked.
He smiled. “I
finshed my basic course work on that subject some time ago. I guess I can wait
a while to get my Ph. D.”
She glanced at
her watch. “Hey, it's getting late, Johnny. And tomorrow's a school day.”
“Yeah. But at
least it's Friday.”
She sighed,
thinking of her fifth-period study hall and her seventh-period New Fiction
class, both of them impossibly rowdy.
They had worked
their way back to the main part of the midway. The crowd was thinning. The Tilt-A-Whirl
had shut down for the evening. Two workmen with unfiltered cigarettes jutting
from the corners of their mouths were covering the Wild Mouse with a tarpaulin.
The man in the Pitch-Til-U-Win was turning off his lights.
“You doing
anything Saturday?” he asked, suddenly diffident. “I know it's short notice,
but...”
“I have plans,”
she said.
“Oh.”
And she couldn't
bear his crestfallen expression, it was really too mean to tease him about
that. “I'm doing something with you.
“You are?... Oh,
you are. Say, that's good. “He grinned at her and she grinned back. The voice
in her mind, which was sometimes as real to her as the voice of another human
being, suddenly spoke up.
You're feeling
good again, Sarah. Feeling happy. Isn't it fine?
“Yes, it is,” she
said. She went up on tiptoe and kissed him quickly. She made herself go on
before she could chicken out. “It gets pretty lonely down there in Veazie
sometimes, you know. Maybe I could... sort of spend the night with you.”
He looked at her
with warm thoughtfulness, and with a speculation that made her tingle deep
inside. “Would that be what you want, Sarah?”
She nodded. “Very
much what I want.”
“All right,” he
said, and put an arm around her.
“Are you sure?”
Sarah asked a little shyly.
“I'm just afraid
you'll change your mind.”
“I won't,
Johnny.”
He hugged her
tighter against him. “Then it's my lucky night.”
They were passing
the Wheel of Fortune as he said it, and Sarah would later remember that it was
the only booth still open on that side of the midway for thirty yards in either
direction. The man behind the counter had just finished sweeping the packed
dirt inside for any spare dimes that might have fallen from the playing board
during the night's action. Probably his last chore before closing up, she thought.
Behind him was his large spoked wheel, outlined by tiny electric bulbs. He must
have heard Johnny's remark, because he went into his pitch more or less
automatically, his eyes still searching the dirt floor of his booth for the
gleam of silver.
“Hey-hey-hey, if
you feel lucky, mister, spin the Wheel of Fortune, turn dimes into dollars.
It's all in the Wheel, try your luck, one thin dime sets this Wheel of Fortune
in motion.”
Johnny swung back
toward the sound of his voice.
“Johnny?”
“I feel lucky,
just like the man said. “He smiled down at her. “Unless you mind...?”
“No, go ahead.
Just don't take too long.”
He looked at her
again in that frankly speculative way that made her feel a little weak,
wondering how it would be with him. Her stomach did a slow roll-over that made
her feel a bit nauseated with sudden sexual longing.
“No, not long.
“He looked at the pitchman. The midway behind them was almost completely empty
now, and as the overcast had melted off above them it had turned chilly. The
three of them were puffing white vapor as they breathed.
“Try” your luck,
young man?”
“Yes.”
He had switched
all his cash to his front pocket when they arrived at the fair, and now he
pulled out the remains of his eight dollars. It came to a dollar eighty-five.
The playing board
was a strip of yellow plastic with numbers and odds painted on it in squares.
It looked a bit like a roulette board, but Johnny saw immediately that the odds
here would have turned a Las Vegas roulette player gray.. A trip combination
paid off at only two to one. There were two house numbers, zero and double
zero. He pointed this out to the pitchman, who only shrugged.
“You want Vegas,
go to Vegas. What can I say?”
But Johnny's good
humor tonight was unshakable. Things had gotten off to a poor start with that
mask, but it had been all upbeat from there. In fact, it was the best night he
could remember in years, maybe the best night ever. He looked at Sarah. Her
color was high, her eyes sparkling. “What do you say, Sarah?”
She shook her
head. “It's Greek to me. What do you do?”
“Play a number.
Or red/black. Or odd/even. Or a ten-number series. They all pay differently.
“He gazed at the pitchman, who gazed back blandly. “At least, they should.”
“Play black,” she
said. “It is sort of exciting, isn't it?”
“Black,” he said,
and dropped his odd dime on the black square.
The pitchman
stared at the single dime on his expanse of playboard and sighed. “Heavy
plunger. “He turned to the Wheel.
Johnny's hand
wandered absently to his forehead and touched it. “Wait,” he said abruptly. He
pushed one of his quarters onto the square reading 11–20.
“That it?”
“Sure,” Johnny
said.
The pitchman gave
the Wheel a twist and it spun in-side its circle of lights, red and black
merging. Johnny absently rubbed at his forehead. The Wheel began to slow and
now they could hear the metronome-like tick-tock of the small wooden clapper
sliding past the pins that divided the numbers. It reached 8, 9, seemed about
to stop on 10, and slipped into the 11 slot with a final dick and came to rest.
“The lady loses,
the gentleman wins,” the pitchman said.
“You won,
Johnny?”
“Seems like it,”
Johnny said as the pitchman added two quarters to his original one. Sarah gave
a little squeal, barely noticing as the pitchman swept the dime away.
“Told you, my
lucky night,” Johnny said.
“Twice is luck,
once is just a fluke,” the pitchman remarked. “Hey-hey-hey.”
“Go again,
Johnny,” she said.
“All right. Just
as it is for me.”
“Let it ride?”
“Yes.”
The pitchman spun
the Wheel again, and as it slid around, Sarah murmured quietly to him, “Aren't
all these carnival wheels suppose to be fixed?”
“They used to be.
Now the state inspects them and they just rely on their outrageous odds
system.”
The Wheel had
slowed to its final unwinding tick-tock. The pointer passed 10 and entered
Johnny's trip, still slowing.
“Come on, come
on! “Sarah cried. A couple of teenagers on their way out paused to watch.
The wooden
clapper, moving very slowly now, passed 16 and 17, then came to a stop on 18.
“Gentleman wins
again. “The pitchman added six more quarters to Johnny's pile.
“You're rich!”
Sarah gloated, and kissed him on the cheek.
“You're
streaking, fella,” the pitchman agreed enthusiastically. “Nobody quits a hot
stick. Hey-hey-hey.”
“Should I go
again?” Johnny asked her.
“Why not?”
“Yeah, go ahead,
man,” one of the teenagers said. A button on his jacket bore the face of Jimi
Hendrix. “That guy took me for four bucks tonight. I love to see him take a
beatin.”
“You too then,”
Johnny told Sarah. He gave her the odd quarter off his stack of nine. After a
moment's hesitation she laid it down on 21. Single numbers paid off ten to one
on a hit, the board announced.
“You're riding
the middle trip, right, fella?”
Johnny looked
down at the eight quarters stacked on the board, and then he began to rub his
forehead again, as if he felt the beginnings of a headache. Suddenly he swept
the quarters off the board and jingled them in his two cupped hands.
“No. Spin for the
lady. I'll watch this one.”
She looked at
him, puzzled. “Johnny?”
He shrugged.
“Just a feeling.”
The pitchman
rolled his eyes in a heaven-give-me-strength-to-bear-these fools gesture and
set his Wheel going again. It spun, slowed, and stopped. On double zero. “House
numbah, house numbah,” the pitchman chanted, and Sarah's quarter disappeared
into his apron.
“Is that fair,
Johnny?” Sarah asked, hurt.
“Zero and double
zero only pay the house,” he said.
“Then you were
smart to take your money off the board.”
“I guess I was.”
“You want me to
spin this Wheel or go for coffee?” the pitchman asked.
“Spin it,” Johnny
said, and put his quarters down in two stacks of four on the third trip.
As the Wheel
buzzed around in its cage of lights, Sarah asked Johnny, never taking her eyes
from the spin, “How much can a place like this take in on one night?”
The teenagers had
been joined by a quartet of older people, two men and two women. A man with the
build of a construction worker said, “Anywheres from five to seven hundred dollars.”
The pitchman
rolled his eyes again. “Oh, man, I wish you was right,” he said.
“Hey, don't give
me that poor mouth,” the man who looked like a construction worker said. “I
used to work this scam twenty years ago. Five to seven hundred a night, two grand
on a Saturday, easy. And that's running a straight Wheel.”
Johnny kept his
eyes on the Wheel, which was now spinning slowly enough to read the individual
numbers as they flashed past. It flashed past 0 and 00, through the first trip,
slowing, through the second trip, still slowing.
“Too much legs,
man,” one of the teenagers said.
“Wait,” Johnny
said, in a peculiar tone of voice. Sarah glanced at him, and his long, pleasant
face looked oddly strained, his blue eyes darker than usual, for away, distant.
The pointer
stopped on 30 and came to rest.
“Hot stick, hot
stick,” the pitchman chanted resignedly as the little crowd behind Johnny and
Sarah uttered a cheer. The man who looked like a construction worker clapped
Johnny on the back hard enough to make him stagger a bit. The pitchman reached
into the Roi-Tan box under the counter and dropped four singles beside Johnny's
eight quarters.
“Enough?” Sarah
asked.
“One more,”
Johnny said. “If I win, this guy paid for our fair and your gas. If I lose,
we're out half a buck or so.
“Hey-hey-hey,”
the pitchman chanted. He was brightening up now, getting his rhythm back. “Get
it down where you want it down. Step right up, you other folks. This ain't no
spectator sport. Round and round she's gonna go and where she's gonna stop
ain't nobody knows.”
The man who
looked like a construction worker and the two teenagers stepped up beside
Johnny and Sarah. After a moment's consultation, the teenagers produced half a
buck in change between them and dropped it on the middle trip. The man who
looked like a construction worker, who introduced himself as Steve Bernhardt,
put a dollar on the square marked EVEN.
“What about you,
buddy?” the pitchman asked Johnny. “You gonna play it as it lays?”
“Yes,” Johnny
said.
“Oh man,” one of the
teenagers said, “that's tempting fate.”
“I guess,” Johnny
said, and Sarah smiled at him.
Bernhardt gave
Johnny a speculative glance and suddenly switched his dollar to his third trip.
“What the hell,” sighed the teenager who had told Johnny he was tempting fate.
He switched the fifty cents he and his friend had come up with to the same
trip.
“All the eggs in
one basket,” the pitchman chanted. “That how you want it?”
The players stood
silent and affirmative. A couple of roustabouts had drifted over to watch, one
of them with a lady friend; there was now quite a respectable little knot of
people in front of the Wheel of Fortune concession in the darkening arcade. The
pitchman gave the Wheel a mighty spin. Twelve pairs of eyes watched it revolve.
Sarah found herself looking at Johnny again, thinking how strange his face was
in this bold yet somehow furtive lighting. She thought of the mask again—Jekyll
and Hyde, odd and even. Her stomach turned over again, making her feel a little
weak. The Wheel slowed, began to tick. The teenagers began to shout at it,
urging it onward.
“Little more,
baby,” Steve Bernhardt cajoled it. “Little more, honey.”
The Wheel ticked
into the third trip and came to a stop on 24. A cheer went up from the crowd
again.
“Johnny, you did
it, you did it I” Sarah cried.
The pitchman
whistled through his teeth in disgust and paid off. A dollar for the teenagers,
two for Bernhardt, a ten and two ones for Johnny. He now had eighteen dollars
in front of him on the board.
“Hot stick, hot
stick, hey-hey-hey. One more, buddy? This Wheel's your friend tonight.”
Johnny looked at
Sarah.
Up to you,
Johnny. “But she felt suddenly uneasy.
“Go on, man,” the
teenager with the Jimi Hendrix button urged. “I love to see this guy get a
beatin.”
“Okay,” Johnny said,
“last time.”
“Get it down
where you want it down.”
They all looked
at Johnny, who stood thoughtful for a moment, rubbing his forehead. His usually
good-humored face was still and serious and composed. He was looking at the
Wheel in its cage of lights and his fingers worked steadily at the smooth skin
over his right eye.
“As is,” he said
finally.
A little
speculative murmur from the crowd.
“Oh, man, that is
really tempting it.”
“He's hot,”
Bernhardt said doubtfully. He glanced back at his wife, who shrugged to show
her complete mystification. “I'll tag along with you, long, tall, and ugly.”
The teenager with
the button glanced at his friend, who shrugged and nodded. “Okay,” he said,
turning back to the pitchman. “We'll stick, too.”
The Wheel spun.
Behind them Sarah heard one of the roustabouts bet the other five dollars
against the third trip coming up again. Her stomach did another forward roll
but this time it didn't stop; it just went on somersaulting over and over and
she became aware that she was getting sick. Cold sweat stood out on her face.
The Wheel began
to slow in the first trip, and one of the teenagers flapped his hands in
disgust. But he didn't move away. It ticked past 11, 12, 13. The pitchman
looked happy at last. Tick-tock-tick, 14, 15, 16.
“It's going
through,” Bernhardt said. There was awe in his voice. The pitchman looked at
his Wheel as if he wished he could just reach out and stop it. It clicked past
20, 21, and
settled to a stop in the slot marked 22.
There was another
shout of triumph from the crowd, which had now grown almost to twenty. All the
people left at the fair were gathered here, it seemed. Faintly, Sarah heard the
roustabouts who had lost his bet grumble something about “Shitass luck,” as he
paid off. Her head thumped. Her legs felt suddenly, horribly unsteady, the
muscles trembling and untrustworthy. She blinked her eyes rapidly several times
and got only a nauseating instant of vertigo for her pains. The world seemed to
tilt up at a skewed angle, as if they were still on the Whip, and then slowly
settle back down.
I got a bad hot
dog, she thought dismally. That's what you get for trying your luck at the
county fair, Sarah.
“Hey-hey-hey,”
the pitchman said without much enthusiasm, and paid off. Two dollars for the
teenagers, four for Steve Bernhardt, and then a bundle for Johnny -three tens,
a five, and a one. The pitchman was not overjoyed, but he was sanguine. If the
tall, skinny man with the good-looking blonde tried the third trip again, the
pitchman would almost surely gather back in everything he had paid out. It
wasn't the skinny man's money until it was off the board. And if he walked?
Well, he had cleared a thousand dollars on the Wheel just today, he could
afford to pay out a little tonight. The word would get around that Sol
Drummore's Wheel had been hit and tomorrow play would be heavier than ever. A
winner was a good ad.
“Lay em down
where you want em down,” he chanted. Seyeral of the others had moved up to the
board and were putting down dimes and quarters. But the pitchman looked only at
his money player. “What do you say, fella? Want to shoot the moon?”
Johnny looked
down at Sarah. “What do you... hey, are you all right? You're white as a
ghost.”
“My stomach,” she
said, managing a smile. “I think it was my hot dog. Can we go home?”
“Sure. You bet.
“He was gathering the wad of crinkled bills up from the board when his eyes
happened on the Wheel again. The warm concern for her that had been in them
faded out. They seemed to darken again, become speculative in a cold way. He's
looking at that wheel the way a little boy would look at his own private ant
colony, Sarah thought.
“Just a minute,”
he said.
“All right,”
Sarah answered. But she felt light-headed now as well as sick to her stomach.
And there were rumblings in her lower belly that she didn't like. Not the
backdoor trots, Lord. Please.
She thought: He
can't be content until he's lost it all back.
And then, with
strange certainty: But he's not going to lose.
“What do you say,
buddy?” the pitchman asked. “On or off, in or out.”
“Shit or git,”
one of the roustabouts said, and there was nervous laughter. Sarah's head swam.
Johnny suddenly
shoved bills and quarters up to the corner of the board.
“What are you
doing,” the pitchman asked, genuinely shocked.
“The whole wad on
19,” Johnny said.
Sarah wanted to
moan and bit it back.
The crowd
murmured.
“Don't push it,”
Steve Bernhardt said in Johnny's ear. Johnny didn't answer. He was staring at
the Wheel with something like indifference. His eyes seemed almost violet.
There was a
sudden jingling sound that Sarah at first thought must be in her own ears. Then
she saw that the others who had put money down were sweeping it back off the
board again, leaving Johnny to make his play alone.
No! She found
herself wanting to shout. Not like that, not alone, it isn't... ...
She bit down on
her lips. She was afraid that she might throw up if she opened her mouth. Her
stomach was very bad now. Johnny's pile of winnings sat alone under the naked
lights. Fifty-four dollars, and the single-number pay-off was ten for one.
The pitchman wet
his lips. “Mister, the state says I'm not supposed to take any single number
bets over two dollars.”
“Come on,”
Bernhardt growled. “You aren't supposed to take trip bets over ten and you just
let the guy bet eighteen. What is it, your balls starting to sweat?”
“No, it's just ..
“Come on,” Johnny
said abruptly. “One way or the other. My girl's sick.”
The pitchman
sized up the crowd. The crowd looked back at him with hostile eyes. It was bad.
They didn't understand that the guy was just throwing his money away and he was
trying to restrain him. Fuck it. The crowd wasn't going to like it either way.
Let the guy do his headstand and lose his money so he could shut down for the
night.
“Well,” he said,
“as long as none of youse is state inspectors.. . “He turned to his Wheel.
“Round and round she's gonna go, and where she's gonna stop, ain't nobody
knows.”
He spun, sending
the numbers into an immediate blur. For a time that seemed much longer than it
actually could have been, there was no sound but the whirring of the Wheel of
Fortune, the night wind rippling a swatch of canvas somewhere, and the sick
thump in Sarah's own head. In her mind she begged Johnny to put his arm around
her but he only stood quietly with his hands on the playing board and his eyes
on the Wheel, which seemed determined to spin forever.
At last it slowed
enough for her to be able to read the numbers and she saw 19, the 1 and 9
painted bright red on a black background. Up and down, up and down. The Wheel's
smooth whirr broke into a steady ticka-ticka-ticka that was very loud in the
stillness.
Now the numbers
marched past the pointer with slowing deliberation.
One of the
roustabouts called out in wonder: “By the Jesus, it's gonna be close, anyway!”
Johnny stood
calmly, watching the Wheel, and now it seemed to her (although it might have
been the sickness, which was now rolling through her belly in gripping,
peristaltic waves) that his eyes were almost black. Jekyll and Hyde, she
thought, and was suddenly, senselessly, afraid of him.
Ticka-ticka-ticka.
The Wheel clicked
into second trip, passed 15 and 16, clicked over 17 and, after an instant's hesitation,
18 as well. With a final tick! the pointer dropped into the 19 slot. The crowd
held its breath. The Wheel revolved slowly, bringing the pointer up against the
small pin between 19 and 20. For a quarter of a second it seemed that the pin
could not hold the pointer in the 19 slot; that the last of its dying velocity
would carry it over to 20. Then the Wheel rebounded, its force spent, and came
to rest.
For a moment
there was no sound from the crowd. No sound at all.
Then one of the
teenagers, soft and awed: “Hey, man, you just won five hundred and forty
dollars.”
Steve Bernhardt:
“I never seen a run like that. Never. “Then the crowd cheered. Johnny was
slapped on the back, pummeled. People brushed by Sarah to get at him, to touch
him, and for the moment they were separated she felt miserable, raw panic.
Strengthless, she was butted this way and that, her stomach rolling crazily. A
dozen afterimages of the Wheel whirled blackly before her eyes.
A moment later
Johnny was with her and she saw with weak gladness that it really was Johnny
and not the composed, mannequinlike figure that had watched the Wheel on its
last spin. He looked confused and concerned about her.
“Baby, I'm
sorry,” he said, and she loved him for that.
“I'm okay,” she
answered, not knowing if she was or not. The pitchman cleared his throat. “The
Wheel's shut down,” he said. “The Wheel's shut down.”
An accepting,
ill-tempered rumble from the crowd.
The pitchman
looked at Johnny. “I'll have to give you a check, young gentleman. I don't keep
that much cash in the booth.”
“Sure, anything,”
Johnny said. “Just make it quick. The lady here really is sick.”
“Sure, a check,”
Steve Bernhardt said with infinite contempt. “He'll give you a check that'll
bounce as high as the WGAN Tall Tower and he'll be down in Florida for the
winter.”
“My dear sir,”
the pitchman began, “I assure you...
“Oh, go assure
your mother, maybe she'll believe you, Bernhardt said. He suddenly reached over
the playing board and groped beneath the counter.
“Hey!” The
pitchman yelped. “This is robbery!”
The crowd did not
appear impressed with his claim.
“Please,” Sarah
muttered. Her head was whirling.
“I don't care
about the money,” Johnny said suddenly. “Let us by, please. The lady's sick.”
“Oh, man,” the
teenager with the Jimi Hendrix button said, but he and his buddy drew
reluctantly aside.
“No, Johnny,”
Sarah said, although she was only holding back from vomiting by an act of will
now. “Get your money. “Five hundred dollars was Johnny's salary for three
weeks.
“Pay off, you cheap
tinhorn!” Bernhardt roared. He brought up the Roi-Tan cigar box from under the
counter, pushed it aside without even looking inside it, groped again, and this
time came up with a steel lockbox painted industrial green. He slammed it down
on the play-board. “If there ain't five hundred and forty bucks in there, I'll
eat my own shirt in front of all these people. “He dropped a hard, heavy hand
on Johnny's shoulder. “You just wait a minute, sonny. You're gonna have your
payday or my name's not Steve Bernhardt.”
“Really, sir, I
don't have that much...”
“You pay,” Steve
Bernhardt said, leaning over him, “or I'll see you shut down. I mean that. I'm
sincere about it.”
The pitchman
sighed and fished inside his shirt. He produced a key on a fine-link chain. The
crowd sighed. Sarah could stay no longer. Her stomach felt bloated and suddenly
as still as death. Everything was going to come up, everything, and at
express-train speed. She stumbled away from Johnny's side and battered through
the crowd.
“Honey, you all
right?” a woman's voice asked her, and Sarah shook her head blindly.
“Sarah!” Johnny
called.
You just can't
hide... from Jekyll and Hyde, she thought incoherently. The fluorescent mask
seemed to hang sickly before her eyes in the midway dark as she hurried past
the merry-go-round. She struck a light pole with her shoulder, staggered,
grabbed it, and threw up. It seemed to come all the way from her heels,
convulsing her stomach like a sick, slick fist. She let herself go with it as
much as she could.
Smells like
cotton candy, she thought, and with a groan she did it again, then again. Spots
danced in front of her eyes. The last heave had brought up little more than
mucus and air.
“Oh, my,” she
said weakly, and clung to the light pole to keep from falling over. Somewhere
behind her Johnny was calling her name, but she couldn't answer just yet,
didn't want to. Her stomach was settling back down a little and for just a
moment she wanted to stand here in the dark and congratulate herself on being
alive, on having survived her night at the fair.
“Sarah? Sarah!”
She spat twice to
clear her mouth a little.
“Over here,
Johnny.”
He came around
the carousel with its plaster horses frozen in mid-leap. She saw he was absently
clutching a thick wad of greenbacks in one hand.
“Are you all
right?”
“No, but better.
I threw up.”
“Oh. Oh, Jesus.
Let's go home. “He took her arm gently.
“You got your
money.
He glanced down
at the wad of bills and then tucked it absently into his pants pocket. “Yeah.
Some of it or all of it, I don't know. That burly guy counted it out.”
Sarah took a
handkerchief from her purse and began rubbing her mouth with it. Drink of
water, she thought. I'd sell my soul for a drink of water.
“You ought to care,”
she said. “It's a lot of money.”
“Found money
brings bad luck,” he said darkly. “One of my mother's sayings. She has a
million of em. And she's death on gambling.”
“Dyed-in-the-wool
Baptist,” Sarah said, and then shuddered convulsively.
“You okay?” he
asked, concerned.
“The chills,” she
said. “When we get in the car I want the heater on full blast, and... oh, Lord,
I'm going to do it again.”
She turned away
from him and retched up spittle with a groaning sound. She staggered. He held
her gently but firmly. “Can you get back to the car?”
“Yes. I'm all
right now. “But her head ached and her mouth tasted foul and the muscles of her
back and belly all felt sprung out of joint, strained and achey.
They walked
slowly down the midway together, scuffing through the sawdust, passing tents
that had been closed up and snugged down for the night. A shadow glided up
behind them and Johnny glanced around sharply, perhaps aware of how much money
he had in his pocket.
It was one of the
teenagers—about fifteen years old. He smiled shyly at them. “I hope you feel
better,” he said to Sarah. “It's those hot dogs, I bet. You can get a bad one
pretty easy.”
“Ag, don't talk
about it,” Sarah said.
“You need a hand
getting her to the car?” he asked Johnny.
“No, thanks.
We're fine.”
“Okay. I gotta
cut out anyway. “But he paused a moment longer, his shy smile widening into a
grin. “I love to see that guy take a beatin.”
He trotted off
into the dark.
Sarah's small,
white station wagon was the only car left in the dark parking lot; it crouched
under a sodium light like a forlorn, forgotten pup. Johnny opened the passenger
door for Sarah and she folded herself carefully in. He slipped in behind the
wheel and started it up.
“It'll take a few
minutes for the heater,” he said.
“Never mind. I'm
hot now.
He looked at her
and saw the sweat breaking on her face. “Maybe we ought to trundle you up to
the emergency room at Eastern Maine Medical,” he said. “If it's salmonella, it
could be serious.”
“No, I'm okay. I
just want to go home and go to sleep, I'm going to get up just long enough
tomorrow morning to call in sick at school and then go back to sleep again.”
“Don't even
bother to get up that long. I'll call you in, Sarah.”
She looked at him
gratefully. “Would you?”
“Sure.”
They were headed back
to the main highway now. “I'm sorry I can't come back to your place with you,”
Sarah said. “Really and truly.”
“Not your fault.”
“Sure it is. I
ate the bad hot dog. Unlucky Sarah.”
“I love you,
Sarah,” Johnny said. So it was out, it couldn't be called back, it hung between
them in the moving car waiting for someone to do something about it.
She did what she
could. “Thank you, Johnny. “They drove on in a comfortable silence.
CHAPTER TWO
1.
It was nearly
midnight when Johnny turned the wagon into her driveway. Sarah was dozing.
“Hey,” he said,
cutting the motor and shaking her gently. “We're here.”
“Oh... okay. “She
sat up and drew her coat more tightly about her.
“How do you
feel?”
“Better. My
stomach's sore and my back hurts, but better. Johnny, you take the car back to
Cleaves with you.
“No, I better
not,” he said. “Someone would see it parked in front of the apartment house all
night. That kind of talk we don't need.”
“But I was going
to come back with you...
Johnny smiled.
“And that would have made it worth the risk, even if we had to walk three
blocks. Besides, I want you to have the car in case you change your mind about
the emergency room.”
“I won't.”
“You might. Can I
come in and call a cab?”
“You sure can.
They went in and
Sarah turned on the lights before being attacked by a fresh bout of the
shivers.
“The phone's in
the living room. I'm going to lie down and cover up with a quilt.”
The living room
was small and functional, saved from a barracks flavor only by the splashy
curtains—flowers in a psychedelic pattern and color—and a series of posters
along one wall: Dylan at Forest Hills, Baez at Carnegie Hall, Jefferson
Airplane at Berkeley, the Byrds in Cleveland.
Sarah lay down on
the couch and pulled a quilt up to her chin. Johnny looked at her with real
concern. Her face was paper-white except for the dark circles under her eyes.
She looked about as sick as a person can get.
“Maybe I ought to
spend the night here,” he said. “Just in case something happens, like...”
“Like a hairline fracture
at the top of my spine?” She looked at him with rueful humor.
“Well, you know.
Whatever.”
The ominous
rumbling in her nether regions decided her. She had fully intended to finish
this night by sleeping with John Smith. It wasn't going to work out that way.
But that didn't mean she had to end the evening with him in attendance while
she threw up, dashed for the w. c., and chugged most of a bottle of
Pepto-Bismol.
“I'll be okay,”
she said. “It was just a bad carnival hot dog, Johnny. You could have just as
easily gotten it yourself. Give me a call during your free period tomorrow.
“You sure?”
“Yes, I am.”
“Okay, kid. “He
picked up the phone with no further argument and called his cab. She closed her
eyes, lulled and comforted by the sound of his voice. One of the things she
liked most about him was that he would always really try to do the right thing,
the best thing, with no self-serving bullshit. That was good. She was too tired
and feeling too low to play little social games.
“The deed's
done,” he said, hanging up. “They'll have a guy over in five minutes.”
“At least you've
got cab fare,” she said, smiling.
“And I plan to
tip handsomely,” he replied, doing a passable W. C. Fields.
He came over to
the couch, sat beside her, held her hand.
“Johnny, how did
you do it?”
“Hmmm?”
“The Wheel. How
could you do that?”
“It was a streak,
that's all,” he said, looking a little uncomfortable. “Everybody has a streak
once in a while. Like at the race track or playing blackjack or just matching
dimes.”
“No,” she said.
“Huh?”
“I don't think
everybody does have a streak once in a while. It was almost uncanny. It...
scared me a little.”
“Did it?”
“Yes.”
Johnny sighed.
“Once in a while I get feelings, that's all. For as long as I can remember,
since I was just a little kid. And I've always been good at finding things
people have lost. Like that little Lisa Schumann at school. You know the girl I
mean?”
“Little, sad,
mousy Lisa?” She smiled. “I know her. She's wandering in clouds of perplexity
through my business grammar course.
“She lost her
class ring,” Johnny said, “and came to me in tears about it. I asked her if
she'd checked the back corners of the top shelf in her locker. Just a guess.
But it was there.”
“And you've
always been able to do that?”
He laughed and
shook his head. “Hardly ever. “The smile slipped a little. “But it was strong
tonight, Sarah. I had that Wheel... “He closed his fists softly and looked at
them, now frowning. “I had it right here. And it had the strangest goddam
associations for me.”
“Like what?”
“Rubber,” he said
slowly. “Burning rubber. And cold. And ice. Black ice. Those things were in the
back of my mind. God knows why. And a bad feeling. Like to beware.”
She looked at him
closely, saying nothing, and his face slowly cleared.
“But it's gone now,
whatever it was. Nothing probably.”
“It was five
hundred dollars worth of good luck, anyway,” she said. Johnny laughed and
nodded. He didn't talk anymore and she drowsed, glad to have him there. She came
back to wakefulness when headlights from outside splashed across the wall. His
cab.
“I'll call,” he
said, and kissed her face gently. “You sure you don't want me to hang around?”
Suddenly she did,
but she shook her head “Call me,” she said.
“Period three,”
he promised. He went to the door.
“Johnny?”
He turned back.
“I love you,
Johnny,” she said, and his face lit up like a lamp.
He blew a kiss.
“Feel better,” he said, “and we'll talk.”
She nodded, but
it was four-and-a-half years before she talked to Johnny Smith again.
2.
“Do you mind if I
sit up front?” Johnny asked the cab driver.
“Nope. Just don't
bump your knee on the meter. It's delicate.”
Johnny slid his
long legs under the meter with some effort and slammed the door. The cabbie, a
middle-aged man with a bald head and a paunch, dropped his flag and the cab
cruised up Flagg Street.
“Where to?”
“Cleaves Mills,”
Johnny said. “Main Street. I'll show you where.”
“I got to ask you
for fare-and-a-half,” the cabbie said. “I don't like to, but I got to come back
empty from there.”
Johnny's hand
closed absently over the lump of bills in his pants pocket. He tried to
remember if he had ever had so much money on him at one time before. Once. He
had bought a two-year-old Chevy for twelve hundred dollars. On a whim, he had
asked for cash at the savings bank, just to see what all that cash looked like.
It hadn't been all that wonderful, but the surprise on the car dealer's face
when Johnny pumped twelve one hundred dollar bills into his hand had been
wonderful to behold. But this lump of money didn't make him feel good at all,
just vaguely uncomfortable, and his mother's axiom recurred to him: Found money
brings bad luck.
“Fare-and-a-half's
okay,” he told the cabbie.
“Just as long's
we understand each other,” the cabbie said more expansively. “I got over so
quick on account of I had a call at the Riverside and nobody there would own up
when I got over there.”
“That so?” Johnny
asked without much interest. Dark houses flashed by outside. He had won five
hundred dollars, and nothing remotely like it had ever happened to him before.
That phantom smell of rubber burning... the sense of partially reliving
something that had happened to him when he was very small... and that feeling
of bad luck coming to balance off the good was still with him.
“Yeah, these
drunks call and then they change their minds,” the cabbie said. “Damn drunks, I
hate em. They call and decide what the hell, they'll have a few more beers. Or
they drink up the fare while they're waitin and when I come in and yell “Who
wants the cab?” they don't want to own up.
“Yeah,” Johnny
said. On their left the Penobscot River flowed by, dark and oily. Then Sarah
getting sick and saying she loved him on top of everything else. Probably just
caught her in a weak moment, but God! If she had meant it I He had been gone on
her almost since the first date.
That was the luck
of the evening, not beating that Wheel. But it was the Wheel his mind kept
coming back to, worrying at it. In the dark he could still see it revolving,
and in his ears he could hear the slowing ticka-ticka-ticka of the marker
bumping over the pins like something heard in an uneasy dream. Found money
brings bad luck.
The cabbie turned
off onto Route 6, now well-launched into his own monologue.
“So I says, “Blow
it outcha you-know-where.” I mean, the kid is a smart-aleck, right? I don't
have to take a load of horseshit like that from anyone, including my own boy. I
been drivin this cab twenty-six years. I been held up six times. I been in
fender-benders without number, although I never had a major crash, for which I
thank Mary Mother of Jesus and Saint Christopher and God the Father Almighty,
know what I mean? And every week, no matter how thin that week was, I put five
bucks away for his college. Ever since he was nothin but a pip squeak suckin a
bottle. And what for? So he can come home one fine day and tell me the
president of the United States is a pig. Hot damn! The kid probably thinks I'm
a pig, although he knows if he ever said it I'd rearrange his teeth for him. So
that's today's young generation for you. So I says, “Blow it outcha-you-know.
where. "”
“Yeah,” Johnny
said. Now woods were floating by. Carson's Bog was on the left. They were seven
miles from Cleaves Mills, give or take. The meter kicked over another dime.
One thin dime,
one tenth of a dollar. Hey-hey-hey.
“What's your
game, might I ask?” the cabbie said.
“I teach high
school in Cleaves.”
“Oh, yeah? So you
know what I mean. What the hell's wrong with these kids, anyway?”
Well, they ate a
bad hot dog called Vietnam and it gave them ptomaine. A guy named Lyndon
Johnson sold it to them. So they went to this other guy, see, and they said,
“Jesus, mister, I'm sick as hell. “And this other guy, his name was Nixon, he
said, “I know how to fix that,
Have a few more
hot dogs. “And that's what's wrong with the youth of America.
“I don't know,”
Johnny said.
“You plan all
your life and you do what you can,” the cabbie said, and now there was honest
bewilderment in his voice, a bewilderment which would not last much longer
because the cabbie was embarked upon the last minute of his life. And Johnny,
who didn't know that, felt a real pity for the man, a sympathy for his
inability to understand.
Come on over
baby, whole lotta shakin goin on.
“You never want
nothing but the best, and the kid comes home with hair down to his asshole and
says the president of the United States is a pig. A pig! Sheeyit, I don't...”
“Look out!”
Johnny yelled.
The cabbie had
half-turned to face him, his pudgy American Legionnaire's face earnest and
angry and miserable in the dashlights and in the sudden glow of oncoming
headlights. Now he snapped forward again, but too late.
“Jeeesus.. -,
There were two
cars, one on each side of the white line. They had been dragging, side by side,
coming up over the hill, a Mustang and a Dodge Charger. Johnny could hear the
revved-up whine of their engines. The Charger was boring straight down at them.
It never tried to get out of the way and the cabbie froze at the wheel.
“Jeeeeee...
Johnny was barely
aware of the Mustang flashing by on their left. Then the cab and the Charger
met head-on and Johnny felt himself getting lifted up and out. There was no
pain, although he was marginally aware that his thighs had connected with the
taximeter hard enough to rip it out of its frame.
There was the
sound of smashing glass. A huge gout of flame stroked its way up into the
night. Johnny's head collided with the cab's windshield and knocked it out.
Reality began to go down a hole. Pain, faint and far away, in his shoulders and
arms as the rest of him followed his head through the jagged windshield. He was
flying. Flying into the October night.
Dim flashing
thoughs Am I dying? Is this going to kill me?
Interior voice
answering: Yes, this is probably it.
Flying. October
stars flung across the night. Racketing boom of exploding gasoline. An orange
glow. Then darkness.
His trip through
the void ended with a hard thump and a splash. Cold wetness as he went into
Carson's Bog, twenty-five feet from where the Charger and the cab, welded
together, pushed a pyre of flame into the night sky.
Darkness.
Fading.
Until all that
was left seemed to be a giant red-and-black wheel revolving in such emptiness
as there may be between the stars, try your luck, first time fluky, second time
lucky, hey-hey-hey. The wheel revolved up and down, red and black, the marker
ticking past the pins, and he strained to see if it was going to come up double
zero, house number, house spin, everybody loses but the house. He strained to
see but the wheel was gone. There was only blackness and that universal
emptiness, negatory, good buddy, el zilcho. Cold limbo.
Johnny Smith
stayed there a long, long time.
CHAPTER THREE
1.
At some time a little
past two A. M. on the morning of October 30, 1970, the telephone began to ring
in the downstairs hall of a small house about a hundred and fifty miles south
of Cleaves Mills.
Herb Smith sat up
in bed, disoriented, dragged half-way across the threshold of sleep and left in
its doorway, groggy and disoriented.
Vera's voice
beside him, muffled by the pillow. “Phone.”
“Yeah,” he said,
and swung out of bed. He was a big, broad-shouldered man in his late forties,
losing his hair, now dressed in blue pajama bottoms. He went out into the
upstairs hall and turned on the light. Down below, the phone shrilled away.
He went down to
what Vera liked to call “the phone nook. “It consisted of the phone and a
strange little desk-table that she had gotten with Green Stamps about three
years ago. Herb had refused from the first to slide his two hundred and forty
pound bulk into it. When he talked on the phone, he stood up. The drawer of the
desk-table was full of Upper Rooms, Reader's Digests, and Fate magazines.
Herb reached for
the phone, then let it ring again.
A phone call in
the middle of the night usually meant one of three things: an old friend had
gotten totally shitfaced and had decided you'd be glad to hear from him even at
two in the morning; a wrong number; bad news.
Hoping for the
middle choice, Herb lifted up the phone. “Hello?”
A crisp male
voice said: “Is this the Herbert Smith residence?”
“Yes?”
“To whom am I
speaking, please?”
“I'm Herb Smith.
What...”
“Will you hold
for a moment?”
“Yes, but who. —
Too late. There
was a faint clunk in his ear, as if the party on the other end had dropped one
of his shoes. He had been put on hold. Of the many things he disliked about the
telephone—bad connections, kid pranksters who wanted to know if you had Prince
Albert in a can, operators who sounded like computers, and smoothies who wanted
you to buy magazine subscriptions—the thing he disliked the most was being on
hold. It was one of those insidious things that had crept into modern life
almost unnoticed over the last ten years or so. Once upon a time the fellow on
the other end would simply have said, “Hold the phone, willya?” and set it
down. At least in those days you were able to hear faraway conversations, a
barking dog, a radio, a crying baby. Being on hold was a totally different
proposition. The line was darkly, smoothly blank. You were nowhere. Why didn't
they just say, “Will you hold on while I bury you alive for a little while?”
He realized he
was just a tiny bit scared.
“Herbert?”
He turned round,
the phone to his ear. Vera was at the top of the stairs in her faded brown
bathrobe, hair up in curlers, some sort of cream hardened to a castlike
consistency on her cheeks and forehead.
“Who is it?”
“I don't know
yet. They've got me on hold.”
“On hold? At
quarter past two in the morning?”
“Yes.”
“It's not Johnny,
is it? Nothing's happened to Johnny?”
“I don't know,”
he said, struggling to keep his voice from rising. Somebody calls you at two in
the morning, puts you on hold, you count your relatives and inventory their
condition. You make lists of old aunts. You tot up the ailments of
grandparents, if you still have them. You wonder if the ticker of one of your
friends just stopped ticking. And you try not to think that you have one son
you love very much, or about how these calls always seem to come at two in the
morning, or how all of a sudden your calves are getting stiff and heavy with
tension...
Vera had closed
her eyes and had folded her hands in the middle of her thin bosom. Herb tried
to control his irritation. Restrained himself from saying, “Vera, the Bible
makes the strong suggestion that you go and do that in your closet. “That would
earn him Vera Smith's Sweet Smile for Unbelieving and Hellbound Husbands. At
two o'clock in the morning, and on hold to boot, he didn't think he could take
that particular smile.
The phone clunked
again and a different male voice, an older one, said, “Hello, Mr. Smith?”
“Yes, who is
this?”
“I'm sorry to have
kept you waiting, sir. Sergeant Meggs of the state police, Orono branch.”
“Is it my boy?
Something about my boy?”
Unaware, he
sagged onto the seat of the phone nook. He felt weak all over.
Sergeant Meggs
said, “Do you have a son named John Smith, no middle initial?”
“Is he all right?
Is he okay?”
Footsteps on the
stairs. Vera stood beside him. For a moment she looked calm, and then she
clawed for the phone like a tigress. “What is it? What's happened to my
Johnny?”
Herb yanked the
handset away from her, splintering one of her fingernails. Staring at her hard
he said, “I am handling this.”
She stood looking
at him, her mild, faded blue eyes wide above the hand clapped to her mouth.
“Mr. Smith, are
you there?”
Words that seemed
coated with novocaine fell from Herb's mouth. “I have a son named John Smith,
no middle initial, yes. He lives in Cleaves Mills. He's a teacher at the high
school there.”
“He's been in a
car accident, Mr. Smith. His condition is extremely grave. I'm very sorry to
have to give you this news. “The voice of Meggs was cadenced, formal.
“Oh, my God,”
Herb. said. His thoughts were whirling. Once, in the army, a great, mean,
blond-haired Southern boy named Childress had beaten the crap out of him behind
an Atlanta bar. Herb had felt like this then, unmanned, all his thoughts
knocked into a useless, smeary sprawl. “Oh, my God,” he said again.
“He's dead?” Vera
asked. “He's dead? Johnny's dead?”
He covered the
mouthpiece. “No,” he said. “Not dead.”
“Not dead! Not
dead!” she cried, and fell on her knees in the phone nook with an audible thud.
“0 God we most heartily thank Thee and ask that You show Thy tender care and
loving mercy to our son and shelter him with Your loving hand we ask it in the
name of Thy only begotten Son Jesus and...
“Vera shut up!”
For a moment all
three of them were silent, as if considering the world and its not-so-amusing
ways: Herb, his bulk squashed into the phone nook bench with his knees crushed
up against the underside of the desk and a bouquet of plastic flowers in his
face: Vera with her knees planted on the hallway furnace grille; the unseen
Sergeant Meggs was in a strange auditory way witnessing this black comedy.
“Mr. Smith?”
“Yes. I... I
apologize for the ruckus.”
“Quite
understandable,” Meggs said.
“My boy... Johnny..
was he driving his Volkswagen?”
“Deathtraps,
deathtraps, those little beetles are death-traps,” Vera babbled. Tears streamed
down her face, sliding over the smooth hard surface of the nightpack like rain
on chrome.
“He was in a
Bangor & Orono Yellow Cab,” Meggs said. “I'll give you the situation as I
understand it now. There were three vehicles involved, two of them driven by
kids from Cleaves Mills. They were dragging. They came up over what's known as
Carson's Hill on Route 6, headed east. Your son was in the cab, headed west,
toward Cleaves. The cab and the car on the wrong side of the road collided
headon. The cab driver was killed, and so was the boy driving the other car.
Your son and a passenger in that other car are at Eastern Maine Med. I understand
both of them are listed as critical.”
“Critical,” Herb
said.
“Critical!
Critical! “Vera moaned.
Oh, Christ, we
sound like one of those weird off Broadway shows, Herb thought. He felt
embarrassed for Vera, and for Sergeant Meggs, who must surely be hearing Vera,
like some nutty Greek chorus in the back-ground. He wondered how many
conversations like this Sergeant Meggs had held in the course of his job. He
decided he must have had a good many. Possibly he had already called the cab
driver's wife and the dead boy's mother to pass the news. How had they reacted?
And what did it matter? Wasn't it Vera's right to weep for her son? And why did
a person have to think such crazy things at a time like this?
“Eastern Maine,”
Herb said. He jotted it on a pad. The drawing on top of the pad showed a
smiling telephone handset. The phone cord spelled out the words PHONE PAL. “How
is he hurt?”
“I beg your
pardon, Mr. Smith?”
“Where did he get
it? Head? Belly? What? Is he burned?”
Vera shrieked.
“Vera can you please
shut UP!”
“You'd have to
call the hospital for that information,” Meggs said carefully. “I'm a couple of
hours from having a complete report.”
“All right. All
right.”
“Mr. Smith, I'm
sorry to have to call you in the middle of the night with such bad news...
“It's bad, all
right,” he said. “I've got to call the hospital, Sergeant Meggs. Good-bye.”
“Good night, Mr.
Smith.”
Herb hung up and
stared stupidly at the phone. Just like that it happens, he thought. How “bout
that. Johnny.
Vera uttered
another shriek, and he saw with some alarm that she had grabbed her hair,
rollers and all, and was pulling it. “It's a judgment! A judgment on the way we
live, on sin, on something! Herb, get down on your knees with me...”
“Vera, I have to
call the hospital. I don't want to do it on my knees.”
“We'll pray for
him... promise to do better... if you'd only come to church more often with me
I know... may be it's your cigars, drinking beer with those men after work...
cursing... taking the name of the Lord God in vain... a judgment... it's a
judgment...”
He put his hands
on her face to stop its wild, uneasy whipping back and forth. The feel of the
night cream was unpleasant, but he didn't take his hands away. He felt pity for
her. For the last ten years his wife had been walking somewhere in a gray area
between devotion to her Baptist faith and what he considered to be a mild
religious mania. Five years after Johnny was born, the doctor had found a
number of benign tumors in her uterus and vaginal canal. Their removal had made
it impossible for her to have another baby. Five years later, more tumors had
necessitated a radical hysterectomy. That was when it had really begun for her,
a deep religious feeling strangely coupled with other beliefs. She avidly read
pamphlets on Atlantis, spaceships from heaven, races of “pure Christians” who
might live in the bowels of the earth. She read Fate magazine almost as
frequently as the Bible, often using one to illuminate the other.
“Vera,” he said.
“We'll do
better,” she whispered, her eyes pleading with him. “We'll do better and he'll
live. You'll see. You'll...”
“Vera.”
She fell silent,
looking at him.
“Let's call the
hospital and see just how bad it really is,” he said gently.
“A-All right.
Yes.”
“Can you sit on
the stairs there and keep perfectly quiet?”
“I want to pray,”
she said childishly. “You can't stop me.”
“I don't want to.
As long as you pray to yourself.”
“Yes. To myself.
All right, Herb.”
She went to the
stairs and sat down and pulled her robe primly around her. She folded her hands
and her lips began to move. Herb called the hospital. Two hours later they were
headed north on the nearly deserted Maine Turnpike. Herb was behind the wheel
of their “66 Ford station wagon. Vera sat bolt upright in the passenger seat.
Her Bible was on her lap.
The telephone
woke Sarah at quarter of nine. She went to answer it with half her mind still
asleep in bed. Her back hurt from the vomiting she had done the night before
and the muscles in her stomach felt strained, but otherwise she felt much
better.
She picked up the
phone, sure it would be Johnny. “Hello?”
“Hi, Sarah. “It
wasn't Johnny. It was Anne Strafford from school. Anne was a year older than
Sarah and in her second year at Cleaves. She taught Spanish. She was a bubbly,
effervescent girl and Sarah liked her very much. But this morning she sounded
subdued.
“How are you,
Annie? It's only temporary. Probably Johnny told you. Carnival hot dogs, I
guess...”
“Oh, my God, you
don't know. You don't... “The words were swallowed in odd, choked sounds. Sarah
listened to them, frowning. Her initial puzzlement turned to deadly disquiet as
she realized Anne was crying.
“Anne? What's
wrong? It's not Johnny, is it? Not...”
“There was an accident,”
Anne said. She was now sobbing openly. “He was in a cab. There was a head-on
collision. The driver of the other car was Brad Freneau, I had him in Spanish
II, he died, his girl friend died this morning, Mary Thibault, she was in one
of Johnny's classes, I heard, it's horrible, just horr.
“Johnny!” Sarah
screamed into the phone. She was sick to her stomach again. Her hands and feet
were suddenly as cold as four gravestones. “What about Johnny?”
“He's in critical
condition, Sarah. Dave Pelsen called the hospital this morning. He's not
expected... well, it's very bad.”
The world was
going gray. Anne was still talking but her voice was far and wee, as e. e.
cummings had said about the balloon man. Flocked images tumbling over and over
one another, none making sense. The carny wheel. The mirror maze. Johnny's
eyes, strangely violet, almost black. His dear, homely face in the harsh,
county fair lighting, naked bulbs strung on electric wire.
“Not Johnny,” she
said, far and wee, far and wee. “You're mistaken. He was fine when he left
here.”
And Anne's voice
coming back like a fast serve, her voice so shocked and unbelieving, so
affronted that such a thing should have happened to someone her own age,
someone young and vital. “They told Dave he'd never wake up even if he survived
the operation. They have to operate because his head... his head was...”
Was she going to
say crushed? That Johnny's head had been crushed?
Sarah fainted
then, possibly~to avoid that final irrevocable word, that final horror. The
phone spilled out of her fingers and she sat down hard in a gray world and then
slipped over and the phone swung back and forth in a decreasing arc, Anne
Strafford's voice coming out of it: “Sarah?... Sarah? . Sarah?”
3.
When Sarah got to
Eastern Maine Medical, it was quarter past twelve. The nurse at the reception
desk looked at her white, strained face, estimated her capacity for further
truth, and told her that John Smith was still in OR. She added that Johnny's
mother and father were in the waiting room.
“Thank you,”
Sarah said. She turned right instead of left, wound up in a medical closet, and
had to backtrack.
The waiting room
was done in bright, solid colors that gashed her eyes A few people sat around
looking at tattered magazines or empty space. A gray-haired woman came in from
the elevators, gave her visitor's pass to a friend, and Sat down. The friend
clicked away on high heels. The rest of them went on sitting, waiting their own
chance to visit a father who had had gallstones removed, ~ mother who had
discovered a small lump under one of her breasts a bare three days ago, a
friend who had been struck in the chest with an invisible sledgehammer while
jogging. The faces of the waiters were care fully made-up with composure. Worry
was swept under the face like dirt under a rug. Sarah felt the unreality
hovering again.
Somewhere a soft
bell was ringing. Crepe-soled shoes squeaked. He had been fine when he left her
place. Impossible to think he was in one of these brick towers, engaged in
dying.
She knew Mr. and
Mrs. Smith at once. She groped for their first names and could not immediately
find them. They were sitting together near the back of the room, and unlike the
others here, they hadn't yet had time to come to terms with what had happened
in their lives.
Johnny's mom sat
with her coat on the chair behind her and her Bible clutched in her hands. Her
lips moved as she read, and Sarah remembered Johnny saying she was very
religious—maybe too religious, somewhere in that great middle ground between
holy rolling and snake-handling, she remembered him saying. Mr. Smith -Herb, it
came to her, his name is Herb—had one of the magazines on his knees, but he
wasn't looking at it. He was looking out the window, where New England fall
burned its way toward November and winter beyond.
She went over to
them. “Mr. and Mrs. Smith?”
They looked up at
her, their faces tensed for the dreaded blow. Mrs. Smith's hands tightened on
her Bible, which was open to the Book of Job, until her knuckles were white.
The young woman before them was not in nurse's or doctor's whites, but that
made no difference to them at this point. They were waiting for the final blow.
“Yes, we're the
Smiths,” Herb said quietly.
“I'm Sarah
Bracknell. Johnny and I are good friends. Going together, I suppose you'd say.
May I sit down?”
“Johnny's girl
friend?” Mrs. Smith asked in a sharp, almost accusing tone. A few of the others
looked around briefly and then back at their own tattered magazines.
“Yes,” she said.
“Johnny's girl.”
“He never wrote
that he had a lady friend,” Mrs. Smith said in that same sharp tone. “No, he
never did at all.”
“Hush, Mother,”
Herb said. “Sit down, Miss . -. Bracknell, wasn't it?”
“Sarah,” she said
gratefully, and took a chair. “I...”
“No, he never
did,” Mrs. Smith said sharply. “My boy loved God, but just lately he maybe fell
away just a bit. The judgment of the Lord God is sudden, you know. That's what
makes backsliding so dangerous. You know not the day nor the hour...
“Hush,” Herb
said. People were looking around again. He fixed his wife with a stern glance.
She looked back defiantly for a moment, but his gaze didn't waver. Vera dropped
her eyes. She had closed the Bible but her fingers fiddled restlessly along the
pages, as if longing to get back to the colossal demolition derby of Job's
life, enough bad luck to put her own and her son's in some sort of bitter
perspective.
“I was with him
last night,” Sarah said, and that made the woman look up again, accusingly. At that
moment Sarah remembered the biblical connotation of being “with” somebody and
felt herself beginning to blush. It was as if the woman could read her
thoughts.
“We went to the
county fair...”
“Places of sin
and evil,” Vera Smith said clearly.
“I'll tell you
one last time to hush, Vera,” Herb said grimly, and clamped one of his hands
over one of his wife's. “I mean it, now. This seems like a nice girl here, and
I won't have you digging at her. Understand?”
“Sinful places,”
Vera repeated stubbornly.
“Will you hush?”
“Let me go. I
want to read my Bible.”
He let her go.
Sarah felt confused embarrassment. Vera opened her Bible and began to read
again, lips moving.
“Vera is very
upset, Herb said. “We're both upset. You are too, from the look of you.”
“Yes.”
“Did you and
Johnny have a good time last night?” he asked. “At your fair?”
“Yes,” she said,
the lie and truth of that simple word all mixed up in her mind. “Yes we did,
until... well, I ate a bad hot dog or something. We had my car and Johnny drove
me home to my place in Veazie. I was pretty sick to my stomach. He called a
cab. He said he'd call me in sick at school today. And that's the last time I
saw him. “The tears started to come then and she didn't want to cry in front of
them, particularly not in front of Vera Smith, but there was no way to stop it.
She fumbled a Kleenex out of her purse and held it to her face.
“There, now,”
Herb said, and put an arm around her.
“There, now. “She
cried, and it seemed to her in some unclear way that he felt better for having
someone to comfort; his wife had found her own dark brand of comfort in Job's
story and it didn't include him.
A few people
turned around to gawk; through the prisms of her tears they seemed like a
crowd. She had a bitter knowledge of what they were thinking: Better her than
me, better all three of them than me or mine, guy must be dying, guy must have
gotten his head crushed for her to cry like that. Only a matter of time before
some doctor comes down and takes them into a private room to tell them that
-Somehow she choked off the tears and got hold of her-self. Mrs. Smith sat bolt
upright, as if startled out of a nightmare, noticing neither Sarah's tears nor
her husband's effort to comfort her. She read her Bible.
“Please,” Sarah
said. “How bad is it? Can we hope?”
Before Herb could
answer, Vera spoke up. Her voice was a dry bolt of certified doom: “There's
hope in God, Missy.”
Sarah saw the
apprehensive flicker in Herb's eyes and thought: He thinks it's driven her
crazy. And maybe it has.
4.
A long afternoon
stretching into evening.
Sometime after
two P. M., when the schools began to let out, a number of Johnny's students
began to come in, wearing fatigue coats and strange hats and washed-out jeans.
Sarah didn't see many of the kids she thought of as the button-down
crowd—upward-bound, college-oriented kids, clear of eye and brow. Most of the
kids who bothered to come in were the freaks and long-hairs.
A few came over
and asked Sarah in quiet tones what she knew about Mr. Smith's condition. She
could only shake her head and say she had heard nothing. But one of the girls,
Dawn Edwards, who had a crush on Johnny, read the depth of Sarah's fear in her
face. She burst into tears. A nurse came and asked her to leave.
“I'm sure she'll
be all right,” Sarah said. She had a protective arm around Dawn's shoulders.
“Just give her a minute or two.
“No, I don't want
to stay,” Dawn said, and left in a hurry, knocking one of the hard plastic
contour chairs over with a clatter. A few moments later Sarah saw the girl
sitting out on the steps in the cold, late, October sunshine with her head on
her knees.
Vera Smith read
her Bible.
By five o'clock
most of the students had left. Dawn had also left; Sarah had not seen her go.
At seven P. M., a young man with DR. STRAWNS pinned askew to the lapel of his
white coat came into the waiting room, glanced around, and walked toward them.
“Mr. and Mrs.
Smith?” he asked.
Herb took a deep
breath. “Yes. We are.”
Vera shut her
Bible with a snap.
“Would you come
with me, please?”
That's it, Sarah
thought. The walk down to the small private room, and then the news. Whatever
the news is. She would wait, and when they came back, Herb Smith would tell her
what she needed to know. He was a kind man.
“Have you news of
my son?” Vera asked in that same clear, strong, and nearly hysterical voice.
“Yes. “Dr.
Strawns glanced at Sarah. “Are you family, ma'am?”
“No,” Sarah said.
“A friend.”
“A close friend,”
Herb said. A warm, strong hand closed above her elbow, just as another had
closed around Vera's upper arm. He helped them both to their feet. “We'll all
go together, if you don't mind.”
“Not at all.”
He led them past
the elevator bank and down a hall-way to an office with CONFERENCE ROOM on the
door. He let them in and turned on the overhead fluorescent lights. The room
was furnished with a long table and a dozen office chairs.
Dr. Strawns
closed the door, lit a cigarette, and dropped the burned match into one of the
ashtrays that marched up and down the table. “This is difficult,” he said, as
if to himself.
“Then you had
best just say it out,” Vera said.
“Yes, perhaps I'd
better.”
It was not her
place to ask, but Sarah could not help it. “Is he dead? Please don't say he's
dead...
“He's in a coma.
“Strawns sat down and dragged deeply on his cigarette. “Mr. Smith has sustained
serious head injuries and an undetermined amount of brain damage. You may have
heard the phrase “subdural hematoma” on one or the other of the doctor shows.
Mr. Smith has suffered a very grave subdural hematoma, which is localized
cranial bleeding. A long operation was necessary to relieve the pressure, and
also to remove bone-splinters from his brain.”
Herb sat down
heavily, his face doughy and stunned. Sarah noticed his blunt, scarred hands
and remembered Johnny telling her his father was a carpenter.
“But God has
spared him,” Vera said. “I knew he would. I prayed for a sign. Praise God, Most
High! All ye here below praise His name!”
“Vera,” Herb said
with no force.
“In a coma,”
Sarah repeated. She tried to fit the information into some sort of emotional
frame and found it wouldn't go. That Johnny wasn't dead, that he had come
through a serious and dangerous operation on his brain—those things should have
renewed her hope. But they didn't. She didn't like that word coma. It had a
sinister, stealthy sound. Wasn't it Latin for “sleep of death”?
“What's ahead for
him?” Herb asked.
“No one can
really answer that now,” Strawns said. He began to play with his cigarette,
tapping it nervously over the ashtray. Sarah had the feeling he was answering
Herb's question literally while completely avoiding the question Herb had
really asked. “He's on life support equipment, of course.”
“But you must
know something about his chances,” Sarah said. “You must know... “She gestured
helplessly with her hands and let them drop to her sides.
“He may come out
of it in forty-eight hours. Or a week. A month. He may never come out of... ...
there is a strong possibility that he may die. I must tell you frankly that's
the most likely. His injuries... grave.
“God wants him to
live,” Vera said. “I know it.”
Herb had put his
face into his hands and was scrubbing it slowly.
Dr. Strawns
looked at Vera uncomfortably. “I only want you to be prepared for... any
eventuality.”
“Would you rate
his chances for coming out of it?” Herb asked.
Dr. Strawns
hesitated, puffed nervously on his cigarette. “No, I can't do that,” he said
finally.
5.
The three of them
waited another hour and then left. It was dark. A cold and gusty wind had come up
and it whistled across the big parking lot. Sarah's long hair streamed out
behind her. Later, when she got home, she would find a crisp yellow oak leaf
caught in it. Overhead, the moon rode the sky, a cold sailor of the night.
Sarah pressed a
scrap of paper into Herb's hand. Written on it was her address and phone
number. “Would you call me if you hear something? Anything at all?”
“Yes, of course.
“He bent suddenly and kissed her cheek, and Sarah held his shoulder for a
moment in the blowing dark.
“I'm very sorry
if I was stiff with you earlier, dear,” Vera said, and her voice was
surprisingly gentle. “I was upset.”
“Of course you
were,” Sarah said.
“I thought my boy
might die. But I've prayed. I've spoken to God about it. As the song says, “Are
we weak and heavy-laden? Cumbered with a load of care? We must never be
discouraged. Take it to the Lord in “prayer. "”
“Vera, we ought
to go along,” Herb said. “We ought to get some sleep and see how things look in
the...”
“But now I've
heard from my God,” Vera said, looking dreamily up at the moon. “Johnny isn't
going to die. It isn't in God's plan for Johnny to die. I listened and I heard
that still, small voice speaking in my heart, and I am comforted.”
Herb opened the
car door. “Come on, Vera.”
She looked back at
Sarah and smiled. In that smile Sarah suddenly saw Johnny's own easy,
devil-may-care grin—but at the same time she thought it was the most ghastly
smile she had ever seen in her life.
“God has put his
mark on my Johnny,” Vera said, “and I rejoice.”
“Good night, Mrs.
Smith,” Sarah said through numb lips.
“Good night,
Sarah,” Herb said. He got in and started the car. It pulled out of its space
and moved across the parking lot to State Street, and Sarah realized she hadn't
asked where they were staying. She guessed they might not know themselves yet.
She turned to go
to her own car and paused, struck by the river that ran behind the hospital,
the Penobscot. It flowed like dark silk, and the reflected moon was caught in
its center. She looked up into the sky, standing alone in the parking lot now.
She looked at the moon.
God has put his
mark on my Johnny and I rejoice.
The moon hung
above her like a tawdry carnival toy, a Wheel of Fortune in the sky with the
odds all slugged in favor of the house, not to mention the house numbers—zero
and double zero. House numbah, house numbah,
y'all pay the
house, hey-hey-hey.
The wind blew
rattling leaves around her legs. She went to her car and sat behind the wheel.
She felt suddenly sure she was going to lose him. Terror and loneliness woke in
her. She began to shiver. At last she started her car and drove home.
6.
There was a great
outpouring of comfort and good wishes from the Cleaves Mill student body in the
following week; Herb Smith told her later that Johnny received better than
three hundred cards. Almost all of them contamed a hesitant personal note
saying they hoped Johnny would be well soon. Vera answered each of them with a
thank-you note and a Bible verse.
Sarah's
discipline problem in her classes disappeared. Her previous feeling that some
returning jury of class consciousness was bringing in an unfavorable verdict
changed to just the opposite. Gradually she realized that the kids were viewing
her as a tragic heroine, Mr. Smith's lost love. This idea struck her in the
teacher's room during her free period on the Wednesday following the accident,
and she went off into sudden gales of laughter that turned into a crying jag.
Before she was able to get herself under control she had frightened herself
badly. Her nights were made restless with incessant dreams of Johnny—Johnny in
the Halloween Jekyll-and-Hyde mask, Johnny standing at the Wheel of Fortune
concession while some disembodied voice chanted, “Man, I love to watch this guy
get a beatin,” over and over. Johnny saying, “It's all right now, Sarah,
everything's fine,” and then coming into the room with his head gone above the
eyebrows.
Herb and Vera
Smith spent the week in the Bangor House, and Sarah saw them every afternoon at
the hospital, waiting patiently for something to happen. Nothing did. Johnny
lay in a room on the intensive care ward on the sixth floor, surrounded by
life-support equipment, breathing with the help of a machine. Dr. Strawns had
grown less hopeful. On the Friday following the accident, Herb called Sarah on
the phone and told her he and Vera were going home.
“She doesn't want
to,” he said, “but I've gotten her to see reason. I think.”
“Is she all
right?” Sarah asked.
There was a long
pause, long enough to make Sarah
think she had overstepped
the bounds. Then Herb said, “I don't know. Or maybe I do and I just don't want
to say right out that she isn't. She's always had strong ideas about religion
and they got a lot stronger after her operation. Her hysterectomy. Now they've
gotten worse again. She's been talking a lot about the end of the world. She's
connected Johnny's accident with the Rapture, somehow. Just before Armageddon,
God is supposed to take all the faithful up to heaven in their actual bodies.”
Sarah thought of
a bumper sticker she had seen somewhere: IF THE RAPTURE'S TODAY, SOMEBODY GRAB
MY STEERING WHEEL! “Yes, I know the idea,” she said.
“Well,” Herb said
uncomfortably, “some of the groups she... she corresponds with... they believe
that God is going to come for the faithful in flying saucers. Take them all up
to heaven in flying saucers, that is. These... sects... have proved, at least
to themselves, that heaven is somewhere out in the constellation of Orion. No;
don't ask me how they proved it. Vera could tell you. It's... well, Sarah, it's
all a little hard on me.
“Of course it
must be.”
Herb's voice
strengthened. “But she can still distinguish between what's real and what's
not. She needs time to adjust. So I told her she could face whatever's coming
at home as easily as here. I've... “He paused, sounding embarrassed, then
cleared his throat and went on. “I've got to get back to work. I've got jobs.
I've signed contracts...
“Sure, of course.
“She paused. “What about insurance? I mean, this must be costing a Denver mint...
“It was her turn to feel embarrassed.
“I've talked with
Mr. Pelsen, your assistant principal there at Cleaves Mills,” Herb said.
“Johnny had the standard Blue Cross, but not that new Major Medical. The Blue
Cross will cover some of it, though. And Vera and I have our savings.”
Sarah's heart
sank. Vera and I have our savings. How long would one passbook stand up to
expenses of two hundred dollars a day or more? And for what purpose in the end?
So Johnny could hang on like an insensible animal, pissing brainlessly down a
tube while he bankrupted his dad and mom? So his condition could drive his
mother mad with unrealized hope? She felt the tears start to slip down her
cheeks and for the first time—but not the last—she found herself wishing Johnny
would die and be at peace. Part of her revolted in horror at the thought, but
it remained.
“I wish you all
the best,” Sarah said.
“I know that,
Sarah. We wish you the best. Will you write?”
“I sure will.”
“And come see us
when you can. Pownal's not so far away. “He hesitated. “Looks to me like Johnny
had picked himself out the right girl. It was pretty serious, wasn't it?”
“Yes,” Sarah
said. The tears were still coming and the past tense was not lost on her. “It
was.”
“Good-bye,
honey.”
“Good-bye, Herb.”
She hung up the
phone, held the buttons down for a second or two, and then called the hospital
and asked about Johnny. There had been no change. She thanked the intensive
care nurse and walked aimlessly back and forth through the apartment. She
thought about God sending out a fleet of flying saucers to pick up the faithful
and buzz them off to Orion. It made as much sense as anything else about a God
crazy enough to scramble John Smith's brains and put him in a coma that was
probably never going to end—except in an unexpected death.
There was a
folder of freshman compositions to correct. She made herself a cup of tea and
sat down to them. If there was any one moment when Sarah Bracknell picked up
the reins of her post-Johnny life again, that was
CHAPTER FOUR
1.
The killer was
slick.
He sat on a bench
in the town park near the bandstand, smoking a Marlboro and humming a song from
the Beatles” white album—'you don't know how lucky you are, boy, back in the,
back in the, back in the USSR...”
He wasn't a
killer yet, not really. But it had been on his mind a long time, killing had.
It had been itching at him and itching at him. Not in a bad way, no. He felt
quite optimistic about it. The time was right. He didn't have to worry about
getting caught. He didn't have to worry about the clothespin. Because he was
slick.
A little snow
began to drift down from the sky. It was November 11, 1970, and a hundred and
sixty miles northeast of this middle-sized western Maine town, John Smith's
sleep went on and on.
The killer scanned
the park—the town common, the tourists who came to Castle Rock and the Lakes
Region liked to call it. But there were no tourists now. The common that was so
green in the summer was now yellow, balding, and dead. It waited for winter to
cover it decently. The wire-mesh backstop behind the Little League home plate
stood in rusty overlapping diamonds, framed against the white sky. The
bandstand needed a fresh coat of paint.
It was a
depressing scene, but the killer was not depressed. He was almost manic with
joy. His toes wanted to tap, his fingers wanted to “snap. There would be no
shying away this time.
He crushed his
smoke under one boot heel and lit another immediately. He glanced at his watch.
3:05 P. M. He sat and smoked. Two boys passed through the park, tossing a
football back and forth, but they didn't see the killer because the benches
were down in a dip. He supposed it was a place where the nasty-fuckers came at
night when the weather was warmer. He knew all about the nasty-fuckers and the
things they did. His mother had told him, and he had seen them.
Thinking about
his mother made his smile fade a little. He remembered a time when he had been
seven, she had come into his room without knocking—she never knocked—and had
caught him playing with his thing. She had just about gone crazy. He had tried
to tell her it was nothing. Nothing bad. It had just stood up. He hadn't done
anything to make it stand up, it did it all on its own. And he just sat there,
boinging it back and forth. It wasn't even that much fun. It was sort of
boring. But his mother had just about gone crazy.
Do you want to be
one of those nasty-fuckers? she had screamed at him. He didn't even know what
that word meant—not nasty, he knew that one, but the other one -although he had
heard some of the bigger kids use it in the play-yard at the Castle Rock
Elementary School. Do you want to be one of those nasty-fuckers and get one of
those diseases? Do you want to have pus running out of it? Do you want it to
turn black? Do you want it to rot off? Huh? Huh? Huh?
She began to
shake him back and forth then, and he began to blubber with fear, even then she
was a big woman, a dominant and overbearing ocean liner of a woman, and he was
not the killer then, he was not slick then, he was a little boy blubbering with
fear, and his thing had collapsed and was trying to shrivel back into his body.
She had made him
wear a clothespin on it for two hours, so he would know how those diseases
felt.
The pain was
excruciating.
The little snow
flurry had passed. He brushed the image of his mother out of his mind,
something he could do effortlessly when he was feeling good, something he
couldn't do at all when he was feeling depressed and low.
His thing was
standing up now.
He glanced at his
watch. 3: 07. He dropped his cigarette half-smoked. Someone was coming.
He recognized
her. It was Alma, Alma Frechette from the Coffee Pot across the street. Just
coming off-shift. He knew Alma; he had dated her up once or twice, shown her a
good time. Took her to Serenity Hill over in Naples.
She was a good
dancer. Nasty-fuckers often were. He was glad it was Alma coming.
She was by
herself.
Back in the US,
back in the US, back in the USSR -'Alma!” he called, and waved. She started a
little, looked around, and saw him. She smiled and walked over to the bench
where he sat, saying hello and calling him by name. He stood up, smiling. He
wasn't worried about anyone coming. He was untouchable. He was Superman.
“Why you wearing
that?” she asked, looking at him.
“Slick, isn't
it?” he said, smiling.
“Well, I wouldn't
exactly...
“You want to see
something?” he asked. “On the bandstand. It's the goddamnest thing.”
“What is it?”
“Come and look.”
“All right.”
As simple as
that. She went with him to the bandstand. If anyone had been coming, he still
could have called it off. But no one came. No one passed. They had the common
to themselves. The white sky brooded over them. Alma was a small girl with
light blonde hair. Dyed blonde hair, he was quite sure. Sluts dyed their hair.
He led her up
onto the enclosed bandstand. Their feet made hollow, dead echoes on the boards.
An overturned music stand lay in one corner. There was an empty Four Roses
bottle. This was a place where the nasty-fuckers came, all right.
“What?” she
asked, sounding a little puzzled now. A little nervous.
The killer smiled
joyously and pointed to the left of the music stand. “There. See?”
She followed his
finger. A used condom lay on the boards like a shriveled snakeskin.
Alma's face went
tight and she turned to go so quickly that she almost got by the killer.
“That's not very funny...”
He grabbed her
and threw her back. “Where do you think you're going?”
Her eyes were
suddenly watchful and frightened. “Let me out of here. Or you'll be sorry. I don't
have any time for sick jokes...
“It's no joke,”
he said. “It's no joke, you nasty-fucker. “He was light-headed with the joy of
naming her, naming her for what she was. The world whirled.
Alma broke left,
heading for the low railing that surrounded the bandstand, meaning to leap over
it. The killer caught the back of her cheap cloth coat at the collar and yanked
her back again. The cloth ripped with a low purring sound and she opened her
mouth to scream.
He slammed his
hand over her mouth, mashing her lips back against her teeth. He felt warm
blood trickle over his palm. Her other hand was beating at him now, clawing for
purchase, but there was no purchase. There was none because he... he was...
Slick!
He threw her to
the board floor. His hand came off her mouth, which was now smeared with blood,
and she opened her mouth to scream again, but he landed on top of her, panting,
grinning, and the air was driven out of her lungs in a soundless whoosh. She
could feel him now, rock hard, gigantic and throbbing, and she quit trying to
scream and went on struggling. Her fingers caught and slipped, caught and
slipped. He forced her legs rudely apart and lay between them. One of her hands
glanced off the bridge of his nose, making his eyes water.
“You
nasty-fucker,” he whispered, and his hands closed on her throat. He began to
throttle her, yanking her head up from the bandstand's board flooring and then
slamming it back down. Her eyes bulged. Her face went pink, then red, then a
congested purple. Her struggles began to weaken.
“Nasty-fucker,
nasty-fucker, nasty-fucker,” the killer panted hoarsely. He really was the
killer now, Alma Frechette's days of rubbing her body all over people at
Serenity Hill were done now. Her eyes bugged out like the eyes of some of those
crazy dolls they sold along carnival midways. The killer panted hoarsely. Her
hands lay limp on the boards now. His fingers had almost disappeared from
sight.
He let go of her
throat, ready to grab her again if she stirred. But she didn't. After a moment
he ripped her coat open with shaking hands and shoved the skirt of her pink
waitress uniform up.
The white sky
looked down. The Castle Rock town common was deserted. In fact, no one found
the strangled, violated corpse of Alma Frechette until the next day. The
sheriff's theory was that a drifter had done it. There were statewide newspaper
headlines, and in Castle Rock there was general agreement with the sheriff's
idea.
Surely no
hometown boy could have done such a dreadful thing.
CHAPTER FIVE
1.
Herb and Vera
Smith went back to Pownal and took up the embroidery of their days. Herb
finished a house in Durham that December. Their savings did indeed melt away,
as Sarah had foreseen, and they applied to the state for Extraordinary Disaster
Assistance. That aged Herb almost as much as the accident itself had done. EDA
was only a fancy way of saying “welfare” or “charity” in his mind. He had spent
a lifetime working hard and honestly—with his hands and had thought he would
never see the day when he would have to take a state dollar. But here that day
was.
Vera subscribed
to three new magazines which came through the mail at irregular intervals. All
three were badly printed and might have been illustrated by talented children.
God's Saucers, The Coming Transfiguration, and God's Psychic Miracles. The
Upper Room, which still came monthly, now sometimes lay unopened for as long as
three weeks at a stretch, but she read these others to tatters. She found a
great many things in them that seemed to bear upon Johnny's accident, and she
read these nuggets to her tired husband at supper in a high, piercing voice
that trembled with exaltation. Herb found himself telling her more and more
frequently to be quiet, and on occasion shouting at her to shut up that drivel
and let him alone. When he did that, she would give him long-suffering,
compassionate, and hurt glances—then slink upstairs to continue her studies.
She began to correspond with these magazines, and to exchange letters with the
contributors and with other pen-friends who had had similar experiences in
their lives.
Most of her
correspondents were good-hearted people like Vera herself, people who wanted to
help and to ease the nearly insupportable burden of her pain. They sent prayers
and prayer stones, they sent charms, they sent promises to include Johnny in
their nightly devotions. Yet there were others who were nothing but con-men and
women, and Herb was alarmed by his wife's increasing inability to recognize
these. There was an offer to send her a sliver of the One True Cross of Our
Lord for just $99. 98. An offer to send a vial of water drawn from the spring
at Lourdes, which would almost certainly work a miracle when rubbed into
Johnny's forehead. That one was $1. 10 plus postage. Cheaper (and more
attractive to Vera) was a continuously playing cassette tape of the
Twenty-third Psalm and the Lord's Prayer as spoken by southern evangelist Billy
Humbair... Played at Johnny's bedside over a period of weeks it would almost
certainly effect a marvelous recovery, according to the pamphlet.
As an added
blessing (For A Short Time Only) an autographed picture of Billy Humbarr
himself would be included.
Herb was forced
to step in more and more frequently as her passion for these pseudoreligious
geegaws grew. Sometimes he surreptitiously tore up her checks and simply
readjusted the checkbook balance upward. But when the offer specified cash and
nothing but, he simply had to put his foot down—and Vera began to draw away
from him, to view him with distrust as a sinner and an unbeliever.
Sarah Bracknell
kept school during her days. Her afternoons and evenings were not much
different than they had been following the breakup with Dan; she was in a kind
of limbo, waiting for something to happen. In Paris, the peace talks were
stalled. Nixon had ordered the bombing of Hanoi continued in spite of rising
domestic and foreign protests. At a press conference he produced pictures
proving conclusively that American planes were surely not bombing North
Vietnamese hospitals, but he went everywhere by Army helicopter. The
investigation into the brutal rape-murder of a Castle Rock waitress was stalled
following the release of a wandering sign painter who had once spent three
years in the Augusta State Mental Hospital—against everyone's expectations, the
sign painter's alibi had turned out to hold water. Janis Joplin was screaming
the blues. Paris decreed (for the second year in a row) that hemlines would go
down, but they didn't. Sarah was aware of all these things in a vague way, like
voices from another room where some incomprehensible party went on and on.
The first snow
fell—just a dusting—then a second dusting, and ten days before Christmas there
was a storm that closed area schools for the day and she sat home, looking out
at the snow as it filled Flagg Street. Her brief thing with Johnny—she could
not even properly call it an affair—was part of another season now, and she
could feel him beginning to slip away from her. It was a panicky feeling, as if
a part of her was drowning. Drowning in days.
She read a good
deal about head injuries, comas, and brain damage. None of it was very
encouraging. She found out there was a girl in a small Maryland town who had
been in a coma for six years; there had been a young man from Liverpool,
England, who had been struck by a grappling hook while working on the docks and
had remained in a coma for fourteen years before expiring. Little by little
this brawny young dock-walloper had severed his connections with the world,
wasting away, losing his hair, optic nerves degenerating into oatmeal behind
his closed eyes, body gradually drawing up into a fetal position as his
ligaments shortened. He had reversed time, had become a fetus again, swimming
in the placental waters of coma as his brain degenerated. An autopsy following
his death had shown that the folds and convolutions of his cerebrum had
smoothed out, leaving the frontal and prefrontal lobes almost utterly smooth
and blank.
Oh, Johnny, it
just isn't fair, she thought, watching the snow fall outside, filling the world
up with blank whiteness, burying fallen summer and red-gold autumn. It isn't
fair, they should let you go to whatever there is to go to.
There was a
letter from Herb Smith every ten days to two weeks—Vera had her pen-friends,
and he had his. He wrote in a large, sprawling hand, using an old-fashioned
fountain pen. “We are both fine and well. Waiting to see what will happen next
as you must be. Yes, I have been doing some reading and I know what you are too
kind and thoughtful to” say in your letter, Sarah. It looks bad. But of course
we hope. I don't believe in God the way Vera does, but I do believe in him
after my fashion, and wonder why he didn't take John outright if he was going
to. Is there a reason? No one knows, I guess. We only hope.”
In another
letter:
“I'm having to do
most of the Xmas shopping this year as Vera has decided Xmas presents are a
sinful custom. This is what I mean about her getting worse all the time. She's always
thought it was a holy day instead of a holiday—if you see what I mean—and if
she saw me calling it Xmas instead of Christmas I guess she'd “shoot me for a
hoss-thief.” She was always saying how we should remember it is the birthday of
Jesus Christ and not Santa Claus, but she never minded the shopping before. In
fact, she used to like it. Now ragging against it is all she talks about, seems
like. She gets a lot of these funny ideas from the people she writes back and
forth to. Golly I do wish she'd stop and get back to normal. But otherwise we
are both fine and well. Herb. “.
And a Christmas
card that she had wept over a little:
“Best to you from
both of us this holiday season, and if you'd like to come down and spend Xmas
with a couple of “old fogies”, the spare bedroom is made up. Vera and I are
both fine and well. Hope the New Year is better for all of us, and am sure it
will be. Herb and Vera.”
She didn't go
down to Pownal over the Christmas vacation, partly because of Vera's continued
withdrawal into her own world—her progress into that world could be read pretty
accurately between the lines of Herb's letters—and partly because their mutual
tie now seemed so strange and distant to her. The still figure in the Bangor
hospital bed had once been seen in close-up, but now she always seemed to be
looking at him through the wrong end of memory's telescope; like the balloon
man, he was far and wee. So it seemed best to keep her distance.
Perhaps Herb
sensed it as well. His letters became less frequent as 1970 became 1971. In one
of them he came as close as he could to saying it was time for her to go on
with her life, and closed by saying that he doubted a girl as pretty as she was
lacked for dates.
But she hadn't
had any dates, hadn't wanted them. Gene Sedecki, the math teacher who had once
treated her to an evening that had seemed at least a thousand years long, had
begun asking her out indecently soon after Johnny's accident, and he was a hard
man to discourage, but she believed that he was finally beginning to get the
point. It should have happened sooner.
Occasionally
other men would ask her, and one of them, a law student named Walter Hazlett,
attracted her quite a bit. She met him at Anne Strafford's New Year's Eve
party. She had meant only to make an appearance, but she had stayed quite a
while, talking primarily to Hazlett. Saying no had been surprisingly hard, but
she had, because she understood the source of attraction too well—Walt Hazlett
was a tall man with an unruly shock of brown hair and a slanted, half-cynical
smile, and he reminded her strongly of Johnny. That was no basis on which to
get interested in a man.
Early in February
she was asked out by the mechanic who worked on her car at the Cleaves Mills
Chevron. Again she almost said yes, and then backed away. The man's name was
Arnie Tremont. He was tall, olive-skinned, and handsome in a smiling, predatory
way. He reminded her a bit of James Brolin, the second banana on that Dr. Welby
program, and even more of a certain Delta Tau Delta named Dan.
Better to wait.
Wait and see if something was going to happen.
But nothing did.
3.
In that summer of
1971, Greg Stillson, sixteen years older and wiser than the Bible salesman who
had kicked a dog to death in a deserted Iowa dooryard, sat in the back room of
his newly incorporated insurance and real estate business in Ridgeway, New
Hampshire. He hadn't aged much in the years between. There was a net of
wrinkles around his eyes now, and his hair was longer (but still quite
conservative). He was still a big man, and his swivel chair creaked when he
moved.
He sat smoking a
Pall Mall cigarette and looking at the man sprawled comfortably in the chair
opposite. Greg was looking at this man the way a zoologist might look at an
interesting new specimen.
“See anything
green?” Sonny Elliman asked. Elliman topped six feet, five inches. He wore an
ancient, grease-stiffened jeans jacket with the arms and buttons cut off. There
was no shirt beneath. A Nazi iron cross, black dressed in white chrome, hung on
his bare chest. The buckle of the belt running just below his considerable
beer-belly was a great ivory skull. From beneath the pegged cuffs of his jeans
poked the scuffed, square toes of a pair of Desert Driver boots. His hair was
shoulder-length, tangled, and shining with an accumulation of greasy sweat and
engine oil. From one earlobe there dangled a swastika earring, also black
dressed in white chrome. He spun a coal-scuttle helmet on the tip of one blunt
finger. Stitched on the back of his jacket was a leering red devil with a
forked tongue. Above the devil was The Devil's Dozen. Below it: Sonny Elliman,
Prez.
“No,” Greg
Stillson said. “I don't see anything green, but I do see someone who looks
suspiciously like a walking asshole.”
Elliman stiffened
a little, then relaxed and laughed. In spite of the dirt, the almost palpable
body odor, and Nazi regalia, his eyes, a dark green, were not without
intelligence and even a sense of humor.
“Rank me to the
dogs and back, man,” he said. “It's been done before. You got the power now.
“You recognize
that, do you?”
“Sure. I left my
guys back in the Hamptons, came here alone. Be it on my own head, man. “He
smiled. “But if we should ever catch you in a similar position, you want to
hope your kidneys are wearing combat boots.”
“I'll chance it,”
Greg said. He measured Elliman. They were both big men. He reckoned Elliman had
forty pounds on him, but a lot of it was beer muscle. “I could take you,
Sonny.”
Elliman's face
crinkled in amiable good humor again. “Maybe. Maybe not. But that's not the way
we play it, man. All that good American John Wayne stuff. “He leaned forward,
as if to impart a great secret. “Me personally, now, whenever I get me a piece
of mom's apple pie, I make it my business to shit on it.”
“Foul mouth,
Sonny,” Greg said mildly.
“What do you want
with me?” Sonny asked. “Why don't you get down to it? You'll miss your Jaycee's
meeting.”
“No,” Greg said,
still serene. “The Jaycees meet Tuesday nights. We've got all the time in the
world.”
Elliman made a
disgusted blowing sound.
“Now what I
thought,” Greg went on, “is that you'd want something from me. “He opened his
desk drawer and from it took three plastic Baggies of marijuana. Mixed in with
the weed were a number of gel capsules. “Found this in your sleeping bag,” Greg
said. “Nasty, nasty, nasty, Sonny. Bad boy. Do not pass go, do not collect two
hundred dollars. Go directly to New Hampshire State Prison.”
“You didn't have
any search warrant,” Elliman said. “Even a kiddy lawyer could get me off, and
you know it.”
“I don't know any
such thing,” Greg Stillson said. He leaned back in his swivel chair and cocked
his loafers, bought across the state line at L. L. Bean's in Maine, up on his
desk. “I'm a big man in this town, Sonny. I came into New Hampshire more or less
on my uppers a few years back, and now I've got a nice operation here. I've
helped the town council solve a couple of problems, including just what to do
about all these kids the chief of police catches doing dope... oh, I don't mean
bad-hats like you, Sonny, drifters like you we know what to do with when we
catch them with a little treasure trove like that one right there on my desk...
I mean the nice local kids. Nobody really wants to do anything to them at all,
you know? I figured that out for them. Put them to work on community projects
instead of sending them to jail, I said. It worked out real good. Now we've got
the biggest head in the town area coaching Little League and doing a real good
job at it.”
Elliman was
looking bored. Greg suddenly brought his feet down with a crash, grabbed a vase
with a UNH logo on the side, and threw it past Sonny Elliman's nose. It missed
him by less than an inch, flew end over end across the room, and shattered
against the file cabinets in the corner. For the first time Elliman looked
startled. And for just a moment the face of this older, wiser Greg Still-son
was the face of the younger man, the dog-bludgeoner.
“You want to
listen when I talk,” he said softly. “Because what we're discussing here is
your career over the next ten years or so. Now if you don't have any interest
in making a career out of stamping LIVE FREE OR DIE on license plates, you want
to listen up, Sonny. You want to pretend this is the first day of school again,
Sonny. You want to get it all right the first time. Sonny.”
Elliman looked at
the smashed fragments of vase, then back at Stillson. His former uneasy calm
was being replaced by a feeling of real interest. He hadn't been really
interested in anything for quite a while now. He had made the run for beer
because he was bored. He had come by himself because he was bored. And when
this big guy had pulled him over, using a flashing blue light on the dashboard
of his station wagon, Sonny Elliman had assumed that what he had to deal with
was just another small-town Deputy Dawg, protecting his territory and rousting
the big bad biker on the modified Harley-Davidson. But this guy was something
else. He was
was...
He's crazy! Sonny
realized, with dawning delight at the discovery. He's got two public service awards
on his wall, and pictures of him talking to the Rotarians and the Lions, and
he's vice president of this dipshit town's Jaycees, and next year he'll be
president, and he's just as crazy as a fucking bedbug!
“Okay,” he said.
“You got my attention.”
“I have had what
you might call a checkered career,” Greg told him. “I've been up, but I've also
been down. I've had a few scrapes with the law. What I'm trying to say, Sonny,
is that I don't have any set feelings about you. Not like the other locals.
They read in the Union-Leader about what you and your bikie friends are doing
over in the Hamptons this summer and they'd like to castrate you with a rusty
Gillette razor blade.”
“That's not the
Devil's Dozen,” Sonny said. “We came down on a run from upstate New York to get
some beach-time, man. We're on vacation. We're not into trashing a bunch of
honky-tonk bars. There's a bunch of Hell's Angels tearing ass, and a chapter of
the Black Riders from New Jersey, but you know who it is mostly? A bunch of
college kids. “Sonny's lip curled. “But the papers don't like to report that,
do they? They'd rather lay the rap on us than on Susie and Jim.”
“You're so much
more colorful,” Greg said mildly. “And William Loeb over at the Union-Leader
doesn't like bike clubs.”
“That bald-headed
creep,” Sonny muttered.
Greg opened his
desk drawer and pulled out a flat pint of Leader's bourbon. “I'll drink to
that,” he said. He cracked the seal and drank half the pint at a draught. He
blew out a great breath, his eyes watering, and held the pint across the desk.
“You?”
Sonny polished
the pint off. Warm fire bellowed up from his stomach to his throat.
“Light me up,
man,” he gasped.
Greg threw back
his head and laughed. “We'll get along, Sonny. I have a feeling we'll get
along.”
“What do you
want?” Sonny asked again, holding the empty pint.
“Nothing... not
now. But I have a feeling... “Greg's eyes became far away, almost puzzled. “I
told you I'm a big man in Ridgeway. I'm going to run for mayor next time the
office comes up, and I'll win. But that's Just the beginning?” Sonny prompted.
“It's a start,
anyway. “That puzzled expression was still there. “I get things done. People
know it. I'm good at what I do. I feel like... there's a lot ahead of me. Sky's
the limit. But I'm not... quite... ... what I mean. You know?”
Sonny only
shrugged.
The puzzled
expression faded. “But there's a story, Sonny. A story about a mouse who took a
thorn out of a lion's paw. He did it to repay the lion for not eating him a few
years before. You know that story?”
“I might have
heard it when I was a kid,”
Greg nodded.
“Well, it's a few years before” .. whatever it is, Sonny. “He shoved the
plastic Baggies across the desk. “I'm not going to eat you. I could if I wanted
to, you know. A kiddie lawyer couldn't get you off. In this town, with the
riots going on in Hampton less than twenty miles away, Clarence Fucking Darrow
couldn't get you off in Ridgeway. These good people would love to see you go
up.
Elliman didn't
reply, but he suspected Greg was right. There was nothing heavy in his dope
stash—two Brown Bombers was the heaviest—but the collective parents of good old
Susie and Jim would be glad to see him breaking rocks in Portsmouth, with his
hair cut off his head.
“I'm not going to
eat you,” Greg repeated. “I hope you'll remember that in a few years if I get a
thorn in my paw... or maybe if I have a job opportunity for you. Keep it in
mind?”
Gratitude was not
in Sonny Elliman's limited catalogue of human feelings, but interest and
curiosity were. He felt both ways about this man Stillson. That craziness in
his eyes hinted at many things, but boredom was not one of them.
“Who knows where
we'll all be in a few years?” he murmured. “We could all be dead, man.”
“Just keep me in
mind. That's all I'm asking.”
Sonny looked at
the broken shards of vase. “I'll keep you in mind,” he said.
4.
1971 passed. The
New Hampshire beach riots blew over, and the grumblings of the beachfront
entrepreneurs were muted by the increased balances in their bankbooks. An obscure
fellow named George McGovern declared for the presidency comically early.
Anyone who followed politics knew that the nominee from the Democratic party in
1972 was going to be Edmund Muskie, and there were those who felt he might just
wrestle the Troll of San Clemente off his feet and pin him to the mat.
In early June,
just before school let out for the summer, Sarah met the young law student
again. She was in Day's appliance store, shopping for a toaster, and he had
been looking for a gift for his parents” wedding anniversary. He asked her if
she'd like to go to the movies with him -the new Clint Eastwood, Dirty Harry,
was in town. Sarah went. And the two of them had a good time. Walter Hazlett
had grown a beard, and he no longer reminded her so much of Johnny. In fact, it
had become increasingly difficult for her to remember just what Johnny did look
like. His face only came dear in her dreams, dreams where he stood in front of
the Wheel of Fortune, watching it spin, his face cold and his blue eyes darkened
to that perplexing, and a little fearsome, dark violet shade, watching the
Wheel as if it were his own private game preserve.
She and Walt
began to see a lot of each other. He was easy to get along with. He made no
demands—or, if he did, they were of such a gradually increasing nature as to be
unnoticeable. In October he asked her if he could buy her a small diamond.
Sarah asked him if she could have the weekend to think it over. That Saturday
night she had gone to the Eastern Maine Medical Center, had gotten a special
red-bordered pass at the desk, and had gone up to intensive care. She sat
beside Johnny's bed for an hour. Outside, the fall wind howled in the dark,
promising cold, promising snow, promising a season of death. It lacked sixteen
days of a year since the fair, the Wheel, and the head-on collision near the
Bog.
She sat and
listened to the wind and looked at Johnny. The bandages were gone. The scar
began on his forehead an inch above his right eyebrow and twisted up under the
hairline. His hair there had gone white—making her think of that fictional
detective in the 87th Precinct stories -Cotton Hawes, his name was. To Sarah's
eyes there seemed to have been no degeneration in him, except for the
inevitable weight loss. He was simply a young man she barely knew, fast asleep.
She bent over him
and kissed his mouth softly, as if the old fairy tale could be reversed and her
kiss could wake him. But Johnny only slept.
She left, went
back to her apartment in Veazie, lay down on her bed and cried as the wind
walked the dark world outside, throwing its catch of yellow and red leaves
before it. On Monday she told Walt that if he really did want to buy her a
diamond—a small one, mind—she would be happy and proud to wear it.
That was Sarah
Bracknell's 1971.
In early 1972,
Edmund Muskie burst into tears during an impassioned speech outside the offices
of the man Sonny Elliman had referred to as “that bald-headed creep”. George
McGovern upset the primary”, and Loeb announced gleefully in his paper that the
people of New Hampshire didn't like crybabies. In July, McGovern was nominated.
In that same month Sarah Bracknell became Sarah Hazlett. She and Walt were
married in the First Methodist Churth of Bangor.
Less than two
miles away, Johnny Smith slept on. And the thought of him came to Sarah,
suddenly and horribly, as Walt kissed her in front of the dearly beloved there
assembled for the nuptials—Johnny, she thought, and saw him as she had when the
lights went on, half Jekyll and half snarling Hyde. She stiffened in Walt's
arms for a moment, and then it was gone. Memory, vision, whatever it had been,
it was gone.
After long
thought and discussion with Walt, she had invited Johnny's folks to the
wedding. Herb had come alone. At the reception, she asked him if Vera was all
right.
He glanced
around, saw they were alone for the moment, and rapidly downed the remainder of
his Scotch and soda. He had aged five years in the last eighteen months, she
thought. His hair was thinning. The lines on his face were deeper. He was
wearing glasses in the careful and self-conscious way of people who have just
started wearing them, and behind the mild corrective lenses his eyes were wary
and hurt.
“No. she really
isn't, Sarah. The truth is, she's up in Vermont. On a farm. Waiting for the end
of the world.”
What?”
Herb told her
that six months ago Vera had begun to correspond with a group of about ten
people who called themselves The American Society of the Last Times. They were
led by Mr. and Mrs. Harry L. Stonkers from Racine, Wisconsin. Mr. and Mrs.
Stonkers claimed to have been picked up by a flying saucer while they were on a
camping trip. They had been taken away to heaven, which was not out in the
constellation Orion but on an earth-type planet that circled Arcturus. There they
had communed with the society of angels and had seen Paradise. The Stonkerses
had been informed that the Last Times were at hand. They were given the power
of telepathy and had been sent back to Earth to gather a few fruitful
together—for the first shuttle to heaven, as it were. And so the ten of them
had gotten together, bought a farm north of St. Johnsbury, and had been settled
in there for about seven weeks, waiting for the saucer to come and pick them
up.
“It sounds...
“Sarah began, and then closed her mouth. “I know how it sounds,” Herb said. “It
sounds crazy. The place cost them nine thousand dollars. It's nothing but a
crashed-in farmhouse with two acres of scrubland. Vera's share was seven
hundred dollars—all she could put up. There was no way I could stop her...
short of committal. “He paused, then smiled. “But this is nothing to talk about
at your wedding party, Sarah. You and your fellow are going to have all the
best. I know you will.”
Sarah smiled back
as best she could. “Thank you, Herb. Will you... I mean, do you think she'll...
“Come back? Oh
yes. If the world doesn't end by winter, I think she'll be back.”
“Oh, I only wish
you the best,” she said, and embraced
5.
The farm in
Vermont had no furnace, and when the saucer had still not arrived by late
October, Vera came home. The saucer had not come, she said, because they were
not yet perfect—they had not burned away the nonessential and sinful dross of
their lives. But she was uplifted and spiritually exalted. She had had a sign
in a dream. She was perhaps not meant to go to heaven in a saucer. She felt
more and more strongly that she would be needed to guide her boy, show him the
proper way, when he came out of his trance.
Herb took her in,
loved her as best he could—and life went on. Johnny had been in his coma for
two years.
6.
Nixon was
reinaugurated. The American boys started coming home from Vietnam. Walter
Hazlett took his bar exam and was invited to take it again at a later date. Sarah
Hazlett kept school while he crammed for his tests. The students who had been
silly, gawky freshmen the year she started teaching were now juniors.
Flat-chested girls had become bosomy. Shrimps who hadn't been able to find
their way around the building were now playing varsity basketball.
The second
Arab-Israeli war came and went. The oil boycott came and went. Bruisingly high
gasoline prices came and did not go. Vera Smith became convinced that Christ
would return from below the earth at the South Pole. This intelligence was
based on a new pamphlet (seventeen pages, price $4. 50) entitled God's Tropical
Underground. The startling hypothesis of the pamphleteer was that heaven was
actually below our very feet, and that the easiest point of ingress was the
South Pole. One of the sections of the pamphlet was “Psychic Experiences of the
South Pole Explorers”.
Herb pointed out
to her that less than a year before she had been convinced that heaven was
somewhere out There, most probably circling Arcturus. “I'd surely be more apt
to believe that than this crazy South Pole stuff,” he told her. “Mter all, the
Bible says heaven's in the sky. That tropical place below the ground is
supposed to be...
“Stop it I” she
said sharply, lips pressed into thin white lines. “No need to mock what you
don't understand.”
“I wasn't
mocking, Vera,” he said quietly.
“God knows why
the unbeliever mocks and the heathen rages,” she said. That blank light was in
her eyes. They were sitting at the kitchen table, Herb with an old plumbing J.
bolt in front of him, Vera with a stack of old National Geographics which she
had been gleaning for South Pole pictures and stories. Outside, restless clouds
fled west to east and the leaves showered off the trees. It was early October
again, and October always seemed to be her worst month. It was the month when
that blank light came more frequently to her eyes and stayed longer. And it was
always in October that his thoughts turned treacherously to leaving them both.
His possibly certifiable wife and his sleeping son, who was probably already
dead by any practical definition. Just now he had been turning the J-bolt over
in his hands and looking out the window at that restless sky and thinking, I
could pack up. Just throw my things into the back of the pickup and go.
Florida, maybe. Nebraska. California. A good carpenter can make good money any
damn place. Just get up and go.
But he knew he
wouldn't. It was just that October was his month to think about running away,
as it seemed to be Vera's month to discover some new pipeline to Jesus and the
eventual salvation of the only child she had been able to nurture in her
substandard womb.
Now he reached
across the table and took her hand, which was thin and terribly bony—an old
woman's hand. She looked up, surprised. “I love you very much, Vera,” he said.
She smiled back,
and for a glimmering moment she was a great deal like the girl he had courted
and won, the girl who had goosed him with a hairbrush on their wedding night.
It was a gentle smile, her eyes briefly dear and warm and loving in return.
Outside, the sun came out again, sending great shutter-shadows fleeing across
their back field.
“I know you do,
Herbert. And I love you.”
He put his other
hand over hers and clasped it.
“Vera,” he said.
“Yes?” Her eyes
were so clear... suddenly she was with him, totally with him, and it made him
realize how dread-fully far apart they had grown over the last three years.
“Vera, if he
never does wake up... God forbid, but if he doesn't... we'll still have each
other, won't we? I mean...
She jerked her
hand away. His two hands, which had been holding it lightly, dapped on nothing.
“Don't you ever
say that. Don't you ever say that Johnny isn't going to wake up.”
“All I meant was
that we...”
“Of course he's
going to wake up,” she said, looking out the window to the field, where the
shadows still crossed and crossed. “It's God's plan for him. Oh yes. Don't you
think I know? I know, believe me. God has great things in store for my Johnny.
I have heard him in my heart.”
“Yes, Vera,” he
said. “Okay.”
Her fingers
groped for the National Geographics, found them, and began to turn the pages
again.
“I know,” she
said in a childish, petulant voice.
“Okay,” he said
quietly.
She looked at her
magazines. Herb propped his chin in his palms and looked out at the sunshine
and shadow and thought how soon winter came after golden, treacherous October.
He wished Johnny would die. He had loved the boy from the very first. He had
seen the wonder on his tiny face when Herb had brought a tiny tree frog to the
boy's carriage and had put the small living thing in the boy's hands. He had
taught Johnny how to fish and skate and shoot. He had sat up with him all night
during his terrible bout with the flu in 1951, when the boy's temperature had
crested at a giddy one hundred and five degrees. He had hidden tears in his
hand when Johnny graduated salutatorian of his high school class and had made
his speech from memory without a slip. So many memories of him—teaching him to
drive, standing on the bow of the Bolero with him when they went to Nova Scotia
on vacation one year, Johnny eight years old, laughing and excited by the
screwlike motion of the boat, helping him with his homework, helping him with
his treehouse, helping him get the hang of his Silva compass when he had been
in the Scouts. All the memories were jumbled together in no chronological order
at all -Johnny was the single unifying thread, Johnny eagerly discovering the
world that had maimed him so badly in the end. And now he wished Johnny would
die, oh how he wished it, that he would die, that his heart would stop beating,
that the final low traces on the EEG would go flat, that he would just flicker
out like a guttering candle in a pool of wax: that he would die and release
them.
7.
The seller of
lightning rods arrived at Cathy's Roadhouse in Somersworth, New Hampshire, in
the early afternoon of a blazing summer's day less than a week after the Fourth
of July in that year of 1973,” and somewhere not so far away there were,
perhaps, storms only waiting to be born in the warm elevator shafts of summer's
thermal updrafts.
He was a man with
a big thirst, and he stopped at Cathy's to slake it with a couple of beers, not
to make a sale. But from force of long habit, he glanced up at the roof of the
low, ranch-style building, and the unbroken line he saw standing against the
blistering gunmetal sky caused him to reach back in for the scuffed suede bag
that was his sample case.
Inside, Cathy's
was dark and cool and silent except for the muted rumble of the color TV on the
wall. A few regulars were there, and behind the bar was the owner, keeping an
eye on “As The World . Turns” along with his patrons.
The seller of
lightning rods lowered himself onto a bar stool and put his sample case on the
stool to his left. The owner came over. “Hi, friend. What'll it be?”
“A Bud,” the
lightning rod salesman said. “And draw another for yourself, if you're of a
mind.”
“I'm always of a
mind,” the owner said. He returned with two beers, took the salesman's dollar,
and left three dimes on the bar. “Bruce Carrick,” he said, and offered his
hand.
The seller of
lightning rods shook it. “Dohay is the name,” he said, “Andrew Dohay. “He
drained off half his beer.
“Pleased to meet
you,” Carrick said. He wandered off to serve a young woman with a hard face
another Tequila Sunrise and eventually wandered back to Dohay. “From out of
town?”
“I am,” Dohay
admitted. “Salesman. “He glanced around. “Is it always this quiet?”
“No. It jumps on
the weekends and I do a fair trade through the week. Private parties is where
we make our dough—if we make it. I ain't starving, but neither am I driving a
Cadillac. “He pointed a pistol finger at Dohay's glass. “Freshen that?”
“And another for
yourself, Mr. Carrick.”
“Bruce. “He
laughed. “You must want to sell me some-thing.”
When Carrick
returned with the beers the seller of lightning rods said: “I came in to lay
the dust, not to sell anything. But now that you mention it... “He hauled his
sample case up onto the bar with a practiced jerk. Things jingled inside it.
“Oh, here it
comes,” Carrick said, and laughed.
Two of the
afternoon regulars, an old fellow with a wart on his right eyelid and a younger
man in gray fatigues, wandered over to see what Dohay was selling. The
hard-faced woman went on watching “As The World Turns”.
Dohay took out
three rods, a long one with a brass ball at the tip, a shorter one, and one
with porcelain conductors.
“What the hell...
“Carrick said.
“Lightning rods,”
the old campaigner said, and cackled. “He wants to save this ginmill from God's
wrath, Brucie. You better listen to what he says.”
He laughed again,
the man in the gray fatigues joined him, Carrick's face darkened, and the
lightning rod salesman knew that whatever chance he had had of making a sale
had just flown away. He was a good salesman, good enough to recognize that this
queer combination of personalities and circumstances sometimes got together and
queered any chance of a deal even before he had a chance to swing into his
pitch. He took it philosophically and went into his spiel anyway, mostly from
force of habit:
“As I was getting
out of my car, I just happened to notice that this fine establishment wasn't
equipped with lightning conductors—and that it's constructed of wood. Now for a
very small price—and easy credit terms if you should want them—I can guarantee
that...”
“That
lightning'll strike this place at four this afternoon,” the man in the gray
fatigues said with a grin. The old campaigner cackled.
“Mister, no
offense,” Carrick said, “but you see that?” He pointed to a golden nail on a
small wooden plaque beside the TV near the glistening array of bottles. Spiked
on the nail was a drift of papers. “All of those things are bills. They got to
be paid by the fifteenth of the month. They get written in red ink. Now you see
how many people are in here drinking right now? I got to be careful. I got
to...
“Just my point,”
Dohay broke in smoothly. “You have to be careful. And the purchase of three or
four lightning rods is a careful purchase. You've got a going concern here. You
wouldn't want it wiped out by one stroke of lightning on a summer's day, would
you?”
“He wouldn't
mind,” the old campaigner said. “He'd just collect the insurance and go down to
Florida. Woon'tchoo, Brucie?”
Carrick looked at
the old man with distaste.
“Well, then,
let's talk about insurance,” the lightning rod salesman interposed. The man in
the gray fatigues had lost interest and had wandered away. “Your fire insurance
premiums will go down...”
The insurance is
all lumped together,” Carrick said flatly. “Look, I just can't afford the
outlay. Sorry. Now if you was to talk to me again next year...
“Well, perhaps I
will,” the lightning rod salesman said, giving up. “Perhaps I will. “No one
thought they could be struck by lightning until they were struck; it was a
constant fact of this business. You couldn't make a fellow like this Carrick
see that it was the cheapest form of fire insurance he could buy. But Dohay was
a philosopher. After all, he had told the truth when he said he came in to lay
the dust.
To prove it, and
to prove there were no hard feelings, he ordered another beer. But this time he
did not match it with one for Carrick.
The old
campaigner slid onto the stool beside him.
“About ten years ago
there was a fella got hit by lightning out on the golf course,” he said.
“Killed him just as dead as shit. Now, there's a man could have used a
lightning rod right up on his head, am I right?” He cackled, sending out a lot
of stale beer-breath into Dohay's face. Dohay smiled dutifully. “All the coins
in his pockets were fused together. That's what I heard. Lightning's a funny
thing. Sure is. Now, I remember one time...
A funny thing,
Dohay thought, letting the old man's words flow harmlessly over him, nodding in
the right places out of instinct. A funny thing, all right, because it doesn't
care who or what it hits. Or when.
He finished his
beer and went out, carrying his satchelful of insurance against the wrath of
God—maybe the only kind ever invented—with him. The heat struck him like a
hammerblow, but still he paused for a moment in the mostly deserted parking
lot, looking up at the unbroken line of roof-ridge. $19. 95, $29. 95 tops, and
the man couldn't afford the outlay. He'd save seventy bucks on his combined
insurance the first year, but he couldn't afford the outlay—and you couldn't
tell him different with those clowns standing around yukking it up.
Maybe some day he
would be sorry.
The seller of
lightning rods got into his Buick, cranked up the air conditioning, and drove
away west toward Concord and Berlin, his sample case on the seat beside him,
running ahead of whatever storms might be whistling up the wind behind.
8.
In early 1974
Walt Hazlett passed his bar exams. He and Sarah threw a party for all of his
friends, her friends, and their mutual friends—more than forty people in all.
The beer flowed like water, and after it was over Walt said they could count
themselves damn lucky not to have been evicted. When the last of the guests
were seen out (at three in the morning), Walt had come back from the door to
find Sarah in the bedroom, naked except for her shoes and the diamond chip
earrings he had gone into hock to give her for her birthday. They had made love
not once but twice before falling into sodden slumber from which they awoke at
nearly noon, with paralyzing hangovers. About six weeks later Sarah discovered
that she was pregnant. Neither of them ever doubted that conception had
occurred on the night of the big party.
In Washington,
Richard Nixon was being pressed slowly into a corner, wrapped in a snarl of
magnetic tapes. In Georgia, a peanut farmer, ex-Navy man and current governor
named James Earl Carter had begun talking with a number of close friends about
running for the job Mr. Nixon would soon be vacating.
In Room 619 of
the Eastern Maine Medical Center, Johnny Smith still slept. He had begun to
pull into a fetal shape.
Dr. Strawns, the
doctor who had talked to Herb and Vera and Sarah in the conference room on the
day following the accident, had died of burns in late 1973. His house had
caught fire on the day. after Christmas. The Bangor fire department had
determined that the fire had been caused by a faulty set of Christmas tree
ornaments. Two new doctors, Weizak and Brown, interested themselves in Johnny's
case.
Four days before
Nixon resigned, Herb Smith fell into the foundation of a house he was building
in Gray, landed on a wheelbarrow, and broke his leg. The bone was a long time
healing, and it never really felt good again. He limped, and on wet days he
began to use a cane. Vera prayed for him, and insisted that he wrap a cloth
that had been personally blessed by the Reverend Freddy Coltsmore of Bessemer,
Alabama, around the leg each night when he went to bed. The price of the Blessed
Coltsmore Cloth (as Herb called it) was $35. It did no good that he was aware
of.
In the middle of
October, shortly after Gerald Ford had pardoned the ex-president, Vera became
sure that the world was going to end again. Herb realized what she was about
barely in time; she had made arrangements to give what little cash and savings
they had recouped since Johnny's accident to the Last Times Society of America.
She had tried to put the house up for sale, and had made an arrangement with
the Goodwill, which was going to send a van out in two days” time to pick up
all the furniture. Herb found out when the realtor called him to ask if a
prospective buyer could come and look at the house that afternoon.
For the first
time he had genuinely lost his temper with Vera.
“What in Christ's
name did you think you were doing?” he roared, after dragging the last of the
incredible story out of her. They were in the living room. He had just finished
calling Goodwill to tell them to forget the van. Outside, rain fell in
monotonous gray sheets.
“Don't blaspheme
the name of the Savior, Herbert.
“Shut up! Shut
up! I'm tired of listening to you rave about that crap!”
She drew in a
startled gasp.
He limped over to
her, his cane thumping the floor in counterpoint. She flinched back a little in
her chair and then looked up at him with that sweet martyr's expression that
made him want, God forgive him, to bust her one across the head with his own
damn walking stick.
“You're not so
far gone that you don't know what you're doing,” he said. “You don't have that
excuse. You snuck around behind my back, Vera. You...
“I did not!
That's a lie! I did no such...
“You did!” he
bellowed. “Well, you listen to me, Vera. This is where I'm drawing the line.
You pray all you want. Praying's free. Write all the letters you want, a stamp
still only costs thirteen cents. If you want to take a bath in all the cheap,
shitty lies those Jesusiumpers tell, if you want to go on with the delusions
and the make-believe, you go on. But I'm not a part of it. Remember that. Do
you understand me?”
“Do you
understand me?”
“You think I'm
crazy!” she shouted at him, and her face crumpled and squeezed together in a
terrible way. She burst into the braying, ugly tears of utter defeat and
disillusion.
“No,” he said more
quietly. “Not yet. But maybe it's time for a little plain talk, Vera, and the
truth is, I think you will be if you don't pull out of this and start facing
reality.”
“You'll see,” she
said through her team. “You'll see. God knows the truth but waits.”
“Just as long as
you understand that he's not going to have our furniture while he's waiting,”
Herb said grimly. “As long as we see eye to eye on that.”
“It's Last
Times!” she told him. “The hour of the Apocalypse is at hand.”
“Yeah? That and
fifteen cents will buy you a cup of coffee, Vera.”
Outside the rain
fell in steady sheets. That was the year Herb turned fifty-two, Vera fifty one,
and Sarah Hazlett twenty-seven.
Johnny had been
in his coma for four years.
9.
The baby came on
Halloween night. Sarah's labor lasted nine hours. She was given mild whiffs of
gas when she needed them, and at some point in her extremity it occurred to her
that she was in the same hospital as Johnny, and she called his name over and
over again. Afterward she barely remembered this, and certainly never told
Walt. She thought she might have dreamed it.
The baby was a
boy. They named him Dennis Edward Hazlett. He and his mother went home three
days later, and Sarah was teaching again after the Thanksgiving holiday. Walt
had landed what looked like a fine job with a Bangor firm of lawyers, and if
all went well they planned for Sarah to quit teaching in June of 1975. She
wasn't all that sure she wanted to. She had grown to like it.
10.
On the first day
of 1975, two small boys, Charlie Norton and Norm Lawson, both of Otisfield,
Maine, were in the Nortons” back yard, having a snowball fight. Charlie was
eight, Norm was nine. The day was overcast and drippy.
Sensing that the
end of the snowball fight was nearing—it was almost time for lunch—Norm charged
Charlie, throwing a barrage of snowballs. Ducking and laughing, Charlie was at
first forced back, and then turned tail and ran, jumping the low stone wall
that divided the Norton back yard from the woods. He ran down the path that led
toward Strimmer's Brook. As he went, Norm caught him a damn good one on the
back of the hood.
Then Charlie
disappeared from sight.
Norm jumped the
wall and stood there for a moment, looking into the snowy woods and listening
to the drip of melt-water from the birches, pines, and spruces.
“Come on back,
chicken!” Norm called, and made a series of high gobbling sounds.
Charlie didn't
rise to the bait. There was no sign of him now, but the path descended steeply
as it went down toward the brook. Norm gobbled again and shifted irresolutely
from one foot to the other. These were Charlie's woods, not his. Charlie's
territory. Norm loved a good snowball fight when he was winning, but he didn't
really want to go down there if Charlie was lying in ambush for him with half a
dozen good hard slushballs all ready to go.
Nonetheless he
had taken half a dozen steps down the path when a high, breathless scream rose
from below.
Norm Lawson went
as cold as the snow his green gum-rubber boots were planted in. The two snowballs
he had been holding dropped from his hands and plopped to the ground. The
scream rose again, so thin it was barely audible.
Jeepers-creepers,
he went and fell in the brook, Norm thought, and that broke the paralysis of
his fear. He ran down the path, slipping and sliding, falling right on his can
once. His heartbeat roared in his ears. Part of his mind saw him fishing
Charlie from the brook just before he went down for the third time and getting
written up in Boys” Life as a hero.
Three-quarters of
the way down the slope the path dog-legged, and when he got around the corner
he saw that Charlie Norton hadn't fallen in Strimmer's Brook after all. He was
standing at the place where the path levelled out, and he was staring at
something in the melting snow. His hood had fallen back and his face was nearly
as white as the snow itself. As Norm approached, he uttered that horrible
gasping out-of-breath scream again.
“What is it?”
Norm asked, approaching. “Charlie, what's wrong?”
Charlie turned to
him, his eyes huge, his mouth gaping. He tried to speak but nothing came out of
his mouth but two inarticulate grunts and a silver cord of saliva. He pointed
instead.
Norm came closer
and looked. Suddenly all the strength went out of his legs and he sat down
hard. The world swam around him.
Protruding from
the melting snow were two legs clad in blue jeans. There was a loafer on one
foot, but the other was bare, white, and defenseless. One arm stuck out of the snow,
and the hand at the end of it seemed to plead for a rescue that had never come.
The rest of the body was still mercifully hidden.
Charlie and Norm
had discovered the body of seventeen-year old Carol Dunbarger, the fourth
victim of the Castle Rock Strangler.
It had been
almost two years since he had last killed, and the people of Castle Rock
(Strimmer's Brook formed the southern borderline between the towns of Castle
Rock and Otisfield) had begun to relax, thinking the nightmare was finally
over.
It wasn't.
CHAPTER SIX
1.
Eleven days after
the discovery of the Dunbarger girl's body, a sleet-and-ice storm struck
northern New England. On the sixth floor of the Eastern Maine Medical Center,
everything was running just a little bit late in consequence. A lot of the
staff had run into problems getting to work, and those that made it found
themselves running hard just to stay even.
It was after nine
am when one of the aides, a young woman named Allison Conover, brought Mr.
Starret his light breakfast. Mr. Starret was recovering from a heart attack and
was “doing his sixteen” in intensive care—a sixteen-day stay following a
coronary was standard operating procedure. Mr. Starret was doing nicely. He was
in room 619, and he had told his wife privately that the biggest incentive to
his recovery was the prospect of getting away from the living corpse in the
room's second bed. The steady whisper of the poor guy's respirator made it hard
to sleep, he told her. After a while it got so you didn't know if you wanted it
to go on whispering or stop. Stop dead, so to speak.
The TV was on
when Allison came in. Mr. Starret was sitting up in bed with his control button
in one hand. “Today” had ended, and Mr. Starret had not yet decided to blank
out “My Back Yard”, the cartoon show that followed it. That would have left him
alone with the sound of Johnny's respirator.
“I'd about given
up on you this morning,” Mr. Starret said, looking at his breakfast tray of
orange juice, plain yoghurt, and wheat flakes with no great joy. What he really
craved was two cholesterol-filled eggs, fried over easy and sweating butter,
with five slices of bacon on the side, not too crisp. The sort of fare that
had, in fact, landed him here in the first place. At least according to his
doctor—the birdbrain.
“The going's bad
outside,” Allison said shortly. Six patients had already told her they had
about given up on her this morning, and the line was getting old. Allison was a
pleasant girl, but this morning she was feeling harried.
“Oh, sorry,” Mr.
Starret said humbly. “Pretty slippery on the roads, is it?”
“It sure is,”
Allison said, thawing slightly. “If I didn't have my husband's four-wheel drive
today, I never would have made it.”
Mr. Starret
pushed the button that raised his bed so he could eat his breakfast
comfortably. The electric motor that raised and lowered it was small but loud.
The TV was still quite loud—Mr. Starret was a little deaf, and as he had told
his wife, the guy in the other bed had never complained about a little extra
volume. Never asked to see what was on the other channel either. He supposed a
joke like that was in pretty poor taste, but when you'd had a heart attack and
wound up in intensive care sharing a room with a human vegetable, you either
learned a little black humor or you went crazy.
Allison raised
her voice a little to be heard over the whining motor and the TV as she
finished setting up Mr. Starret's tray. “There were cars off the road all up
and down State Street hill.”
In the other bed
Johnny Smith said softly, “The whole wad on nineteen. One way or the other. My
girl's sick.”
“You know, this
yogurt isn't half bad,” Mr. Starret said. He hated yogurt, but he didn't want
to be left alone until absolutely necessary. When he was alone he kept taking
his own pulse. “It tastes a little bit like wild hickory...
“Did you hear
something?” Allison asked. She looked around doubtfully.
Mr. Starret let
go of the control button on the side of the bed and the whine of the electric
motor died. On the TV, Elmer Fudd took a potshot at Bugs Bunny and missed.
“Nothing but the
TV,” Mr. Starret said. “What'd I miss?”
“Nothing, I
guess. It must have been the wind around that window. “She could feel a stress
headache coming on—too much to do and not enough people this morning to help
her do it—and she rubbed at her temples, as if to drive the pain away before it
could get properly seated.
On her way out
she paused and looked down at the man in the other bed for a moment. Did he
look different somehow? As if he had shifted position? Surely not.
Allison left the
room and went on down the hall, pushing her breakfast cabinet ahead of her. It
was as terrible a morning as she had feared it would be, everything out of
kilter, and by noon her head was pounding. She had quite understandably
forgotten all about anything she might have heard that morning in Room 619.
But in the days
that followed she found herself looking more and more often at Smith, and by
March Allison had become almost sure that he had straightened a bit—come out of
what the doctors called his prefetal position a little. Not much just a little.
She thought of mentioning it to someone, but in the end did not. After all, she
was only an aide, little more than kitchen help.
It really wasn't
her place.
It was a dream,
he guessed.
He was in a dark,
gloomy place—a hallway of some kind. The ceiling was too high to see. It was
lost in the shadows. The walls were dark chromed steel. They opened out as they
went upward. He was alone, but a voice floated up to where he stood, as if from
a great distance. A voice he knew, words that had been spoken to him in another
place, at another time. The voice frightened him. It was groaning and lost,
echoing back and forth between that dark chromed steel like a trapped bird he
remembered from his childhood. The bird had flown into his father's toolshed
and hadn't the wit to get back out. It had panicked and had gone swooping back
and forth, cheeping in desperate alarm, battering itself against the walls
until it had battered itself to death. This voice had the same doomed quality
as that long ago bird's cheeping. It was never going to escape this place.
“You plan all
your life and you do what you can,” this spectral voice groaned. “You never
want nothing but the best, and the kid comes home with hair down to his
ass-hole and says the president of the United States is a pig. A pig! Sheeyit,
I don't...
Look out, he
wanted to say. He wanted to warn the voice, but he was mute. Look out for what?
He didn't know. He didn't even know for sure who he was, although he had a
suspicion that he had once been a teacher or a preacher.
“Jeeeesus!” The
faraway voice screamed. Lost voice, doomed, drowned. “Jeeeee...
Silence then.
Echoes dying. away. Then, in a little while, it would start again.
So after a
while—he did not know how long, time seemed to have no meaning or relevance in
this place—he began to grope his way down the hall, calling in return (or
perhaps only calling in his mind), perhaps hoping that he and the owner of the
voice could find their way out together, perhaps only hoping to give some
comfort and receive some in return.
But the voice
kept getting further and further away, dimmer and fainter
(far and wee)
until it was just
an echo of an echo. And then it was gone. He was alone now, walking down this
gloomy and deserted hall of shadows. And it began to seem to him that it wasn't
an illusion or a mirage or a dream—at least not of the ordinary kind. It was as
if he had entered limbo, a weird conduit between the land of the living and
that of the dead. But toward which end was he moving?
Things began to
come back. Disturbing things. They were like ghosts that joined him on his
walk, fell in on either side of him, in front of him, behind him, until they
circled him in an eldritch ring—weave a circle round him thrice and touch his
eyes with holy dread, was that how it went? He could almost see them. All the
whispering voices of purgatory. There was a Wheel turning and turning in the
night, a Wheel of the Future, red and black, life and death, slowing. Where had
he laid his bet? He couldn't remember and he should be able to, because the
stakes were his existence. In and out? It had to be one or the other. His girl
was sick. He had to get her home.
After a while,
the hallway began to seem brighter. At first he thought it was imagination, a
sort of dream within a dream if that were possible, but after an unknown length
of time the brightness became too marked to be an illusion. The whole
experience of the corridor seemed to become less dreamlike. The walls drew back
until he could barely see them, and the dull dark color changed to a sad and
misty gray, the color of twilight on a warm and overcast March afternoon. It
began to seem that he was not in a hallway at all anymore, but in a room
-almost in a room, separated from it by the thinnest of membranes, a sort of
placental sac, like a baby waiting to be born. Now he heard other voices, not
echoey but dull and thudding, like the voices of nameless gods speaking in
forgotten tongues. Little by little these voices came clearer, until he could
nearly make out what they were saying.
He began to open
his eyes from time to time (or thought he did) and he could actually see the
owners of those voices: bright, glowing, spectral shapes with no faces at
first, sometimes moving about the room, sometimes bending over him. It didn't
occur to him to try speaking to them, at least not at first. It came to him
that this might be some sort of afterlife, and these bright shapes the shapes
of angels.
The faces, like
the voices, began to come clearer with time. He saw his mother once, leaning
into his field of vision and slowly thundering something totally without
meaning into his upturned face. His father was there another time. Dave Pelsen
from school. A nurse he came to know; he believed her name was Mary or possibly
Marie. Faces, voices, coming closer, jelling together.
Something else
crept in: a feeling that he had changed. He didn't like the feeling. He
distrusted it. It seemed to him that whatever the change was, it was nothing
good. It seemed to him that it meant sorrow and bad times. He had gone into the
darkness with everything, and now it felt to him that he was coming out of it
with nothing at all—except for some secret strangeness.
The dream was
ending. Whatever it had been, the dream was ending. The room was very real now,
very close. The voices, the faces -He was going to come into the room. And it
suddenly seemed to him that what he wanted to do was turn and run—to go back
down that dark hallway forever. The dark hallway was not good, but it was
better than this new feeling of sadness and impending loss.
He turned and
looked behind him, and yes, it was there, the place where the room's walls
changed to dark chrome, a corner beside one of the chairs where, unnoticed by
the bright people who came and went, the room became a passageway into what he
now suspected was eternity. The place where that other voice had gone, the
voice of -The cab driver.
Yes. That memory
was all there now. The cab ride, the driver bemoaning his son's long hair,
bemoaning the fact that his son thought Nixon was a pig. Then the headlights
breasting the hill, a pair on each side of the white line. The crash. No pain,
but the knowledge that his thighs had connected with the taximeter hard enough
to rip it out of its frame. There had been a sensation of cold wetness and then
the dark hallway and now this.
Choose, something
inside whispered. Choose or they'll choose for you, they'll rip you out of this
place, whatever and wherever it is, like doctors ripping a baby out of its
mother's womb by cesarian section.
And then Sarah's
face came to him—she had to be out there someplace, although hers had not been
one of the bright faces bending over his. She had to be out there, worried and
scared. She was almost his, now. He felt that. He was going to ask her to marry
him.
That feeling of
unease came back, stronger than ever, and this time it was all mixed up with
Sarah. But wanting her was stronger, and he made his decision. He turned his
back on the dark place, and when he looked back over his shoulder later on, it
had disappeared; there was nothing beside the chair but the smooth white wall
of the room where he lay. Not long after he began to know where the room must
be—it was a hospital room, of course. The dark hallway faded to a dreamy
memory, never completely forgotten. But more important, more immediate, was the
fact that he was John Smith, he had a girl named Sarah Bracknell, and he had
been in a terrible car accident. He suspected that he must be very lucky to be alive,
and he could only hope that all his original equipment was still there and
still functioning. He might be in Cleaves Mills Community Hospital, but he
guessed the EMMC was more likely. From the way he felt he guessed he had been
here for some time—he might have been blacked out for as long as a week or ten
days. It was time to get going again.
Time to get going
again. That was the thought in Johnny's mind when things finally jelled all the
way back together and he opened his eyes.
It was May 17,
1975. Mr. Starret had long since gone home with standing orders to walk two
miles a day and mend his high cholesterol ways. Across the room was an old man
engaged in a weary” fifteenth round with that all-time heavyweight champ,
carcinoma. He slept the sleep of morphia, and the room was otherwise empty. It
was 3 15 P. M. The TV screen was a drawn green shade.
“Here I am,”
Johnny Smith croaked to no one at all. He was shocked by the “weakness of his
voice. There was no calendar in the room, and he had no way of knowing that he
had been out of it four-and-a-half years.
3.
The nurse came in
some forty minutes later. She went over to the old man in the other bed,
changed his IV feed, went into the bathroom, and came out with a blue plastic
pitcher. She watered the old man's flowers. There were over half a dozen
bouquets, and a score of get-well cards standing open on his table and
windowsill. Johnny watched her perform this homey chore, feeling as yet no urge
to try his voice again.
She put the pitcher
back and came over to Johnny's bed. Going to turn my pillows, he thought. Their
eyes met briefly, but nothing in hers changed. She doesn't know I'm awake. My
eyes have been open before. It doesn't mean anything to her.
She put her hand
on the back of his neck. It was cool and comforting and Johnny knew she had
three children and that the youngest had lost most of the sight of one eye last
Fourth of July. A firecracker accident. The boy's name was Mark.
She lifted his
head, flipped his pillow over, and settled him back. She started to turn away,
adjusting her nylon
uniform at the
hips, and then turned back, puzzled. Belatedly thinking that there had been
something new in his eyes, maybe. Something that hadn't been there before.
She glanced at
him thoughtfully, started to turn away again, and he said, “Hello, Marie.”
She froze, and he
could hear an ivory dick as her teeth came suddenly and violently together. Her
hand pressed against her chest just above the swell of her breasts. A small
gold crucifix hung there. “0-my-God,” she said. “You're awake. I thought you
looked different. How did you know my name?”
“I suppose I must
have heard it. “It was hard to talk, terribly hard. His tongue was a sluggish
worm, seemingly unlubricated by saliva.
She nodded. “You've
been coming up for some time now. I'd better go down to the nurses” station and
have Dr. Brown or Dr. Weizak paged. They'll want to know you're back with us.
“But she stayed a moment longer, looking at him with a frank fascination that
made him uneasy.
“Did I grow a
third eye?” he asked.
She laughed
nervously. “No... of course not. Excuse me.
His eye caught on
his own window ledge and his table pushed up against it. On the ledge was a
faded African violet and a picture of Jesus Christ—it was the sort of picture
of Jesus his mother favored, with Christ looking as if he was ready to bat
dean-up for the New York Yankees or something of a similar clean and athletic
nature. But the picture was yellow. Yellow and beginning to curl at the
corners. Sudden fear dropped over him like a suffocating blanket. “Nurse! he
called. “Nurse!”
In the doorway
she turned back.
“Where are my
get-well cards?” Suddenly it was hard for him to breathe. “That other guy's
got... didn't anyone send me a card?”
She smiled, but
it was forced. It was the smile of some one who is hiding something. Suddenly
Johnny wanted her by his bed. He would reach out and touch her. If he could
touch her, he would know what she was hiding.
“I'll have the
doctor paged,” she said, and left before he could say anything else. He looked
at the African violet, at the aging picture of Jesus, baffled and afraid. After
a little while, he drifted off to sleep again.
4.
“He was awake,”
Marie Michaud said. “He was completely coherent.”
“Okay,” Dr. Brown
answered. “I'm not doubting you. If he woke up once, he'll wake up again.
Probably. It's just a matter of...
Johnny moaned.
His eyes opened. They were blank, half rolled up. Then he seemed to see Marie,
and his eyes came into focus. He smiled a little. But his face was still slack,
as if only his eyes were awake and the rest of him still slept. She had a
sudden feeling that he was not looking at her but into her.
“I think he'll be
okay,” Johnny said. “Once they clean that impacted cornea, the eye'll be as
good as new. Should be.”
Marie gasped
harshly, and Brown glanced at her.
“What is it?”
“He's talking
about my boy,” she whispered. “My Mark.”
“No,” Brown said.
“He's talking in his sleep, that's all Don't make a picture out of an inkblot,
Nurse.”
“Yes. Okay. But he's
not asleep now, is he?”
“Marie?” Johnny
asked. He smiled tentatively. “I dozed off, didn't I?”
“Yes,” Brown
said. “You were talking in your sleep. Gave Marie here a turn. Were you
dreaming?”
“No-oo... not that
I remember. What did I say? And who are you?”
“I'm Dr. James
Brown. Just like the soul singer. Only I'm a neurologist. You said, “I think
he'll be okay once they clean that impacted cornea.” I think that was it,
wasn't it, Nurse?”
“My boy's going
to have that operation,” Marie said. “My boy Mark.”
“I don't remember
anything,” Johnny said. “I guess I was sleeping. “He looked at Brown. His eyes
were clear now, and scared. “I can't lift my arms. Am I paralyzed?”
“Nope. Try your
fingers.”
Johnny did. They all
wiggled. He smiled.
“Superfine,”
Brown said. “Tell me your name.”
“John Smith.”
“Good, and your
middle name?”
“I don't have
one.”
“That's fine, who
needs one? Nurse, go down to your station and find out who's in neurology
tomorrow. I'd like to start a whole series of tests on Mr. Smith.”
“Yes, Doctor.”
“And you might
call Sam Weizak. You'll get him at home or at the golf course.”
“Yes, Doctor.”
“And no
reporters, please... for your life!” Brown was smiling but serious.
“No, of course
not. “She left, white shoes squeaking faintly. Her little boy's going to be
just fine, Johnny thought. I'll be sure to tell her.
“Dr. Brown,” he
said, “where are my get-well cards? Didn't anybody send me a card?”
“Just a few more
questions,” Dr. Brown said smoothly. “Do you recall your mother's name?”
“Of course I do.
Vera.”
“Her maiden
name?”
“Nason.”
“Your father's
name?”
“Herbert. Herb.
And why did you tell her no reporters?”
“Your mailing
address?”
“RFD #1, Pownal,”
Johnny said promptly, and then stopped. An expression of comic surprise passed
across his face. “I mean... well, I live in Cleaves Mills now, at 110 North
Main Street. Why the hell did I give you my parents” address? I haven't lived
there since I was eighteen.”
“And how old are
you now?”
“Look it up on my
driver's license,” Johnny said. “I want to know why I don't have any get-well
cards. How long have I been in the hospital, anyway? And which hospital is
this?”
“It's the Eastern
Maine Medical Center. And we'll get to all the rest of your questions if you'll
just let me...
Brown was sitting
by the bed in a chair he had drawn over from the corner—the same corner where
Johnny had once seen the passage leading away. He was making notes on a clipboard
with a type of pen Johnny couldn't remember ever having seen before. It had a
thick blue plastic barrel and a fibrous tip. It looked like the strange hybrid
offspring of a fountain pen and. a ballpoint.
Just looking at
it made that formless dread come back, and without thinking about it, Johnny
suddenly seized Dr. Brown's left hand in one of his own. His arm moved
creakily, as if there were invisible sixty-pound weights tied to it—a couple
below the elbow and a couple above. He captured the doctor's hand in a weak
grip and pulled. The funny pen left a thick blue line across the paper.
Brown looked at
him, at first only curious. Then his face drained of color. The sharp
expression of interest left his eyes and was replaced with a muddy look of
fear. He snatched his hand away—Johnny had no power to hold it—and for an
instant a look of revulsion crossed the doctor's face, as if he had been
touched by a leper.
Then it was gone,
and he only looked surprised and disconcerted. “What did you do that for? Mr.
Smith...”
His voice
faltered. Johnny's face had frozen in an expression of dawning comprehension.
His eyes were the eyes of a man who has seen something terrible moving and
shifting in the shadows, something too terrible to be described or even named.
But it was a
fact. It had to be named.
“Fifty-five
months?” Johnny asked hoarsely. “Going on five years? No. Oh my God, no.”
“Mr. Smith,”
Brown said, now totally flustered. “Please, it's not good for you to excite...
Johnny raised his
upper body perhaps three inches from the bed and then slumped back, his face
shiny with sweat. His eyes rolled helplessly in their sockets. “I'm
twenty-seven?” he muttered. “Twenty-seven? Oh my Jesus.”
Brown swallowed
and heard an audible dick. When Smith had grabbed his hand, he had felt a
sudden on-rush of bad feelings, childlike in their intensity; crude images of
revulsion had assaulted him. He had found himself remembering a picnic in the
country when he had been seven or eight, sitting down and putting his hand in
something warm and slippery. He had looked around and had seen that he had put
his hand into the maggoty remains of a woodchuck that had lain under a laurel
bush all that hot August. He had screamed then, and he felt a little bit like
screaming now—except that the feeling was fading, dwindling, to be replaced
with a question: How did he know? He touched me and he knew.
Then twenty years
of education rose up strongly in him, and he pushed the notion aside. There
were cases without number of comatose patients who had awakened with a
dreamlike knowledge of many of the things that had gone on around them while
they were in coma. Like anything else, coma was a matter of degree. Johnny
Smith had never been a vegetable; his EEG had never gone flat-line, and if it
had, Brown would not be talking with him now. Sometimes being in a coma was a
little like being behind a one-way glass. To the beholding eye the patient was
completely conked out, but the patient's senses might still continue to
function in some low, power-down fashion. And that was the case here, of
course.
Marie Michaud
came back in. “Neurology is confirmed, and Dr. Weizak is on his way.”
“I think Sam will
have to wait until tomorrow to meet Mr. Smith,” Brown said. “I want him to have
five milligrams of Valium.”
“I don't want a
sedative,” Johnny said. “I want to get out of here. I want to know what
happened!”
“You'll know
everything in time,” Brown said. “Right now it's important that you rest.”
“I've been
resting for four-and-a-half years!”
“Then another
twelve hours won't make much difference,” Brown said inexorably.
A few moments
later the nurse swabbed his upper arm with alcohol, and there was the sting of
a needle. Johnny began to feel sleepy almost at once. Brown and the nurse began
to look twelve feet tall.
“Tell me one
thing, at least,” he said. His voice seemed to come from far, far away.
Suddenly it seemed terribly important. “That pen. What do you call that pen?”
“This?” Brown
held it out from his amazing height. Blue plastic body, fibrous tip. “It's
called a Flair. Now go to sleep, Mr. Smith.”
And Johnny did,
but the word followed him down into his sleep like a mystic incantation, full
of idiot meaning:
Flair... Flair...
5.
Herb put the
telephone down and looked at it. He looked at it for a long time. From the
other room came the sound of the TV, turned up almost all the way. Oral Roberts
was talking about football and the healing love of Jesus there was a connection
there someplace, but Herb had missed it. Because of the telephone call. Oral's
voice boomed and roared. Pretty soon the show would end and Oral would dose it
out by confidently telling his audience that something good was going to happen
to them. Apparently Oral was right.
My boy, Herb
thought. While Vera had prayed for a miracle, Herb had prayed for his boy to
die. It was Vera's prayer that had been answered.. What did that mean, and
where did it leave him? And what was it going to do to her?
He went into the
living room. Vera was sitting on the couch. Her feet, encased in elastic pink
mules, were up on a hassock. She was wearing her old gray robe. She was eating
popcorn straight from the popper. Since Johnny's accident she had put on nearly
forty pounds and her blood pressure had skyrocketed. The doctor wanted to put
her on medication, but Vera wouldn't have it—if it was the will of the Lord for
her to have the high blood, she said, then she would have it. Herb had once
pointed out that the will of the Lord had never stopped her from taking
Bufferin when she had a headache. She had answered with her sweetest
long-suffering smile and her most potent weapon: silence.
“Who was on the
phone?” she asked him, not looking away from the TV. Oral had his arm round the
well-known quarterback of an NFC team. He was talking to a hushed multitude. The
quarterback was smiling modestly.
...and you have
all heard this fine athlete tell you tonight how he abused his body, his Temple
of God. And you have heard...
Herb snapped it
off.
“Herbert Smith!
“She nearly spilled her popcorn sitting up. “I was watching! That was...”
“Johnny woke up.”
...Oral Roberts
and
The words snapped
off in her mouth. She seemed to crouch back in her chair, as if he had taken a
swing at her.
He looked back,
unable to say more, wanting to feel joy but afraid. So afraid.
“Johnny's... “She
stopped, swallowed, then tried again. “Johnny... our Johnny?”
“Yes. He spoke
with Dr. Brown for nearly fifteen minutes. Apparently it wasn't that thing they
thought... false-waking... after all. He's coherent. He can move.”
“Johnny's awake?”
Her hands came up
to her mouth. The popcorn popper, half full, did a slow dipsy-doodle off her
lap and thumped to the rug, spilling popcorn everywhere. Her hands covered the
lower half of her face. Above them her eyes got wider and wider still until for
a dreadful second, Herb was afraid that they might fall out and dangle by their
stalks. Then they dosed. A tiny mewing sound came from behind her hands.
“Vera? Are you
all right?”
“O my God I thank
You for Your will be done my Johnny You brought me my I knew You would, my
Johnny, 0 dear God I will bring You my thanksgiving every day of my life for my
Johnny Johnny JOHNNY -, Her voice was rising to an hysterical, triumphant
scream. He stepped forward, grabbed the lapels of her robe, and shook her.
Suddenly time seemed to have reversed, doubled back on itself like strange
cloth—they might have been back on the night when the news of the accident came
to them, delivered through that same telephone in that same nook.
By nook or by
crook, Herb Smith thought crazily.
“O my precious
God my Jesus oh my Johnny the miracle like I said the miracle...”
“Stop it, Vera!”
Her eyes were
dark and hazy and hysterical. “Are you sorry he's awake again? After all these
years of making fun of me? Of telling people I was crazy?”
“Vera, I never
told anyone you were crazy.”
“You told them
with your eyes!” she shouted at him. “But my God wasn't mocked. Was he,
Herbert? Was he?”
“No,” he said. “I
guess not.”
“I told you I
told you God had a plan for my Johnny. Now you see his hand beginning to work.
“She got up. “I've got to go to him. I've got to tell him. “She walked toward
the closet where her coat hung, seemingly unaware that she was in her robe and
nightgown. Her face was stunned with rapture. In some bizarre and almost
blasphemous way she reminded him of the way she had looked on the day they were
married. Her pink mules crunched popcorn into the rug.
“Vera.”
“I've got to tell
him that God's plan...
“Vera.”
She turned to
him, but her eyes were far away, with her Johnny.
He went to her
and put his hands on her shoulders.
“You tell him
that you love him... that you prayed... waited... watched. Who has a better
right? You're his mother. You bled for him. Haven't I watched you bleed for him
over the last five years? I'm not sorry he's back with us, you were wrong to
say that. I don't think I can make of it what you do, but I'm not sorry. I bled
for him, too.”
“Did you?” Her
eyes were flinty, proud, and unbelieving.
“Yes. And I'm going
to tell you something else, Vera. You're going to keep your trap shut about God
and miracles and Great Plans until Johnny's up on his feet and able to...”
“I'll say what I
have to say!”
...and able to
think what he's doing. What I'm saying is that you're going to give him a
chance to make something of it for himself before you start in on him.”
“You have no
right to talk to me that way! No right at all!”
“I'm exercising
my right as Johnny's dad,” he said grimly. “Maybe for the last time in my life.
And you better not get in my way, Vera. You understand? Not you, not God. not
the bleeding holy Jesus. You follow?”
She glared at him
sullenly and said nothing.
“He's going to
have enough to do just coping with the idea that he's been out like a light for
four-and-a-half years. We don't know if he'll be able to walk again, in spite
of the therapist that came in. We do know there'll have to be an operation on
his ligaments, if he even wants to try; Weizak told us that. Probably more than
one. And more therapy, and a lot of it's going to hurt him like hell. So
tomorrow you're just going to be his mother.”
“Don't you dare
talk to me that way! Don't you dare!”
“If you start
sermonizing, Vera, I'll drag you out of his room by the hair of your head.”
She stared at him,
white-faced and trembling. Joy and fury were at war in her eyes.
“You better get
dressed,” Herb said. “We ought to get going.”
It was a long,
silent ride up to Bangor. The happiness they should have felt between them was
not there; only Vera's hot and militant joy. She sat bolt upright in the
passenger seat, her Bible in her lap, open to the twenty-third Psalm.
6.
At quarter of
nine the next morning, Marie came into Johnny's room and said, “Your mom and
dad are here, if you're up to seeing them.”
“Yes, I'd like
that. “He felt much better this morning, stronger and less disoriented. But the
thought of seeing them scared him a little. In terms of his conscious
recollection, he had seen them about five months ago. His father had been
working on the foundation of a house that had now probably been standing for
three years or more. His mom had fixed him home-baked beans and apple pie for
dessert and had clucked over how thin he was getting.
He caught Marie's
hand weakly as she turned to go.
“Do they look all
right? I mean...”
“They look fine.”
“Oh. Good.”
“You can only
have half an hour with them now. Some more time this evening if the neurology
series doesn't prove too tiring.”
“Dr. Brown's
orders?”
“And Dr.
Weizak's.”
“All right. For a
while. I'm not sure how long I want to be poked and prodded.”
Marie hesitated.
“Something?”
Johnny asked.
“No... not now.
You must be anxious to see your folks. I'll send them in.”
He waited,
nervous. The other bed was empty; the cancer patient had been moved out while Johnny
slept off his Valium pop.
The door opened.
His mother and father came in. Johnny felt simultaneous shock and relief: shock
because they had aged, it was all true; relief because the changes in them did
not yet seem mortal. And if that could be said of them, perhaps it could be
said of him as well.
But something in
him had changed, changed drastically—and it might be mortal.
That was all he
had time to think before his mother's arms were around him, her violet sachet
strong in his nostrils, and she was whispering: “Thank God, Johnny thank God,
thank God you're awake.”
He hugged her
back as best he could his arms still had no power to grip and fell away quickly
and suddenly, in six seconds, he knew how it was with her, what she thought,
and what was going to happen to her. Then it was gone, fading like that dream
of the dark corridor. But when she broke the embrace to look at him, the look
of zealous joy in her eyes had been replaced with one of thoughtful
consideration.
The words seemed
to come out of him of their own:
“Let them give
you the medicine, Mom. That's best.”
Her eyes widened,
she wet her lips and then Herb was beside her, his eyes filled with tears. He
had lost some weight—not as much as Vera had put on, but he was noticeably
thinner. His hair was going fast but the face was the same, homely and plain
and well-loved. He took a large brakeman's bandanna from his back pocket and
wiped his eyes with it. Then he stuck out his hand.
“Hi, son,” he
said. “Good to have you back.”
Johnny shook his
father's hand as well as he could; his pale and strengthless fingers were
swallowed up in his father's red hand. Johnny looked from one to the other -his
mother in a bulky powder-blue pantsuit, his father in a really hideous
houndstooth jacket that looked as if it should belong to a vacuum-cleaner
salesman in Kansas -and he burst into tears.
“I'm sorry,” he
said. “I'm sorry, it's just that...”
“You go on,” Vera
said, sitting on the bed beside him. Her face was calm and clear now. There was
more mother than madness in it. “You go on and cry, sometimes that's best.”
And Johnny did.
7.
Herb told him his
Aunt Germaine had died. Vera told him that the money for the Pownal Community
Hall had finally been raised and the building had commenced a month ago, as
soon as the frost was out of the ground. Herb added that he had put in a bid,
but he guessed honest work cost too dear for them to want to pay. “Oh, shush,
you sore loser,” Vera said.
There was a
little silence and then Vera spoke again. “I hope you realize that your
recovery is a miracle of God, Johnny. The doctors despaired. In Matthew,
chapter nine, we read...
“Vera,” Herb said
warningly.
“Of course it was
a miracle, Mom. I know that.”
“You.. . you do?”
“Yes. And I want
to talk “about it with you... hear your ideas about what that means... just as
soon as I get on my feet again.”
She was staring
at him, open-mouthed. Johnny glanced past her at his father and their eyes met
for a moment. Johnny saw great relief in his father's eyes. Herb nodded
imperceptibly.
“A Conversion!”
Vera ejaculated loudly. “My boy has had a Conversion! Oh, praise God!”
“Vera, hush,”
Herb said. “Best to praise God in a lower voice when you're in the hospital.”
“I don't see how
anybody could not call it a miracle, Mom. And we're going to talk about it a
lot. Just as “soon as I'm out of here.”
“You're going to
come home,” she said. “Back to the house where you were raised. I'll nurse you
back to health and we'll pray for understanding.”
He was smiling at
her, but holding the smile was an effort. “You bet. Mom, would you go down to
the nurses” station and ask Marie if I can have some juice? Or maybe some
ginger ale? I guess I'm not used to talking, and my throat...”
“Of course I will.
“She kissed his cheek and stood up. “Oh, you're so thin. But I'll fix that when
I get you home. “She left the room, casting a single victorious glance at Herb
as she went. They heard her shoes tapping off down the hall.
“How long has she
been that way?” Johnny asked quietly.
Herb shook his
head. “It's come a little at a time since your accident. But it had its start
long before that. You know. You remember.”
“Is she..,”
“I don't know.
There are people down South that handle snakes. I'd call them crazy. She
doesn't do that, How are you, Johnny? Really?”
“I don't know,”
Johnny said. “Daddy, where's Sarah?”
Herb leaned
forward and clasped his hands between his knees. “I don't like to tell you
this, John, but...”
“She's married?
She got married?”
Herb didn't
answer. Without looking directly at Johnny, he nodded his head.
“Oh, God,” Johnny
said hollowly. “I was afraid of that.”
“She's been Mrs.
Walter Hazlett for going on three years. He's a lawyer. They have a baby boy.
John... no one really believed you were going to wake up. Except for your
mother, of course. None of us had any reason to believe you would wake up. “His
voice was trembling now, hoarse with guilt. “The doctors said... ah, never mind
what they said. Even I gave you up. I hate like hell to admit it, but it's
true: All I can ask you is try to understand about me... and Sarah.”
He tried to say
that he did understand, but all that would come out was a sickly sort of croak.
His body felt sick and old, and suddenly he was drowning in his sense of loss.
The lost time was suddenly sitting on him like a load of bricks—a real thing,
not just a vague concept.
“Johnny, don't
take on. There are other things. Good things.”
“It's... going to
take some getting used to,” he managed.
“Yeah. I know.”
“Do you ever see
her?”
“We write back
and forth once in a while. We got acquainted after your accident. She's a nice
girl, real nice. She's still teaching at Cleaves, but I understand she is
getting done this June. She's happy, John.”
“Good,” he said
thickly. “I'm glad someone is.”
“Son...
“I hope you're
not telling secrets,” Vera Smith said brightly, coming back into the room. She
had an ice-clogged pitcher in one hand. “They said you weren't ready for fruit
juice, Johnny, so I brought you the ginger ale.
“That's fine,
Mom.”
She looked from
Herb to Johnny and back to Herb again. “Have you been telling secrets? Why the
long faces?”
“I was just
telling Johnny he's going to have to work hard if he wants to get out of here,”
said Herb. “Lots of therapy.”
“Now why would
you want to talk about that now?” She poured ginger ale into Johnny's glass.
“Everything's going to be fine now. You'll see.”
She popped a
flexible straw into the glass and handed it to him.
“Now you drink
all of it,” she said, smiling. “It's good for you.”
Johnny did drink
all of it. It tasted bitter.
CHAPTER SEVEN
1.
“Close your
eyes,” Dr. Weizak said.
He was a small,
roly-poly man with an incredible styled head of hair and spade sideburns. Johnny
couldn't get over all that hair. A man with a haircut like that in 1970 would
have had to fight his way out of every bar in eastern Maine, and a man Weizak's
age would have been considered ripe for committal.
All that hair.
Man.
He closed his
eyes. His head was covered with electrical contact points. The contacts went to
wires that fed into a wall-console EEG. Dr. Brown and a nurse stood by the
console, which was calmly extruding a wide sheet of graph paper. Johnny wished
the nurse could have been Marie Michaud. He was a little scared.
Dr. Weizak
touched his eyelids and Johnny jerked.
“Nuh... hold
still, Johnny. These are the last two. Just... there.”
“All right,
Doctor',” the nurse said.
A low hum.
“All right,
Johnny. Are you comfortable?”
“Feels like there
are pennies on my eyelids.”
“Yes? You'll get
used to that in no time. Now let me explain to you this procedure. I am going
to ask you to visualize a number of things. You will have about ten seconds on
each, and there are twenty things to visualize in all. You understand?”
“Yes.
“Very fine. We
begin. Dr. Brown?”
“All ready.”
“Excellent.
Johnny, I ask you to see a table. On this table there is an orange.”
Johnny thought
about it. He saw a small card-table with folding steel legs. Resting on it, a
little off-center, was a large orange with the word SUNKIST stamped on its
pocky skin.
“Good,” Weizak
said.
“Can that gadget
see my orange?”
“Nuh... well,
yes; in a symbolic way it can. The machine is tracing your brainwaves. We are
searching for blocks, Johnny. Areas of impairment. Possible indications of
continuing intercranial pressure. Now I ask you to shush with the questions.”
“All right.”
“Now I ask you to
see a television. It is on, but not receiving a station.”
Johnny saw the TV
that was in his apartment—had been in his apartment. The screen was bright gray
with snow. The tips of the rabbit ears were wrapped with tinfoil for better
reception.
“Good.”
The series went
on. For the eleventh item Weizak said, “Now I ask you to see a picnic table on
the left side of a green lawn.”
Johnny thought
about it, and in his mind he saw a lawn chair. He frowned.
“Something
wrong?” Weizak asked.
“No, not at all,”
Johnny said. He thought harder. Picnics. Weiners, a charcoal brazier... associate,
dammit, associate. How hard can it be to see a picnic table in your mind,
you've only seen a thousand of them in your life; associate your way to it.
Plastic spoons and forks, paper plates, his father in a chef's hat, holding a
long fork in one hand and wearing an apron with a motto printed across it in
tipsy letters, THE COOK NEEDS A DRINK. His father making burgers and then they
would all go sit at the -Ah, here it came! Johnny smiled, and then the smile
faded. This time the image in his mind was of a hammock. “Shit!”
“No picnic
table?”
“It's the
weirdest thing. I can't quite... seem to think of it. I mean, I know what it
is, but I can't see it in my mind. Is that weird, or is that weird?”
“Never mind. Try
this one: a globe of the world, sitting on the hood of a pickup truck.”
That one was
easy.
On the nineteenth
item, a rowboat lying at the foot of a street sign (who thinks these things up?
Johnny wondered), it happened again. It was frustrating. He saw a beachball
lying beside a gravestone. He concentrated harder and saw a turnpike overpass.
Weizak soothed him, and a few moments later the wires were removed from his
head and eyelids.
“Why couldn't I
see those things?” he asked, his eyes moving from Weizak to Brown. “What's the
problem?”
“Hard to say with
any real certainty,” Brown said. “It may be a kind of spot amnesia. Or it may
be that the accident destroyed a small portion of your brain—and I mean a
really microscopic bit. We don't really know what the problem is, but it's
pretty obvious that you've lost a number of trace memories. We happened to
strike two. You'll probably come across more.”
Weizak said
abruptly, “You sustained a head injury when you were a child, yes?”
Johnny looked at
him doubtfully.
“There is an old
scar,” Weizak said. “There is a theory, Johnny, backed by a good deal of
statistical research...”
“Research that is
nowhere near complete,” Brown said, almost primly.
“That is true.
But this theory supposes that the people who tend to recover from long-term
coma are people who have sustained some sort of brain injury at a previous
time... it is as though the brain has made some adaptation as the result of the
first injury that allows it to survive the second.”
“It's not
proven,” Brown said. He seemed to disapprove of Weizak even bringing it up.
“The scar is
there,” Weizak said. “Can you not remember what happened to you, Johnny? I
would guess you must have blacked out. Did you fall down the stairs? A bicycle
accident, perhaps? The Scar says this happened to a young boy.”
Johnny thought
hard, then shook his head. “Have you asked my mom and dad?”
“Neither of them
can remember any sort of head injury nothing occurs to you?”
For a moment,
something did—a memory of smoke, black and greasy and smelling like rubber.
Cold. Then it was gone. Johnny shook his head.
Weizak sighed,
then shrugged. “You must be tired.”
“Yes. A little
bit.”
Brown sat on the
edge of the examination table. “It's quarter of eleven. You've worked hard this
morning. Dr. Weizak and I will answer a few questions, if you like, then you go
up to your room for a nap. Okay?”
“Okay,” Johnny
said. “The pictures you took of my brain...
“The CAT-scan,”
Weizak nodded. “Computerized Axial Tomography. “He took a box of Chidets and
shook three of them into his mouth. “The CAT-scan is really a series of brain
X-rays, Johnny. The computer highlights the pictures and...”
“What did it tell
you? How long have I got?”
“What is this how
long have I got stuff?” Brown asked. “It sounds like a line from an old movie.”
“I've heard that
people who come out of long-term comas don't always last so long,” Johnny said.
“They lapse back. It's like a light bulb going really bright before it burns
out for good.”
Weizak laughed
hard. It was a hearty, bellowing laugh, and it was something of a wonder that
he didn't choke on his gum. “Oh, such melodrama. “He put a hand on Johnny's
chest. “You think Jim and I are babies in this field? Nuh. We are neurologists.
What you Americans call high-priced talent. Which means we are only stupid
about the functions of the human brain instead of out-and-out ignoramuses. So I
tell you, yes, there have been lapse-backs. But you will not lapse. I think we
can say that, Jim, yes, okay?”
“Yes,” Brown
said. “We haven't been able to find very much in the way of significant impairment.
Johnny, there's a guy in Texas who was in a coma for nine years. Now he's a
bank loan officer, and he's been doing that job for six years. Before that he
was a teller for two years. There's a woman in Arizona who was down for twelve
years. Something went wrong with the anesthesia while she was in labor. Now
she's in a wheelchair, but she's alive and aware. She came out of it in 1969
and met the baby she had delivered twelve years before. The baby was in the
seventh grade and an honors student.”
“Am I going to be
in a wheelchair?” Johnny asked. “I can't straighten my legs out. My arms are a
little better, but my legs... “He trailed off, shaking his head.
“The ligaments
shorten,” Weizak said. “Yes? That's why comatose patients begin to pull into what
we call the prefetal position. But we know more about the physical degeneration
that occurs in coma than we used to, we are better at holding it off. You have
been exercised regularly by the hospital physical therapist, even in your
sleep. And different patients react to coma in different ways. Your
deterioration has been quite slow, Johnny. As you say, your arms are remarkably
responsive and able. But there has been deterioration. Your therapy will be
long and... should I lie to you? Nuh, I don't think so. It will be long and
painful. You will shed your tears. You may come to hate your therapist. You may
come to fall in love with your bed. And there will be operations—only one if
you are very, very lucky, but perhaps as many as four—to lengthen those ligaments.
These operations are still new. They may succeed completely, partially, or not
at all. And yet as God wills it, I believe you will walk again. I don't believe
you will ever ski or leap hurdles, but you may run and you will certainly
swim.”
“Thank you,”
Johnny said. He felt a sudden wave of affection for this man with the accent
and the strange haircut. He wanted to do something for Weizak in return—and
with that feeling came the urge, almost the need, to touch him.
He reached out
suddenly and took Weizak's hand in both of his own. The doctor's hand was big,
deeply lined, warm.
“Yes?” Weizak
said kindly. “And what is this?”
And suddenly
things changed. It was impossible to say how. Except that suddenly Weizak
seemed very clear to him. Weizak seemed to... to stand forth, outlined in a
lovely, clear light. Every mark and mole and line on Weizak's face stood in
relief. And every line told its own story. He began to understand.
“I want your
wallet,” Johnny said.
“My... ?” Weizak
and Brown exchanged a startled glance.
“There's a
picture of your mother in your wallet and I need to have it,” Johnny said.
“Please.”
“How did you know
that?”
“Please!”
Weizak looked
into Johnny's face for a moment, and then slowly dug under his smock and
produced an old Lord Buxton, bulgy and out of shape.
“How did you know
I carry a picture of my mother? She is dead, she died when the Nazis occupied
Warsaw...
Johnny snatched
the wallet from Weizak's hand. Both he and Brown looked stunned. Johnny opened
it, dismissed the plastic picture-pockets, and dug in the back instead, his
fingers hurrying past old business cards, receipted bills, a canceled check, an
old ticket to some political function. He came up with a small snapshot that
had been laminated in plastic. The picture showed a young woman, her features
plain, her hair drawn back under a kerchief. Her smile was radiant and
youthful. She held the hand of a young boy. Beside her was a man in the uniform
of the Polish army.
Johnny pressed
the picture between his hands and closed his eyes and for a moment there was
darkness and then rushing out of the darkness came a wagon... no, not a wagon,
a hearse. A horse-drawn hearse. The lamps had been muffled in black sacking. Of
course it was a hearse because they were
(dying by the
hundreds, yes, by the thousands, no match for the panzers, the wehrmacht,
nineteenth-century cavalry against the tanks and machine guns. explosions.
screaming, dying men. a horse with its guts blown out and its eyes rolling
wildly, showing the white, an overturned cannon behind it and still they come.
weizak comes, standing in his stirrups, his sword held high in the slanting
rain of late summer 1939, his men following him, stumbling through the mud. the
turret gun of the nazi tiger tank tracks him, braces him, brackets him, fires,
and suddenly he is gone below the waist, the sword flying out of his hand; and
down the road is warsaw. the nazi wolf is loose in europe)
“Really, we have
to put a stop to this,” Brown said, his voice faraway and worried. “You're
overexciting yourself, Johnny.”
The voices came
from far away, from a hallway in time.
“He's put himself
in some kind of trance,” Weizak said. Hot in here. He was sweating. He was
sweating because
(the city's on
fire, thousands are fleeing, a truck is roaring from side to side down a
cobbled street, and the back of the truck is full of waving German soldiers in
coal-scuttle helmets and the young woman is not smiling now, she is fleeing, no
reason not to flee. the child has been sent away to safety and now the truck
jumps the curb, the mudguard strikes her, shattering her hip and sending her
flying through a plate glass window and into a clock shop and everything begins
to chime. chime because of the time. the chime time is)
“Six o'clock,”
Johnny said thickly. His eyes had rolled up to straining, bulging whites.
“September 2, 1939, and all the cuckoo birds are singing.”
“Oh my God, what
is it we have?” Weizak whispered. The nurse had backed up against the EEG
console, her face pale and scared. Everyone is scared now because death is in
the air. It's always in the air in this place, this
(hospital. smell
of ether. they're screaming in the place of death. poland is dead, poland has
fallen before the lightning warfare wehrmacht blitzkreig. shattered hip. the
man in the next bed calling for water, calling, calling, calling. she remembers
“THE BOY IS SAFE. “what boy? she doesn't know. what boy? what is her name. she
doesn't remember. only that)
“The boy is
safe,” Johnny said thickly. “Uh-huh. Uh-huh.”
“We have to put a
stop to this,” Brown repeated.
“How do you
suggest we do that?” Weizak asked, his voice brittle. “It has gone too far
to...
Voices fading.
The voices are under the clouds. Everything is under the clouds. Europe is
under the clouds of war. Everything is under the clouds but the peaks, the
mountain peaks of
(switzerland.
switzerland and now her name is BORENTZ. her name is JOHANNA BORENTZ and her
husband is an engineer or an architect, whichever it is that builds the
bridges. he builds in switzerland and there is goat's milk, goat's cheese. a
baby. ooooh the labor! the labor is terrible and she needs drugs, morphine,
this JOHANNA BORENTZ, because of the hip. the broken hip. it has mended, it has
gone to sleep, but now it awakes and begins to scream as her pelvis spreads to
let the baby out, one baby. two. and three. and four. they don't come all at
once, no—they are a harvest of years, they are)
“The babies,”
Johnny lilted, and now he spoke in a woman's voice, not his own voice at all.
It was the voice of a woman. Then gibberish in song came from his mouth.
“What in the name
of God... “Brown began.
“Polish, it is
Polish!” Weizak cried. His eyes were bulging, his face pale. “It is a cradle
song and it is in Polish, my God, my Christ, what is it we have here?”
Weizak leaned
forward as if to cross the years with Johnny, as if to leap them, as if to
(bridge, a
bridge, it's in turkey. then a bridge somewhere hot in the far east, is it
Laos? can't tell, lost a man there, we lost HANS there, then a bridge in
virginia, a bridge over the RAPPAHANNOCK RIVER and another bridge in
california. we are applying for citizenship now and we go to classes in a hot
little room in the back of a post-office where it always smells of glue. it is
1963, november, and when we hear kennedy has been killed in dallas we weep and
when the little boy salutes his dead father's coffin she thinks “THE BOY IS
SAFE” and it brings back memories of some burning, some great burning and
sorrow, what boy? she dreams about the boy, it makes her head hurt. and the man
dies, HELMUT BORENTZ dies and she and the children live in carmel california.
in a house on. on. on. can't see the street sign, it's in the dead zone, like
the rowboat, like the picnic table on the lawn. it's in the dead zone. like
warsaw. the children go away, she goes to their graduation ceremonies one by
one, and her hip hurts. one dies in vietnam. the rest of them are fine. one of
them is building bridges. her name is JOHANNA BORENTZ and late at night alone
now she sometimes thinks in the ticking darkness: “THE BOY IS SAFE. “)
Johnny looked up
at them. His head felt strange. That peculiar light around Weizak had gone. He
felt like himself again, but weak and a little pukey. He looked at the picture
in his hands for a moment and then handed it back.
“Johnny?” Brown
said. “Are you all right?”
“Tired,” he
muttered.
“Can you tell us
what happened to you?”
He looked at
Weizak. “Your mother is alive,” he said.
“No, Johnny. She
died many years ago. In the war.”
“A German
trooptruck knocked her through a plate-glass show window and into a dock shop,”
Johnny said. “She woke up in a hospital with amnesia. She had no
identification, no papers. She took the name Johanna somebody. I didn't get
that, but when the war was over she went to Switzerland and married a Swiss...
engineer, I think. His specialty was building bridges, and his name was Helmut
Borentz. So her married name was—is -Johanna Borentz.”
The nurse's eyes
were getting bigger and bigger. Dr. Brown's face was tight, either because he
had decided Johnny was having them all on or perhaps just because he didn't
like to see his neat schedule of “tests disrupted.
But Weizak's face
was still and thoughtful.
“She and Helmut
Borentz had four children,” Johnny said in that same, calm, washed-out voice. “His
job took him all over the world. He was in Turkey for a while. Somewhere in the
Far East, Laos, I think, maybe Cambodia. Then he came here. Virginia first,
then some other places I didn't get, finally California. He and Johanna became
U. S. citizens. Helmut Borentz is dead. One of the children they had is also
dead. The others are alive and fine. But she dreams about you sometimes. And in
the dreams she thinks, “the boy is safe”. But she doesn't remember your name.
Maybe she thinks it's too late.”
“California?”
Weizak said thoughtfully. “Sam,” Dr. Brown said. “Really, you mustn't encourage
this.”
“Where in
California, John?”
“Carmel. By the
sea. But I couldn't tell which street. It was there, but I couldn't tell. It
was in the dead zone. Like the picnic table and the rowboat. But she's in
Car-mel, California. Johanna Borentz. She's not old.”
“No, of course
she would not be old,” Sam Weizak said in that same thoughtful, distant tone.
“She was only twenty-four when the Germans invaded Poland.”
“Dr. Weizak, I
have to insist,” Brown said harshly. Weizak seemed to come out of a deep study.
He looked around as if noticing his younger colleague for the first time. “Of
course,” he said. “Of course you must. And John has had his question-and-answer
period... although I believe he has told us more than we have told him.”
“That's
nonsense,” Brown said curtly, and Johnny thought: He's scared. Scared spitless.
Weizak smiled at
Brown, and then at the nurse. She was eyeing Johnny as if he were a tiger in a
poorly built cage. “Don't talk about this, Nurse. Not to your supervisor, your
mother, your brother, your lover, or your priest. Understood?”
“Yes, Doctor,”
the nurse said. But she'll talk, Johnny thought, and then glanced at Weizak.
And he knows it.
He slept most of
the afternoon. Around four P. M. he was rolled down the corridor to the
elevator, taken down to neurology, and there were more tests. Johnny cried. He
seemed to have very little control over the functions adults are supposed to be
able to control. On his way back up, he urinated on himself and had to be
changed like a baby. The first (but far from the last) wave of deep depression
washed over him, carried him limply away, and he wished himself dead. Self-pity
accompanied the depression and he thought how unfair this was. He had done a
Rip van Winkle. He couldn't walk. His girl had married another man and his
mother was in the grip of a religious mania, He couldn't see anything ahead
that looked worth living for.
Back in his room,
the nurse asked him if he would like anything. If Marie had been on duty,
Johnny would have asked for ice water. But she had gone off at three.
“No,” he said,
and rolled over to face the wall. After a little while, he slept.
CHAPTER EIGHT
1.
His father and mother
came in for an hour that evening, and Vera left a bundle of tracts.
“We're going to
stay until the end of the week,” Herb said, “and then, if you're still doing
fine, we'll be going back to Pownal for a while. But we'll be back up every
weekend.”
“I want to stay
with my boy,” Vera said loudly.
“It's best that
you don't, Mom,” Johnny said. The depression had lifted a little bit, but he
remembered how black it had been. If his mother started to talk about God's
wonderful plan for him while he was in that state, he doubted if he would be
able to hold back his cackles of hysterical laughter.
“You need me,
John. You need me to explain
“First I need to
get well,” Johnny said. “You can explain after I can walk. Okay?”
She didn't
answer. There was an almost comically stubborn expression on her face—except
there was nothing very funny about it. Nothing at all. Nothing but a quirk of
fate, that's all. Five minutes earlier or later on that road would have changed
everything. Now look at us, all of us fucked over royally. And she believes
it's God's plan. It's either that or go completely crazy, I suppose
.
To break the
awkward silence, Johnny said: “Well, did Nixon get reelected, dad? Who ran
against him?”
“He got
reelected,” Herb said. “He ran against Mc-Govern.”
“Who?”
“McGovern. George
McGovern. Senator from South Dakota.”
“Not Muskie?”
“No. But Nixon's
not president anymore. He resigned.”
“What?”
“He was a liar,”
Vera said dourly. “He became swollen with pride and the Lord brought him low.”
“Nixon resigned?”
Johnny was flabbergasted. “Him?”
“It was either
quit or be fired,” Herb said. “They were getting ready to impeach him.”
Johnny suddenly
realized that there had been some great and fundamental upheaval in American
politics -almost surely as a result of the war in Vietnam—and he had missed it.
For the first time he really felt like Rip van Winkle. How much had things
changed? He was almost afraid to ask. Then a really chilling thought occurred.
“Agnew... Agnew's
president?”
“Ford,” Vera
said. “A good, honest man.”
“Henry Ford is
president of the United States?”
“Not Henry,” she
said. “Jerry.”
He stared from
one to the other, more than half convinced that all this was a dream or a
bizarre joke.
“Agnew resigned,
too,” Vera said. Her lips were pressed thin and white. “He was a thief. He
accepted a bribe right in his office. That's what they say.
“He didn't resign
over the bribe,” Herb said. “He resigned over some mess back in Maryland. He
was up to his neck in it, I guess. Nixon nominated Jerry Ford to become vice president.
Then Nixon resigned last August and Ford took over. He nominated Nelson
Rockefeller to be vice president. And that's where we are now.
“A divorced man,”
Vera said grimly. “God forbid he ever becomes the president.”
“What did Nixon do?”
Johnny asked. “Jesus Christ, I... “He glanced at his mother, whose brow had
clouded instantly. “I mean, holy crow, if they were going to impeach him...
“You needn't take
the Savior's name in vain over a bunch of crooked politicians,” Vera said. “It
was Watergate.”
“Watergate? Was
that an operation in Vietnam? Something like that?”
“The Watergate
Hotel in Washington,” Herb said. “Some Cubans broke into the offices of the
Democratic Committee there and got caught. Nixon knew about it. He tried to
cover it up.”
“Are you
kidding?” Johnny managed at last.
“It was the
tapes,” Vera said. “And that John Dean. Nothing but a rat deserting a sinking
ship, that's what I think. A common tattletale.”
“Daddy, can you
explain this to me?”
“I'll try,” Herb
said, “but I don't think the whole story has come out, even yet. And I'll bring
you the books. There's been about a million books written on it already, and I
guess there'll be a million more before it's finally done. Just before the
election, in the summer of 1972...”
2.
It was ten-thirty
and his parents were gone. The lights on the ward had been dimmed. Johnny
couldn't sleep. It was all dancing around in his head, a frightening jumble of
new input. The world had changed more resoundingly than he would have believed
possible in so short a time. He felt out of step and out of tune.
Gas prices had
gone up nearly a hundred percent, his father had told him. At the time of his
accident, you could buy regular gas for thirty or thirty-two cents a gallon.
Now it was fifty-four cents and sometimes there were lines at the pumps. The
legal speed limit all over the country was fifty-five miles an hour and the
long-haul truckers had almost revolted over that.
But all of that
was nothing. Vietnam was over. It had ended. The country had finally gone
Communist. Herb said it had happened just as Johnny began to show signs that he
might come out of his coma. After all those years and all that bloodshed, the
heirs of Uncle Ho had rolled up the country like a windowshade in a matter of days.
The president of
the United States had been to Red China. Not Ford, but Nixon. He had gone
before he resigned. Nixon, of all people, the old witch-hunter himself. If
anyone but his dad had told him that, Johnny would have flatly refused to
believe.
It was all too
much, it was too scary. Suddenly he didn't want to know any more, for fear it
might drive him totally crazy. That pen Dr. Brown had had, that Flair -how many
other things were there like that? How many hundreds of little things, all of
them making the point over and over again: You lost part of your life, almost
six percent, if the actuarial tables are to be believed. You're behind the
times. You missed out.
“John?” The voice
was soft. “Are you asleep, John?”
He turned over. A
dim silhouette stood in his doorway. A small man with rounded shoulders. It was
Weizak.
“No. I'm awake.”
“I hoped so. May
I come in?”
“Yes. Please do.”
Weizak looked
older tonight. He sat by Johnny's bed. “I was on the phone earlier,” he said.
“I called directory assistance for Carmel, California. I asked for a Mrs.
Johanna Borentz. Do you think there was such a number?”
“Unless it's
unlisted Qr she doesn't have a phone at all,” Johnny said.
“She has a phone.
I was given the number.”
“Ah,” Johnny
said. He was interested because he liked Weizak, but that was all. He felt no
need to have his knowledge of Johanna Borentz validated, because he knew it was
valid knowledge—he knew it the same way he knew he was right-handed.
“I sat for a long
time and thought about it,” Weizak said. “I told you my mother was dead, but
that was really only an assumption. My father died in the defense of Warsaw. My
mother simply never turned up, huh? It was logical to assume that she had been
killed in the shelling... during the occupation... you understand. She never
turned up, so it was logical to assume that. Amnesia... as a neurologist I can
tell you that permanent, general amnesia is very, very rare. Probably rarer
than true schizophrenia. I have never read of a documented case lasting
thirtyfive years.”
“She recovered
from her amnesia long ago,” Johnny said. “I think she simply blocked everything
out. When her memory did come back, she had remarried and was the mother of two
children... possibly three. Remembering became a guilt trip, maybe. But she
dreams of you. “The boy is safe.” Did you call her?”
“Yes,” Weizak
said. “I dialed it direct. Did you know you could do that now? Yes. It is a
great convenience. You dial one, the area code, the number. Eleven digits and
you can be in touch with any place in the country.
It is an amazing
thing. In some ways a frightening thing.. A boy—no, a young man—answered the
telephone. I asked if Mrs. Borentz was at home. I heard him call, “Mom, it's for
you.” Clunk went the receiver on the table or desk or whatever. I stood in
Bangor, Maine, not forty miles from the Atlantic Ocean and listened to a young
man put the phone down on a table in a town on the Pacific Ocean. My heart...
it was pounding so hard it frightened me. The wait seemed long. Then she picked
up the phone and said, “Yes? Hello?"”
“What did you
say? How did you handle it?”
“I did not, as
you say, handle it,” Weizak replied, and smiled crookedly. “I hung up the
telephone. And I wished for a strong drink, but I did not have one.
“Are you
satisfied it was her?”
“John, what a
naive question! I was nine years old in 1939. I had not heard my mother's voice
since then. She spoke only Polish when I knew her I speak only English now... I
have forgotten much of my native language, which is a shameful thing. How could
I be satisfied one way or the other?”
“Yes, but were
you?”
Weizak scrubbed a
hand slowly across his forehead. “Yes,” he said. “It was her. It was my
mother.”
“But you couldn't
talk to her?”
“Why should I?”
Weizak asked, sounding almost angry. “Her life is her life, huh? It is as you
said. The boy is safe. Should I upset a woman that is just coming into her
years of peace? Should I take the chance of destroying her equilibrium forever?
Those feelings of guilt you mentioned... should I set them free? Or even run
the risk of so doing?”
“I don't know,”
Johnny said. They were troublesome questions, and the answers were beyond
him—but he felt that Weizak was trying to say something about what he had done
by articulating the questions. The questions he could not answer.
“The boy is safe,
the woman is safe in Carmel. The country is between them, and we let that be.
But what about you, John? What are we going to do about you?”
“I don't
understand what you mean.”
“I will spell it
out for you then, huh? Dr. Brown is angry. He is angry at me, angry at you, and
angry at himself, I suspect, for half-believing something he has been sure is
total poppycock for his whole life. The nurse who was a witness will never keep
her silence. She will tell her husband tonight in bed, and it may end there,
but her husband may tell his boss, and it is very possible that the papers will
have wind of this by tomorrow evening. “Coma Patient Re-Awakens with Second
Sight. "”
“Second sight,”
Johnny said. “Is that what it is?”
“I don't know
what it is, not really. Is it psychic? Seer? Handy words that describe nothing,
nothing at all. You told one of the nurses that her son's optic surgery was
going to be successful...
“Marie,” Johnny
murmured. He smiled a little. He liked Marie.
...and that is
already all over the hospital. Did you see the future? Is that what second
sight is? I don't know. You put a picture of my mother between your hands and
were able to tell me where she lives today. Do you know where lost things and
lost people may be found? Is that what second sight is? I don't know. Can you
read thoughts? Influence objects of the physical world? Heal by the laying on
of hands? These are all things that some call “psychic”. They are all related
to the idea of “second sight”. They are things that Dr. Brown laughs at.
Laughs? No. He doesn't laugh. He scoffs.”
“And you don't?”
“I think of Edgar
Cayce. And Peter Hurkos. I tried to tell Dr. Brown about Hurkos and he scoffed.
He doesn't want to talk about it; he doesn't want to know about it.”
Johnny said
nothing.
“So... what are
we going to do about you?”
“Does something
need to be done?”
“I think so,”
Weizak said. He stood up. “I'll leave you to think it out for yourself. But when
you think, think about this: some things are better not seen, and some things
are better lost than found.”
He bade Johnny
good night and left quietly. Johnny was very tired now, but still sleep did not
come for a long time.
CHAPTER NINE
1.
Johnny's first
surgery was scheduled for May 28. Both Weizak and Brown had explained the
procedure carefully to him. He would be given a local anesthetic—neither of
them felt a general could be risked. This first operation would be on his knees
and ankles. His own ligaments, which had shortened during his long sleep, would
be lengthened with a combination of plastic wonder-fibers. The plastic to be
used was also employed in heart valve bypass surgery. The question was not so
much one of his body's acceptance or rejection of the artificial ligaments,
Brown told him, as it was a question of his legs” ability to adjust to the
change. if they had good results with the knees and the ankles, three more
operations were on the boards: one on the long ligaments of his thighs, one on
the elbow-trap ligaments, and possibly a third on his neck, which he could
barely turn at all. The surgery was to be performed by Raymond Ruopp, who had
pioneered the technique. He was flying in from San Francisco.
“What does this
guy Ruopp want with me, if he's such a superstar?” Johnny asked. Superstar was
a word he had learned from Marie. She had used it in connection with a balding,
bespectacled singer with the unlikely name of Elton John.
“You're
underestimating your own superstar qualities,” Brown answered. “There are only
a handful of people in the United States who have recovered from comas as long
as yours was. And of that handful, your recovery from the accompanying brain
damage has been the most radical and pleasing.”
Sam Weizak was
more blunt. “You're a guinea pig, huh?”
“What?”
“Yes. Look into
the light, please. “Weizak shone a light into the pupil of Johnny's left eye.
“Did you know I can look right at your optic nerve with this thing? Yes. The
eyes are more than the windows of the soul. They are one of the brain's most
crucial maintenance points.”
“Guinea pig,”
Johnny said morosely, staring into the savage point of light.
“Yes. “The light
snapped off. “Don't feel so sorry for yourself. Many of the techniques to be
employed in your behalf—and some of those already employed—were perfected
during the Vietnam war. No shortage of guinea pigs in the V. A. hospitals, nuh?
A man like Ruopp is interested in you because you are unique. Here is a man who
has slept four-and-a-half years. Can we make him walk again? An interesting
problem. He sees the monograph he will write on it for The New England Journal
of Medicine. He looks forward to it the way a child looks forward to new toys
under the Christmas tree. He does not see you, he does not see Johnny Smith in
his pain, Johnny Smith who must take the bedpan and ring for the nurse to
scratch if his back itches. That's good. His hands will not shake. Smile,
Johnny. This Ruopp looks like a bank clerk, but he is maybe the best surgeon in
North America.”
But it was hard
for Johnny to smile.
He had read his
way dutifully through the tracts his mother had left him. They depressed him
and left him frightened all over again for her sanity. One of them, by a man
named Salem Kirban, struck him as nearly pagan in its loving contemplation of a
bloody apocalypse and the yawning barbecue pits of hell. Another described the
coming Antichrist in pulp-horror terms. The others were a dark carnival of
craziness: Christ was living under the South Pole, God drove flying saucers,
New York was Sodom, L. A. was Gomorrah. They dealt with exorcism, with witches,
with all manner of things seen and unseen. It was impossible for him to
reconcile the pamphlets with the religious yet earthy woman he had known before
his coma.
Three days after
the incident involving Weizak's snap-shot of his mother, a slim and dark-haired
reporter from the Bangor Daily News named David Bright showed up at the door of
Johnny's room and asked if he could have a short interview.
“Have you asked
the doctors?” Johnny asked.
Bright grinned.
“Actually, no.”
“All right,”
Johnny said. “In that case, I'd be happy to talk to you.”
“You're a man
after my own heart,” Bright said. He came in and sat down.
His first
questions were about the accident and about Johnny's thoughts and feelings upon
slipping out of the coma and discovering he had misplaced nearly half a decade.
Johnny answered these questions honestly and straightforwardly. Then Bright
told him that he had heard from “a source” that Johnny had gained some sort of
sixth sense as a result of the accident.
“Are you asking
me if I'm psychic?”
Bright smiled and
shrugged. “That'll do for a start.”
Johnny had
thought carefully about the things Weizak had said. The more he thought, the
more it seemed to him that Weizak had done exactly the right thing when he hung
up the phone without saying anything. Johnny had begun to associate it in his
mind with that W. W. Jacobs story, “The Monkey's Paw”. The paw was for wishing,
but the price you paid for each of your three wishes was a black one. The old
couple had wished for one hundred pounds and had lost their son in a mill
accident—the mill's compensation had come to exactly one hundred pounds. Then
the old woman had wished for her son back and he had come—but before she could
open the door and see what a horror she had summoned out of its grave, the old
man had used the last wish to send it back. As Weizak had said, maybe some
things were better lost than found.
“No,” he said.
“I'm no more psychic than you are.”
“According to my
source, you...
“No, it isn't
true.”
Bright smiled a
trifle cynically, seemed to debate pressing the matter further, then turned to
a fresh page in his notebook. He began to ask about Johnny's prospects for the
future, his feelings about the road back, and Johnny also answered these
questions as honestly as he could.
“So what are you
going to do when you get out of here?” Bright asked, closing his notebook.
“I haven't really
thought about that. I'm still trying to adjust to the idea that Gerald Ford is
the president.”
Bright laughed.
“You're not alone in that, my friend.”
“I suppose I'll
go back to teaching. It's all I know. But right now that's too far ahead to
think about.”
Bright thanked
him for the interview and left. The artide appeared in the paper two days
later, the day before his leg surgery. It was on the bottom of the front page,
and the headline read: JOHN SMITH, MODERN RIP VAN WINKLE, FACES LONG ROAD BACK.
There were three pictures,
one of them Johnny's picture for the Cleaves Mills High School yearbook (it had
been taken barely a week before the accident), a picture of Johnny in his
hospital bed, looking thin and twisted with his arms and legs in their bent
positions. Between these two was a picture of the almost totally demolished
taxi, lying on its side like a dead dog. There was no mention in Bright's
artide of sixth senses, precognitive powers, or wild talents.
“How did you turn
him off the ESP angle?” Weizak asked him that evening.
Johnny shrugged.
“He seemed like a nice guy. Maybe he didn't want to stick me with it.”
“Maybe not,”
Weizak said. “But he won't forget it. Not if he's a good reporter, and I
understand that he is.”
“You understand?”
“I asked around.”
“Looking out for
my best interests?”
“We all do what
we can, nuh? Are you nervous about tomorrow, Johnny?”
“Not nervous, no.
Scared is a more accurate word.”
“Yes, of course
you are. I would be.”
“Will you be
there?”
“Yes, in the
observation section of the operating theater. You won't be able to tell me from
the others in my greens, but I will be there.”
“Wear something,”
Johnny said. “Wear something so I'll know it's you.”
Weizak looked at
him, and smiled. “All right. I'll pin my watch to my tunic.”
“Good,” Johnny said.
“What about Dr. Brown? Will he be there?”
“Dr. Brown is in
Washington. Tomorrow he will present you to the American Society of
Neurologists. I have read his paper. It is quite good. Perhaps overstated.”
“You weren't
invited?”
Weizak shrugged.
“I don't like to fly. That is something that scares me-”
“And maybe you
wanted to stay here?”
Weizak smiled
crookedly, spread his hands, and said nothing.
“He doesn't like
me much, does he?” Johnny asked. “Dr. Brown?”
“No, not much,”
Weizak said. “He thinks you are having us on. Making things up for some reason
of your own. Seeking attention, perhaps. Don't judge him solely on that, John.
His cast of mind makes it impossible for him to think otherwise. if you feel
anything for Jim, feel a little pity. He is a brilliant man, and he will go
far. Already he has offers, and someday soon he will fly from these cold north
woods and Bangor will see him no more. He will go to Houston or Hawaii or
possibly even to Paris. But he is curiously limited. He is a mechanic of the brain.
He has cut it to pieces with his scalpel and found no soul. Therefore there is
none. Like the Russian astronauts who circled the earth and did not see God. It
is the empiricism of the mechanic, and a mechanic is only a child with superior
motor control. You must never tell him I said that.”
“No.”
“And now you must
rest. Tomorrow you have a long day.
2.
All Johnny saw of
the worldfamous Dr. Ruopp during the operation was a pair of thick horn-rimmed
glasses and a large wen at the extreme left side of the man's forehead. The
rest of him was capped, gowned, and gloved.
Johnny had been
given two preop injections, one of demerol and one of atropine, and when he was
wheeled in he was as high as a kite. The anesthetist approached with the biggest
novocaine needle Johnny had ever seen in his life. He expected that the
injection would hurt, and he was not wrong. He was injected between L4 and L5,
the fourth and fifth lumbar vertebrae, high enough up to avoid the cauda
equina, that bundle of nerves at the base of the spine that vaguely resembles a
horse's tail.
Johnny lay on his
stomach and bit his arm to keep from screaming.
After an endless
time, the pain began to fade to a dull sensation of pressure. Otherwise, the
lower half of his body was totally gone.
Ruopp's face
loomed over him. The green bandit, Johnny thought. Jesse James in horn-rims.
Your money or your life.
“Are you
comfortable, Mr. Smith?” Ruopp asked.
“Yes. But I'd
just as soon not go through that again.”
“You may read
magazines, if you like. Or you may watch in the mirror, if you feel it will not
upset you.”
“All right.”
“Nurse, give me a
blood pressure, please.”
“One-twenty over
seventy-six, Doctor.”
“That's lovely.
Well, group, shall we begin?”
“Save me a
drumstick,” Johnny said weakly, and was surprised by the hearty laughter. Ruopp
patted his sheet-covered shoulder with one thinly gloved hand.
He watched Ruopp
select a scalpel and disappear behind the green drapes hung over the metal hoop
that curved above Johnny. The mirror was convex, and Johnny had a fairly good
if slightly distorted view of everything.
“Oh yes,” Ruopp
said. “Oh yes, dee-de-dee... here's what we want... hum-de-hum... okay... damp,
please, Nurse, come on, wake up for Christ's sake... yes sir... now I believe I'd
like one of those... no, hold it... don't give me what I ask for, give me what
I need... yes, okay. Strap, please.”
With forceps, the
nurse handed Ruopp something that looked like a bundle of thin wires twisted
together. Ruopp picked them delicately out of the air with tweezers.
Like an Italian
dinner, Johnny thought, and look at all that spaghetti sauce. That was what
made him feel ill, and he looked away. Above him, in the gallery, the rest of
the bandit gang looked down at him. Their eyes looked pale and merciless and
frightening. Then he spotted Weizak, third from the right, his watch pinned
neatly to the front of his gown.
Johnny nodded.
Weizak nodded
back.
That made it a
little better.
3.
Ruopp finished
the connections between his knees and calves, and Johnny was turned over.
Things continued. The anesthesiologist asked him if he felt all right. Johnny
told her he thought he felt as well as possible under the circumstances. She
asked him if he would like to listen to a tape and he said that would be very
nice. A few moments later the dear, sweet voice of Joan Baez filled the
operating room. Ruopp did his thing. Johnny grew sleepy and dozed off. When he
woke up the operation was still going on. Weizak was still there. Johnny raised
one hand, acknowledging his presence, and Weizak nodded again.
4.
An hour later it
was done. He was wheeled into a recovery room where a nurse kept asking him if
he could tell her how many of his toes she was touching. After a while, Johnny
could.
Ruopp came in, his
bandit's mask hanging off to one side.
“All right?” he
asked.
“Yes.”
“It went very
well,” Ruopp said. “I'm optimistic.”
“Good.”
“You'll have some
pain,” Ruopp said. “Quite a lot of it, perhaps. The therapy itself will give
you a lot of pain at first. Stick with it.”
“Stick with it,”
Johnny muttered.
“Good afternoon,”
Ruopp said, and left. Probably, Johnny thought, to play a quick nine on the
local golf course before it got too dark.
5.
Quite a lot of
pain.
By nine P. M. the
last of the local had worn off, and Johnny was in agony. He was forbidden to
move his legs without the help of two nurses. It felt as if nail-studded belts
had been looped around his knees and then cinched cruelly tight. Time slowed to
an inchworm's crawl. He would glance at his watch, sure that an hour had passed
since the last time he had looked at it, and would see instead that it had only
been four minutes. He became sure he couldn't stand the pain for another
minute, then the minute would pass, and he would be sure he couldn't stand it
for another minute.
He thought of all
the minutes stacked up ahead, like coins in a slot five miles high, and the
blackest depression he had ever known swept over him in a smooth solid wave and
carried him down. They were going to torture him to death. Operations on his
elbows, thighs, his neck. Therapy. Walkers, wheelchairs, canes.
You're going to
have pain... stick with it.
No, you stick
with it, Johnny thought. Just leave me alone. Don't come near me again with
your butchers” knives. If this is your idea of helping, I want no part of it.
Steady throbbing
pain, digging into the meat of him.
Warmth on his
belly, trickling.
He had wet
himself.
Johnny Smith
turned his face toward the wall and cried.
6.
Ten days after
that first operation and two weeks before the next one was scheduled, Johnny
looked up from the book he was reading—Woodward and Bernstein's All the
President's Men—and saw Sarah standing in the doorway, looking at him
hesitantly.
“Sarah,” he said.
“It is you, isn't it?”
She let out her
breath shakily. “Yes. It's me, Johnny.”
He put the book
down and looked at her. She was smartly dressed in a light-green linen dress,
and she held a small, brown clutch bag in front of her like a shield. She had
put a streak in her hair and it looked good. It also made him feel a sharp and
twisting stab of jealousy -had it been her idea, or that of the man she lived
and slept with? She was beautiful.
“Come in,” he
said. “Come in and sit down.”
She crossed the room
and suddenly he saw himself as she must see him—too thin, his body slumped a
little to one side in the chair by the window, his legs stuck out straight on
the hassock, dressed in a johnny and a cheap hospital bathrobe.
“As you can see,
I put on my tux,” he said.
“You look fine.
“She kissed his cheek and a hundred memories shuffled brightly through his mind
like a doubled pack of cards. She sat in the other chair, crossed her legs, and
tugged at the hem of her dress.
They looked at
each other without saying anything.
He saw that she
was very nervous. If someone were to touch her on the shoulder, she would
probably spring right out of her seat.
“I didn't know if
I should come,” she said, “but I really wanted to.”
“I'm glad you
did.”
Like strangers on
a bus, he thought dismally. It's got to be more than this, doesn't it?
“So how're you
doing?” she asked.
He smiled. “I've
been in the war. Want to see my battle scars?” He raised his gown over his
knees, showing the S-shaped incisions that were now beginning to heal. They
were still red and hashmarked with stitches.
“Oh, my Lord,
what are they doing to you?”
“They're trying
to put Humpty Dumpty back together again,” Johnny said. “All the king's horses,
all the king's men, and all the king's doctors. So I guess.. “And then he
stopped, because she was crying.
“Don't say it
like that. Johnny,” she said. “Please don't say it like that.”
“I'm sorry. It
was just... I was trying to joke about it. “Was that it? Had he been trying to
laugh it off or had it been a way of saying, Thanks for coming to see me,
they're cutting me to pieces?
“Can you? Can you
joke about it?” She had gotten a Kleenex from the clutch bag and was wiping her
eyes with it.
“Not very often.
I guess seeing you again... the defenses go up, Sarah.”
“Are they going
to let you out of here?”
“Eventually. It's
like running the gauntlet in the old days, did you ever read about that? If I'm
still alive after every Indian in the tribe has had a swing at me with his
tomahawk, I get to go free.”
“This summer?”
“No, I... I don't
think so.”
“I'm so sorry it
happened,” she said, so low he could barely hear her. “I try to figure out
why... or how things could have changed -,. and it just robs me of sleep. if I
hadn't eaten that bad hot dog... if you had stayed instead of going back...
“She shook her head and looked at him, her eyes red. “It seems sometimes
there's no percentage.
Johnny smiled.
“Double zero. House spin. Hey, you remember that? I clobbered that Wheel,
Sarah.”
“Yes. You won
over five hundred dollars.
He looked at her,
still smiling, but now the smile was puzzled, wounded almost. “You want to know
something funny? My doctors think maybe the reason I lived was because I had
some sort of head injury when I was young. But I couldn't remember any, and
neither could my mom and dad. But it seems like every time I think of it, I
flash on that Wheel of Fortune... and a smell like burning rubber.”
“Maybe you were
in a car accident... “she began doubtfully.
“No, I don't
think that's it. But it's like the Wheel was my warning... and I ignored it.”
She shifted a
little and said uneasily, “Don't, Johnny.”
He shrugged. “Or
maybe it was just that I used up four years of luck in one evening. But look at
this, Sarah. “Carefully, painfully, he took one leg off the hassock, bent it to
a ninety degree angle, then stretched it out on the hassock again. “Maybe they
can put Humpty back together again. When I woke up, I couldn't do that, and I
couldn't get my legs to straighten out as much as they are now, either.”
“And you can think,
Johnny,” she said. “You can talk. We all thought that... you know.”
“Yeah, Johnny the
turnip. “A silence fell between them again, awkward and heavy. Johnny broke it
by saying with forced brightness, “So how's by you?”
“Well... I'm
married. I guess you knew that.”
“Dad told me.”
“He's such a fine
man,” Sarah said. And then, in a burst, “I couldn't wait, Johnny. I'm sorry
about that, too. The doctors said you'd never come out of it, that you'd get
lower and lower until you just... just slipped away. And
even if I had
known... “She looked up at him with an uneasy expression of defense on her
face. “Even if I had known, Johnny, I don't think I could have waited.
Four-and-a-half years is a long time.”
“Yeah, it is,” he
said. “That's a hell of a long time. You want to hear something morbid? I got
them to bring me four years worth of news magazines just so I could see who
died. Truman. Janis Joplin. Jimi Hendrix—Jesus, I thought of him doing “Purple
Haze” and I could hardly believe it. Dan Blocker. And you and me. We just
slipped away.”
“I feel so bad
about it,” she said, nearly whispering. “So damn guilty. But I love the guy,
Johnny. I love him a lot.”
“Okay, that's
what matters.”
“His name is Walt
Hazlett, and he's a...”
“I think I'd
rather hear about your kid,” Johnny said. “No offense, huh?”
“He's a peach,”
she said, smiling. “He's seven months old now. His name is Dennis but we call
him Denny. He's named after his paternal grandfather.”
“Bring him in
sometime. I'd like to see him.”
“I will,” Sarah
said, and they smiled at each other falsely, knowing that nothing of the kind
was ever going to happen. “Johnny, is there anything that you need?”
Only you, babe.
And the last four-and-a-half years back again.
“Nah,” he said.
“You still teachin?”
“Still teachin, for
a while yet,” she agreed.
“Still snortin
that wicked cocaine?”
“Oh Johnny, you
haven't changed. Same old tease.”
“Same old tease,”
he agreed, and the silence fell between them again with an almost audible
thump.
“Can I come see
you again?”
“Sure,” he said.
“That would be fine, Sarah. “He hesitated, not wanting it to end so
inconclusively, not wanting to hurt her or himself if it could be avoided.
Wanting to say something honest.
“Sarah,” he said,
“you did the right thing.”
“Did I?” she
asked. She smiled, and it trembled at the corners of her mouth. “I wonder. It
all seems so cruel and... I can't help it, so wrong. I love my husband and my
baby, and when Walt says that someday we're going to be living in the finest
house in Bangor, I believe him. He says someday he's going to run for Bill
Cohen's seat in the House, and I believe that, too. He says someday someone
from Maine is going to be elected president, and I can almost believe that. And
I come in here and look at your poor legs... “She was beginning to cry again
now. “They look like they went through a Mixmaster or something and you're so
thin...
“No, Sarah,
don't.”
“You're so thin
and it seems wrong and cruel and I hate it, I hate it, because it isn't right
at all, none of it!”
“Sometimes
nothing is right, I guess,” he said. “Tough old world. Sometimes you just have
to do what you can and try to live with it. You go and be happy, Sarah. Ann if
you want to come and see me, come on and come. Bring a cribbage board.”
“I will,” she
said. “I'm sorry to cry. Not very cheery for you, huh?”
“It's all right,”
he said, and smiled. “You want to get off that cocaine, baby. Your nose'll fall
off.”
She laughed a
little. “Same old Johnny,” she said. Suddenly she bent and kissed his mouth.
“0h Johnny, be well soon.”
He looked at her
thoughtfully as she drew away.
“Johnny?”
“You didn't leave
it,” he said. “No, you didn't leave it at all.”
“Leave what?” She
was frowning in puzzlement.
“Your wedding
ring. You didn't leave it in Montreal.”
He had put his
hand up to his forehead and was rubbing the patch of skin over his right eye
with his fingers. His arm cast a shadow and she saw with something very like
superstitious fear that his face was half-light, half-dark. It made her think
of the Halloween mask he had scared her with. She and Walt had honeymooned in
Montreal, but how could Johnny know that? Unless maybe Herb had told him. Yes,
that was almost certainly it. But only she and Walt knew that she had lost her
wedding ring somewhere in the hotel room. No one else knew because he had
bought her another ring before they flew home. She had been too embarrassed to
tell anyone, even her mother.
“How...
Johnny frowned
deeply, then smiled at her. His hand fell away from his forehead and clasped
its mate in his lap.
“It wasn't sized
right,” he said. “You were packing, don't you remember, Sarah? He was out
buying something and you were packing. He was out buying... buying... don't
know. It's in the dead zone.”
Dead zone?
“He went out to a
novelty shop and bought a whole bunch of silly stuff as souvenirs. Whoopee
cushions and things like that. But Johnny, how could you know I lost my r...
“You were
packing. The ring wasn't sized right, it was a lot too big. You were going to
have it taken care of when you got back. But in the meantime, you... ... That
puzzled frown began to return, then cleared immediately. He smiled at her. “You
stuffed it with toilet paper!”
There was no
question about the fear now. It was coiling lazily in her stomach like cold
water. Her hand crept up to her throat and she stared at him, nearly
hypnotized. He's got the same look in his eyes, that same cold amused look that
he had when he was beating the Wheel that night. What's happened to you,
Johnny? What are you? The blue of his eyes had darkened to a near violet, and
he seemed far away. She wanted to run. The room itself seemed to be darkening,
as if he were somehow tearing the fabric of reality, pulling apart the links
between past and present.
“It slipped off
your finger,” he said. “You were putting his shaving stuff into one of those
side pockets and it just sllipped off. You didn't notice you'd lost it until
later, and so you thought it was somewhere in the room. “He laughed, and it was
a high, tinkling, tripping sound—not like Johnny's usual laugh at all—but
cold... cold. “Boy, you two turned that room upside down. But you packed it.
It's still in that suitcase pocket. All this time. You go up in the attic and
look, Sarah. You'll see.”
In the corridor
outside, someone dropped a water glass or something and cursed in surprise when
it broke. Johnny glanced toward the sound, and his eyes cleared. He looked
back, saw her frozen, wide-eyed face, and frowned with concern.
“What? Sarah, did
I say something wrong?”
“How did you
know?” she whispered. “How could you know those things?”
“I don't know,”
he said. “Sarah, I'm sorry” if I... “Johnny, I ought to go, Denny's with the
sitter. “All right. Sarah, I'm sorry I upset you.”
“How could you
know about my ring, Johnny?” He could only shake his head.
7.
Halfway down the
first-floor corridor, her stomach began to feel strange. She found the ladies”
just in time. She hurried in, dosed the door of one of the stalls, and threw up
violently. She flushed and then stood with her eyes closed, shivering, but also
close to laughter. The last time she had seen Johnny she had thrown up, too.
Rough justice? Brackets in time, like bookends? She put her hands over her
mouth to stifle whatever might be trying to get out—laughter or maybe a scream.
And in the darkness the world seemed to tilt irrationally, like a dish. Like a
spinning Wheel of Fortune.
8.
She had left
Denny with Mrs. Labelle, so when she got home the house was silent and empty.
She went up the narrow stairway to the attic and turned the switch that controlled
the two bare, dangling light bulbs. Their luggage was stacked up in one corner,
the Montreal travel stickers still pasted to the sides of the orange Grants”
suitcases. There were three of them. She opened the first, felt through the
elasticized side pouches, and found nothing. Likewise the second. Likewise the
third.
She drew in a
deep breath and then let it out, feeling foolish and a little disappointed—but
mostly relieved. Overwhelmingly relieved. No ring. Sorry, Johnny. But on the
other hand, I'm not sorry at all. It would have been just a little bit too
spooky.
She started to
slide the suitcases back into place between a tall pile of Walt's old college
texts and the floor lamp that crazy woman's dog had knocked over and which
Sarah had never had the heart to throw out. And as she dusted off her hands
preparatory to putting the whole thing behind her, a small voice far inside her
whispered, almost too low to hear, Sort of a flying search, wasn't it? Didn't
really want to find anything, did you, Sarah?
No. No, she
really hadn't wanted to find anything. And if that little voice thought she was
going to open all those suitcases again, it was crazy. She was fifteen minutes
in picking up Denny. Walt was bringing home one of the senior partners in his firm
for dinner (a very big deal), and she owed Bettye Hackman a letter—from the
Peace Corps in Uganda, Bettye had gone directly into marriage with the son of a
staggeringly rich Kentucky horse breeder. Also, she ought to dean both
bathrooms, set her hair, and give Denny a bath. There was really too much to do
to be frigging around up in this hot, dirty attic.
So she pulled all
three suitcases open again and this time she searched the side pockets very
carefully, and tucked all the way down in the corner of the third suitcase she
found her wedding ring. She held it up to the glare of one of the naked bulbs
and read the engraving inside, still as fresh as it had been on the day Walt
slipped the ring on her finger: WALTER AND SARAH HAZLETT—JULY 9, 1972.
Sarah looked at
it for a long time.
Then she put the
suitcases back, turned off the lights, and went back downstairs. She changed
out of the linen dress, which was now streaked with dust, and into slacks and a
light top. She went down the block to Mrs. Labelle's and picked up her son.
They went home and Sarah put Denny in the living room, where he crawled around
vigorously while she prepared the roast and peeled some potatoes. With the
roast in the oven, she went into the living room and saw that Denny had gone to
sleep on the rug. She picked him up and put him in his crib. Then she began to
dean the toilets. And in spite of everything, in spite of the way the dock was
racing toward dinnertime, her mind never left the ring. Johnny had known. She
could even pinpoint the moment he had come by this knowledge. When she had
kissed him before leaving.
Just thinking
about him made her feel weak and strange, and she wasn't sure why. It was all
mixed up. His crooked smile, so much the same, his body, so terribly changed,
so light and undernourished, the lifeless way his hair lay against his scalp
contrasting so blindingly with the rich memories she still held of him. She had
wanted to kiss him.
“Stop it,” she
murmured to herself. Her face in the bathroom mirror looked like a stranger's
face. Flushed and hot and let's face it, gang, sexy.
Her hand dosed on
the ring in the pocket of her slacks, and almost—but not quite—before she was
aware of what she was going to do, she had thrown it into the clean, slightly
blue water of the toilet bowl. All sparkly clean so that if Mr. Treaches of
Baribault, Treaches, Moorehouse, and Gendron had to take a leak sometime during
the dinner party, he wouldn't be offended by any unsightly ring around the
bowl, who knows what road-blocks may stand in the way of a young man on his
march toward the counsels of the mighty, right? Who knows anything in this
world?
It made a tiny
splash and sank slowly to the bottom of the dear water, turning lazily over and
over. She thought she heard a small clink when it struck the porcelain at the
bottom, but that was probably just imagination. Her
head throbbed.
The attic had been hot and stale and musty. But Johnny's kiss—that had been
sweet. So sweet.
Before she could
think about what she was doing (and thus allow reason to reassert itself), she
reached out and flushed the toilet. It went with a bang and a roar. It seemed
louder, maybe, because her eyes were squeezed shut. When she opened them, the
ring was gone. It had been lost, and now it was lost again.
Suddenly her legs
felt weak and she sat down on the edge of the tub and put her hands over her
face. Her hot, hot face. She wouldn't go back and see Johnny again. It wasn't a
good idea. It had upset her. Walt was bringing home a senior partner and she
had a bottle of Mondavi and a budget-fracturing roast, those were the things
she would think about. She should be thinking about how much she loved Walt,
and about Denny asleep in his crib. She should think about how, once you made
your choices in this crazy world, you had to live with them. And she would not
think about Johnny Smith and his crooked, charming smile anymore.
9.
The dinner that
night was a great success.
CHAPTER TEN
1.
The doctor put
Vera Smith on a blood-pressure drug called Hydrodiural. It didn't lower her
blood pressure much ('not a dime's worth,” she was fond of writing in her
letters), but it did make her feel sick and weak. She had to sit down and rest
after vacuuming the floor. Climbing a flight of stairs made her stop at the top
and pant like a doggy on a hot August afternoon. If Johnny hadn't told her it
was for the best, she would have thrown the pills out the window right then.
The doctor tried
her on another drug, and that made her heart race so alarmingly that she did
stop taking it.
“This is a
trial-and-error procedure,” the doctor said. “We'll get you fixed up
eventually, Vera. Don't worry.
“I don't worry,”
Vera said. “My faith is in the Lord God.”
“Yes, of course
it is. Just as it should be, too.”
By the end of June,
the doctor had settled on a combination of Hydrodiural and another drug called
Aldomet fat, yellow, expensive pills, nasty things. When she started taking the
two drugs together, it seemed like she had to make water every fifteen minutes.
She had headaches. She had heart palpitations. The doctor said her blood
pressure was down into the normal range again, but she didn't believe him. What
good were doctors, anyway? Look what they were doing to her Johnny, cutting him
up like butcher's meat, three operations already, he looked like a monster with
stitches all over his arms and legs and neck, and he still couldn't get around
without one of those walkers, like old Mrs. Sylvester had to use. If her blood
pressure was down, why did she feel so crummy all the time?
“You've got to
give your body time enough to get used to the medication,” Johnny said. It was
the first Saturday in July, and his parents were up for the weekend. Johnny had
just come back from hydrotherapy, and he looked pale and haggard. In each hand
he held a small lead ball, and he was raising them and then lowering them into
his lap as,they talked, flexing his elbows, building up his biceps and triceps.
The healing scars which ran like slashmarks across his elbows and forearms
expanded and contracted.
“Put your faith
in God, Johnny,” Vera said. “There's no need of all this foolishness. Put your
faith in God and he'll help you.”
“Vera... “Herb
began.
“Don't you Vera
me. This is foolishness! Doesn't the Bible say, ask and it shall be given,
knock and it shall be opened unto you? There's no need for me to take that evil
medicine and no need for my boy to let those doctors go on torturing him. It's
wrong, it's not helping, and it's sinful!”
Johnny put the
balls of lead shot on the bed. The muscles in his arms were trembling. He felt
sick to his stomach and exhausted and suddenly furious at his mother.
“The Lord helps
those who help themselves,” he said. “You don't want the Christian God at all,
Mom. You want a magic genie that's going to come out of a bottle and give you
three wishes.”
“Johnny!”
“Well, it's
true.”
“Those doctors
put that idea in your head! All of these crazy ideas I” Her lips were
trembling; her eyes wide but tearless. “God brought you out of that coma to do
his will, John. These others, they're just...
“Just trying to
get me back on my feet so I won't have to do God's will from a wheelchair the
rest of my life.”
“Let's not have
an argument,” Herb said. “Families shouldn't argue. “And hurricanes shouldn't
blow, but they do every year, and nothing he could say was going to stop this.
It had been coming.
“If you put your
trust in God, Johnny... “Vera began, taking no notice of Herb at all.
“I don't trust
anything anymore.”
“I'm sorry to
hear you say that,” she said. Her voice was stiff and distant. “Satan's agents
are everywhere. They'll try to turn you from your destiny. Looks like they are
getting along with it real well.”
“You have to make
some kind of... of eternal thing out of it, don't you? I'll tell you what it
was, it was a stupid accident. a couple of kids were dragging and I just
happened to get turned into dog meat. You know what I want, Mom? I want to get
out of here. That's all I want. And I want you to go on taking your medicine
and and try to get your feet back on the ground. That's all I want.”
“I'm leaving.
“She stood up. Her face was pale and drawn. “I'll pray for you, Johnny.”
He looked at her
helpless, frustrated, and unhappy. His anger was gone. He had taken it out on
her. “Keep taking your medicine! “he said.
“I pray that
you'll see the light.”
She left the
room, her face set and as grim as stone.
Johnny looked
helplessly at his father.
“John, I wish you
hadn't done that,” Herb said.
“I'm tired. It
doesn't do a thing for my judgment. Or my temper.”
“Yeah,” Herb
said. He seemed about to say more and didn't.
“Is she still
planning to go out to California for that flying saucer symposium or whatever
it is?”
“Yes. But she may
change her mind. You never know from one day to the next, and it's still a
month away.”
“You ought to do
something.”
“Yeah? What? Put
her away? Commit her?” Johnny shook his head. “I don't know. But maybe it's
time you thought about that seriously instead of just acting like it's out of
the question. She's sick. You have to see that.”
Herb said loudly:
“She was all right before you...
Johnny winced, as
if slapped.
Look, I'm sorry.
John, I didn't mean that.”
“Okay, Dad.”
“No, I really
didn't. “Herb's face was a picture of misery. “Look, I ought to go after her.
She's probably leafleting the hallways by now.”
“Okay.”
“Johnny, just try
to forget this and concentrate on getting well. She does love you, and so do I.
Don't be hard on us.”
“No. It's all
right, dad.”
Herb kissed
Johnny's cheek. “I have to go after her.”
“All right.”
Herb left. When
they were gone, Johnny got up and tottered the three steps between his chair
and the bed. Not much. But something. A start, He wished more than his father
knew that he hadn't blown up at his mother like that. He wished it because an
odd sort of certainty was growing in him that his mother was not going to live
much longer.
2.
Vera stopped
taking her medication. Herb talked to her, then cajoled, finally demanded. It
did no good. She showed him the letters of her “correspondents in Jesus”, most
of them scrawled and full of misspellings, all of them supporting her stand and
promising to pray for her. One of them was from a lady in Rhode Island who had
also been at the farm in Vermont, waiting for the end of the world (along with
her pet Pomeranian, Otis). “GOD is the best medicine,” this lady wrote, “ask
GOD and YOU WILL BE HEALED, not DRS who OSURP the POWER of GOD, it is DRS who
have caused all the CANCER in this evil world with there DEVIL'S MEDDLING,
anyone who has had SURGERY for instance, even MINOR like TONSILS OUT, sooner or
later they will end up with CANCER, this is a proven fact, so ask GOD, pray
GOD, merge YOUR WILL with HIS WILL and YOU WILL BE HEALED!!”
Herb talked to
Johnny on the phone, and the next day Johnny called his mother and apologized
for being so short with her. He asked her to please start taking the medicine
again—for him. Vera accepted his apology, but refused to go back to the
medication. If God needed her treading the earth, then he would see she
continued to tread it. If God wanted to call her home, he would do that even if
she took a barrel of pills a day. It was a seamless argument, and Johnny's only
possible rebuttal was the one that Catholics and Protestants alike have
rejected for eighteen hundred years: that God works His will through the mind
of man as well as through the spirit of man.
“Momma,” he said,
“haven't you thought that God's will was for some doctor to invent that drug so
you could live longer? Can't you even consider that idea?”
Long distance was
no medium for theological argument. She hung up.
The next day
Marie Michaud came into Johnny's room, put her head on his bed, and wept.
“Here, here,”
Johnny said, startled and alarmed. “What's this? What's wrong?”
“My boy,” she
said, still crying. “My Mark. They operated on him and it was just like you
said. He's fine. He's going to see out of his bad eye again. Thank God.”
She hugged Johnny
and he hugged her back as best he could. With her warm tears on his own cheek,
he thought that whatever had happened to him wasn't all bad. Maybe some things
should be told, or seen, or found again. It wasn't even so farfetched to think
that God was working through him, although his own concept of God was fuzzy and
ill-defined. He held Marie and told her how glad he was. He told her to
remember that he wasn't the one who had operated on Mark, and that he barely
remembered what it was that he had told her. She left shortly after that,
drying her eyes as she went, leaving Johnny alone to think.
3.
Early in August,
Dave Pelsen came to see Johnny. The Cleaves Mills High assistant principal was
a small, neat man who wore thick glasses and Hush Puppies and a series of loud
sports jackets. Of all the people who came to see Johnny during that almost
endless summer of 1975, Dave had changed the least. The gray was speckled a
little more fully through his hair, but that was all.
“So how are you
doing? Really?” Dave asked, when they had finished the amenities.
“Not so bad,”
Johnny said. “I can walk alone now if I don't overdo it. I can swim six laps in
the pool. I get headaches sometimes, real killers, but the doctors say I can
expect that to go on for some time. Maybe the rest of my life.”
“Mind a personal
question?”
“If you're going
to ask me if I can still get it up,” Johnny said with a grin, “that's affirmative.”
“That's good to
know, but what I wanted to know about is the money. Can you pay for this?”
Johnny shook his
head. “I've been in the hospital for going on five years. No one but a
Rockefeller could pay for that. My father and mother got me into some sort of
state-funded program. Total Disaster, or something like that.”
Dave nodded. “The
Extraordinary Disaster program. I figured that. But how did they keep you out
of the state hospital, Johnny? That place is the pits.”
“Dr. Weizak and
Dr. Brown saw to that. And they're largely responsible for my having been able
to come back as far as I have. I was a... a guinea pig, Dr. Weizak says. How
long can we keep this comatose man from turning into a total vegetable? The
physical therapy unit was working on me the last two years I was in coma. I had
megavitamin shots... my ass still looks like a case of smallpox. Not that they
expected any return on the project from me personally. I was assumed to be a
terminal case almost from the time I came in. Weizak says that what he and
Brown did with me is aggressive life support”. He thinks it's the beginning of
a response to all the criticism about sustaining life after hope of recovery is
gone. Anyway, they couldn't continue to use me if I'd gone over to the state
hospital, so they kept me here. Eventually, they would have finished with me
and then I would have gone to the state hospital.”
“Where the most
sophisticated care you would have gotten would have been a turn every six hours
to prevent bedsores,” Dave said. “And if you'd waked up in 1980, you would have
been a basket case.”
“I think I would
have been a basket case no matter what,” Johnny said. He shook his head slowly.
“I think if someone proposes one more operation on me, I'll go nuts. And I'm
still going to have a limp and I'll never be able to turn my head all the way
to the left.”
“When are they
letting you out?”
“In three weeks,
God willing.”
“Then what?”
Johnny shrugged.
“I'm going down home, I guess. To Pownal. My mother's going to be in California
for a while on a... a religious thing. Dad and I can use the time to get
reacquainted. I got a letter from one of the big literary agents in New York...
well, not him, exactly, but one of his assistants. They think there might be a
book in what happened to me. I thought I'd try to do two or three chapters and
an outline, maybe this guy or his assistants can sell it. The money would come
in pretty damn handy, no kidding there.”
“Has there been
any other media interest?”
“Well, the guy
from the Bangor Daily News who did that original story...
“Bright? He's
good.”
“He'd like to
come down to Pownal after I blow this joint and do a feature story. I like the
guy; but right now I'm holding him off. There's no money in it for me, and
right now, frankly, that's what I'm looking for. I'd go on “To Tell the Truth”
if I thought I could make two hundred bucks out of it. My folks” savings are
gone. They sold their car and bought a clunker. Dad took a second mortgage on
the house when he should have been thinking about retiring and selling it and
living on the proceeds.”
“Have you thought
about coming back into teaching?”
Johnny glanced
up. “Is that an offer?”
“It ain't chopped
liver.”
“I'm grateful,”
Johnny said. “But I'm just not going to be ready in September, Dave.”
“I wasn't
thinking about September. You must remember Sarah's friend, Anne Strafford?”
Johnny nodded. “Well, she's Anne Beatty now, and she's going to have a baby in
December. So we need an English teacher second semester. Light schedule. Four
classes, one senior study hall, two free periods.”
“Are you making a
firm offer, Dave?”
“Firm.”
“That's pretty
damn good of you,” Johnny said hoarsely.
“Hell with
that,Dave said easily. “You were a pretty damn good teacher.”
“Can I have a
couple of weeks to think it over?”
“Until the first
of October, if you want,” Dave said. “You'd still be able to work on your book,
I think. If it looks like there might be a possibility there.”
Johnny nodded.
“And you might not
want to stay down there in Pownal too long,” Dave said. “You might find it...
uncomfortable.”
Words rose to
Johnny's lips and he had to choke them off.
Not for long,
Dave. You see, my mother's in the process of blowing her brains out right now.
She's just not using a gun. She's going to have a stroke. She'll be dead before
Christmas unless my father and I can persuade her to start taking her medicine
again, and I don't think we can. And I'm a part of it—how much of a part I
don't know. I don't think I want to know.
Instead he
replied, “News travels, huh?”
Dave shrugged. “I
understand through Sarah that your mother has had problems adjusting. She'll
come around, Johnny. In the meantime, think about it.”
“I will. In fact,
I'll give you a tentative yes right now. It would be good to teach again. To
get back to normal.”
“You're my man,”
Dave said.
After he left,
Johnny lay down on his bed and looked out the window. He was very tired. Get
back to normal Somehow he didn't think that was ever really going to happen.
He felt one of
his headaches coming on.
4.
The fact that
Johnny Smith had come out of his coma with something extra finally did get into
the paper, and it made page one under David Bright's byline. It happened less
than a week before Johnny left the hospital.
He was in
physical therapy, lying on his back on a floorpad. Resting on his belly was a
twelve-pound medicine ball. His physical therapist, Eileen Magown, was standing
above him and counting off situps. He was supposed to do ten of them, and he
was currently struggling over number eight. Sweat was streaming down his face,
and the healing scars on his neck stood out bright red, Eileen was a small,
homely woman with a whipcord body, a nimbus of gorgeous, frizzy red hair, and
deep green eyes flecked with hazel. Johnny sometimes called her—with a mixture
of irritation and amusement—the world's smallest Marine D. I. She had ordered
and cajoled and demanded him back from a bed-fast patient who could barely hold
a glass of water to a man who could walk without a cane, do three chinups at a
time, and do a complete turn around the hospital pool in fifty-three
seconds—not Olympic time, but not bad. She was unmarried and lived in a big
house on Center Street in Old-town with her four cats. She was slate-hard and
she wouldn't take no for an answer.
Johnny collapsed
backward. “Nope,” he panted. “Oh, I don't think so, Eileen.”
“Up. boy!” she
cried in high and sadistic good humor. “Up! Up! Just three more and you can
have a Coke!”
“Give me my
ten-pound ball and I'll give you two more.”
“That ten-pound
ball is going into the Guinness Book of Records as the world's biggest
suppository if you don't give me three more. Up!”
“Urrrrrrgrah!”
Johnny cried, jerking through number eight. He flopped back down, then jerked
up again.
“Great! “Eileen
cried. “One more, one more!”
“OOOOARRRRRRRRUNCH!”
Johnny screamed, and sat up for the tenth time. He collapsed to the mat,
letting the medicine ball roil away. “I ruptured myself, are you happy. all my
guts just came loose, they're floating around inside me, I'll sue you, you
goddam harpy.”
“Jeez, what a
baby,” Eileen said, offering him her hand. “This is nothing compared to what
I've got on for next time.”
“Forget it,”
Johnny said. “All I I'm gonna do next time is swim in the...”
He looked at her,
an expression of surprise spreading over his face. His grip tightened on her
hand until it was almost painful.
“Johnny? What's
wrong? Is it a charley horse?”
“Oh gosh,” Johnny
said mildly.
“Johnny?”
He was still gripping
her hand, looking into her face with” a faraway, dreamy contemplation that made
her feel nervous. She had heard things about Johnny Smith, rumors that she had
disregarded with her own brand of hard-headed pragmatism. There was a story
that he had predicted Marie Michaud's boy was going to be all right, even
before the doctors were one hundred percent sure they wanted to try the risky
operation. Another rumor had something to do with Dr. Weizak; it was said
Johnny had told him his mother was not dead but living someplace on the West
Coast under another name. As far as Eileen Magown was concerned, the stories
were so much eyewash. on a par with the confession magazines and sweet-savage
love stories so many nurses read on station. But the way he was looking at her
now made her feel afraid. It was as if he was looking inside her.
“Johnny, are you
okay?” They were alone in the physical therapy room. The big double doors with
the frosted glass panels which gave on the pool area were closed.
“Gosh sakes,” Johnny
said. “You better... yes, there's still time. Just about.”
“What are you
talking about?”
He snapped out of
it then. He let go of her hand but he had gripped it tightly enough to leave
white indentations along the back.
“Call the fire
department,” he said. “You forgot to turn off the burner. The curtains are
catching on fire.”
“What...?”
“The burner
caught the dish towel and the dish towel caught the curtains,” Johnny said
impatiently. “Hurry up and call them. Do you want your house to burn down?”
“Johnny, you
can't know...
“Never mind what
you can't know,” Johnny said, grabbing her elbow. He got her moving and they
walked across to the doors. Johnny was limping badly on his left leg, as he
always did when he was tired. They crossed the room that housed the swimming
pool, their heels clacking hollowly on the tiles, then went out into the first
floor hallway and down to the nurses” station. Inside, two nurses were drinking
coffee and a third was on the phone, telling someone on the other end how she
had redone her apartment.
“Are you going to
call or should I?” Johnny asked.
Eileen's mind was
in a whirl. Her morning routine was as set as a single person's is apt to be.
She had gotten up and boiled herself a single egg while she ate a whole
grapefruit, unsweetened, and a bowl of All-Bran. After breakfast she had
dressed and driven to the hospital. Had she turned off the burner? Of course
she had. She couldn't specifically remember doing it, but it was habit. She
must have.
“Johnny, really,
I don't know where you got the idea...”
“Okay, I will.”
They were in the
nurses” station now, a glassed in booth furnished with three straight-backed
chairs and a hot plate. The little room was dominated by the callboard -rows of
small lights that flashed red when a patient pushed his call button. Three of
them were flashing now. The two nurses went on drinking their coffee and
talking about some doctor who had turned up drunk at Benjamin's. The third was
apparently talking with her beautician.
“Pardon me, I
have to make a call,” Johnny said.
The nurse covered
the phone with her hand. “There's a pay phone in the lob...”
“Thanks,” Johnny
said, and took the phone out of her hand. He pushed for one of the open lines
and dialed 0. He got a busy signal. “What's wrong with this thing?”
“Hey!” The nurse
who had been talking to her beautician cried. “What the hell do you think
you're doing? Give me that!”
Johnny remembered
that he was in a hospital with its own switchboard and dialed 9 for an outside
line. Then he redialed the 0.
The deposed
nurse, her cheeks flaming with anger, grabbed for the phone. Johnny pushed her
away. She whirled, saw Eileen, and took a step toward her. “Eileen, what's with
this crazy guy?” she asked stridently. The other two nurses had put down their
coffee cups and were staring gape-mouthed at Johnny.
Eileen shrugged
uncomfortably. “I don't know, he just
“Operator.”
“Operator, I want
to report a fire in Oldtown,” Johnny said. “Can you give me the correct number
to call, please?”
“Hey,” one of the
nurses said. “Whose house is on fire?”
Eileen shifted
her feet nervously. “He says mine is.”
The nurse who had
been talking about her apartment to her beautician did a double take. “Oh my
God, it's that guy,” she said.
Johnny pointed at
the callboard, where five or six lights were flashing now. “Why don't you go
see what those people want?”
The operator had
connected him with the Oldtown Fire Department.
“My name is John
Smith and I need to report a fire. It's at... “He looked at Eileen. “What's
your address?”
For a moment
Johnny didn't think she was going to tell him. Her mouth worked, but nothing
came out. The two coffee drinkers had now forsaken their cups and withdrawn to
the station's far corner. They were whispering together like little girls in a
grammar school john. Their eyes were wide.
“Sir?” the voice
on the other end asked.
“Come on,” Johnny
said, “do you want your cats to fry?”
“624 Center
Street,” Eileen said reluctantly. “Johnny, you've wigged out.”
Johnny repeated
the address into the phone. “It's in the kitchen.”
“Your name, sir?”
“John Smith. I'm
calling from the Eastern Maine Medical Center in Bangor.”
“May I ask how
you came by your information?”
“We'd be on the
phone the rest of the day. My information is correct. Now go put it out. “He
banged the phone down.
...and he said
Sam Weizak's mother was still...”
She broke off and
looked at Johnny. For a moment he felt all of them looking at him, their eyes
lying on his skin like tiny, hot weights, and he knew what would come of this
and it made his stomach turn.
“Eileen,” he
said.
“What?”
“Do you have a
friend next door?”
“Yes... Burt and
Janice are next door...”
“Either of them
home?”
“I guess Janice
probably would be, sure.
“Why don't you
give her a call?”
Eileen nodded,
suddenly understanding what he was getting at. She took the phone from his hand
and dialed an 827 exchange number. The nurses stood by watching avidly, as if
they had stepped into a really exciting TV program by accident.
“Hello? Jan? It's
Eileen. Are you in your kitchen?... Would you take a look out your window and
tell me if everything looks, well, all right over at my place?... Well, a
friend of mine says... I'll tell you after you go look, okay?” Eileen was
blushing. “Yes, I'll wait. “She looked at Johnny and repeated, “You've wigged
out, Johnny.”
There was a pause
that seemed to go on and on. Then Eileen began listening again. She listened
for a long time and then said in a strange, subdued voice totally unlike her
usual one: “No, that's all right, Jan. They've been called. No... I can't
explain right now but I'll tell you later. “She looked at Johnny. “Yes, it is
funny how I could have known... but I can explain. At least I think I can.
Good-bye.”
She hung up the
telephone. They all looked at her, the nurses with avid curiosity, Johnny with
only dull certainty.
“Jan says there's
smoke pouring out of my kitchen window,” Eileen said, and all three nurses
sighed in unison. Their eyes, wide and somehow accusing, turned to Johnny
again. Jury's eyes, he thought dismally.
“I ought to go home,”
Eileen said. The aggressive, cajoling, positive physical therapist was gone,
replaced by a small woman who was worried about her cats and her house and her
things... I don't know how to thank you, Johnny... I'm sorry I didn't believe
you, but... “She began to weep.
One of the nurses
moved toward her, but Johnny was there first. He put an arm around her and led
her out into the hall.
“You really can,”
Eileen whispered. “What they said...”
“You go on,”
Johnny said. “I'm sure it's going to be fine. There's going to be some minor
smoke and water damage, and that's all. That movie poster from Butch Cassidy
and the Sundance Kid, I think you're going to lose that, but that's all.”
“Yes, okay. Thank
you. Johnny. God bless you. “She kissed him on the cheek and then began to trot
down the hall. She looked back once, and the expression on her face was very
much like superstitious dread.
The nurses were
lined up against the glass of the nurses” station, staring at him. Suddenly they
reminded him of crows on a telephone line, crows staring down at something
bright and shiny, something to be pecked at and pulled apart.
“Go on and answer
your calls,” he said crossly, and they. flinched back at the sound of his
voice. He began to limp up the hall toward the elevator, leaving them to start
the gossip on its way. He was tired. His legs hurt. His hip joints felt as if
they had broken glass in them. He wanted to go to bed.
CHAPTER ELEVEN
1.
“What are you
going to do?” Sam Weizak asked.
“Christ, I don't
know,” Johnny said. “How many did you say are down there?”
“About eight. One
of them is the northern New England AP stringer. And there are people from two
of the TV stations with cameras and lights. The hospital director is quite
angry with you, Johnny. He feels you have been naughty.”
“Because a lady's
house was going to burn down?” Johnny asked. “All I can say is it must have
been one frigging slow news day.”
“As a matter of
fact it wasn't. Ford vetoed two bills. The P. L. O. blew up a restaurant in Tel
Aviv. And a police dog sniffed out four hundred pounds of marijuana at the
airport.”
“Then what are
they doing here?” Johnny asked. When Sam had come in with the news that
reporters were gathering in the lobby, his first sinking thought was what his
mother might make of this. She was with his father in Pownal, making ready for
her California pilgrimage, which began the following week. Neither Johnny nor
his father believed the trip was a good idea, and the news that her son had
somehow turned psychic might make her cancel it, but in this case Johnny was
very much afraid that the cure might be the greater of two evils. Something
like this could set her off for good.
On the other
hand—this thought suddenly blossomed in his mind with all the force of
inspiration—it might persuade her to start taking her medicine again.
“They're here
because what happened is news,” Sam said. “It has all the classic ingredients.”
“I didn't do
anything, I just...
“You just told
Eileen Magown her house was on fire and it was,” Sam said softly. “Come on,
Johnny, you must have known this was going to happen sooner or later.”
“I'm no publicity
hound,” Johnny said grimly.
“No. I didn't
mean to suggest you were. An earthquake is no publicity hound. But the
reporters cover it. People want to know.”
“What if I just
refuse to talk to them?”
“That is not much
of an option,” Sam replied. “They will go away and publish crazy rumors. Then,
when you leave the hospital, they will fall on you. They will shove microphones
in your face as if you were a senator or a crime boss, nuh?”
Johnny thought
about it. “Is Bright down there?”
“Yes.”
“Suppose I ask
him to come up? He can get the story and give it to the rest of them.”
“You can do that,
but it would make the rest of them extremely unhappy. And an unhappy reporter
will be your enemy. Nixon made them unhappy and they tore him to pieces.”
“I'm not Nixon,”
Johnny said.
Weizak grinned
radiantly. “Thank God,” he said. “What do you suggest?” Johnny asked.
2.
The reporters stood
up and crowded forward when Johnny stepped through the swing doors and into the
west lobby. He was wearing a white shirt, open at the collar, and a pair of
blue jeans that were too big for him. His face was pale but composed. The scars
from the tendon operations stoodout clearly on his neck. Flashbulbs popped warm
fire at him and made him wince. Questions were babbled.
“Here! Here!” Sam
Weizak shouted. “This is a convalescent patient! He wants to make a brief
statement and he will answer some of your questions, but only if you behave in
an orderly fashion! Now fall back and let him breathe!”
Two sets of TV
light bars flashed on, bathing the lobby in an unearthly glare. Doctors and
nurses had gathered by the lounge doorway to watch. Johnny winced away from the
lights, wondering if this was what they meant by the limelight. He felt as if
all of it might be a dream.
“Who're you?” one
of the reporters yelled at Weizak.
“I am Samuel
Weizak, this young man's doctor, and that name is spelled with two X's.”
There was general
laughter and the mood eased a little. “Johnny, you feel all right?” Weizak
asked. It was early evening, and his sudden insight that Eileen Magown's
kitchen was catching fire seemed distant and unimportant, the memory of a
memory.
“Sure,” he said.
“What's your
statement?” one of the reporters called.
“Well,” Johnny
said, “it's this. My physical therapist is a woman named Eileen Magown. She's a
very nice lady, and she's been helping me get my strength back. I was in an
accident, you see, and... “One of the TV cameras moved in, goggling at him
blankly, throwing him off-stride for a moment “... and I got pretty weak. My
muscles sort of collapsed. We were in the physical therapy room this morning,
just finishing up, and I got the feeling that her house was on fire. That is,
to be more specific... “Jesus) you sound like an asshole! “I felt that she had
forgotten to turn off her stove and that the curtains in the kitchen were about
to catch fire. So we just went and called the fire department and that's all
there was to it.”
There was a
moment's gaping pause as they digested that—I sort of got the feeling, and
that's all there was to it—and then the barrage of questions came again,
everything mixed together into a meaningless stew of human voices. Johnny
looked around helplessly, feeling disoriented and vulnerable.
“One at a time!”
Weizak yelled. “Raise your hands! Were you never schoolchildren?”
Hands waved, and
Johnny pointed at David Bright.
“Would you call
this a psychic experience, Johnny?”
“I would call it
a feeling,” Johnny answered. “I was doing situps and I finished. Miss Magown
took my hand to help me up and I just knew.”
He pointed at
someone else.
“Mel Allen,
Portland Sunday Telegram, Mr. Smith. Was it like a picture? A picture in your
head?”
“No, not at all,”
Johnny said, but he was not really able to remember what it had been like.
“Has this
happened to you before, Johnny?” A young woman in a slacksuit asked.
“Yes, a few
times.”
“Can you tell us
about the other incidents?”
“No, I'd rather
not.”
One of the TV
reporters raised his hand and Johnny nodded at him. “Did you have any of these
flashes before your accident and the resulting coma, Mr. Smith?”
Johnny hesitated.
The room seemed
very still. The TV lights were warm on his face, like a tropical sun. “No,” he
said.
Another barrage
of questions. Johnny looked helplessly at Weizak again.
“Stop! Stop!” He
bellowed. He looked at Johnny as the roar subsided. “You are done, Johnny?”
“I'll answer two more
questions,” Johnny said. “Then... really.. it's been a long day for me... yes,
Ma'am?”
He was pointing
to a stout woman who had wedged herself in between two young reporters. “Mr.
Smith,” she said in a loud, carrying, tubalike voice, “who will be the Democrats”
nominee for president next year?”
“I can't tell you
that,” Johnny said, honestly surprised at the question. “How could I tell you
that?”
More hands were
raised. Johnny pointed to a tall, sober-faced man in a dark suit. He took one
step forward. There was something prim and coiled about him.
“Mr. Smith, I'm
Roger Dussault, from the Lewiston Sun, and I would like to know if you have any
idea why you should have such an extraordinary ability as this... if indeed you
do. Why you, Mr. Smith?”
Johnny cleared
his throat. “As I understand your question... you're asking me to justify
something I don't understand. I can't do that.”
“Not justify, Mr.
Smith. Just explain.”
He thinks I'm
hoaxing them. Or trying.
Weizak stepped up
beside Johnny. “I wonder if I might answer that,” he said. “Or at least attempt
to explain why it cannot be answered.”
“Are you psychic,
too?” Dussault asked coldly.
“Yes, all
neurologists must be, it's a requirement,” Weizak said. There was a burst of
laughter and Dussault flushed.
“Ladies and
gentlemen of the press. This man spent four-and-a-half years in a coma. We who
study the human brain have no idea why he did, or why he came out of it, and
this is for the simple reason that we do not understand what a coma really is,
any more than we understand sleep or the simple act of waking. Ladies and
gentlemen, we do not understand the brain of a frog or the brain of an ant. You
may quote me on these things... you see I am fearless, nuh?”
More laughter.
They liked Weizak. But Dussault did not laugh.
“You may also
quote me as saying I believe this man is now in possession of a very new human
ability, or a very old one. Why? If I and my coleagues do not understand the
brain of an ant, can I tell you why? I cannot. I can suggest some interesting
things to you, however, things which may or may not have bearing. A part of
John Smith's brain has been damaged beyond repair—a very small part, but all
parts of the brain may be vital. He calls this his “dead zone”, and there,
apparently, a number of trace memories were stored. all of these wiped out
memories seem to be part of a “set” that of street, road, and highway
designations. A subset of a larger overall set, that of where it is. This is a
small but total aphasia which seems to include both language and vizualization
skills.
“Balancing this
off, another tiny part of John Smith's brain appears to have awakened. A
section of the cerebrum within the parietal lobe. This is one of the deeply
grooved sections of the “forward” or “thinking” brain. The electrical responses
from this section of Smith's brain are way out of line from what they should
be, nuh? Here is one more thing. The parietal lobe has something to do with the
sense of touch—how much or how little we are not completely sure—and it is very
near to that area of the brain that sorts and identifies various shapes and
textures. And it has been my own observation that John's “flashes” are always
preceded by some sort of touching.”
Silence.
Reporters were scribbling madly. The TV cameras, which had moved in to focus on
Weizak, now pulled back to include Johnny in the picture.
“Is that it,
Johnny?” Weizak asked again.
“I guess...”
Dussault suddenly
shouldered his way through the knot of reporters. For a bemused moment Johnny
thought he was going to join them in front of the doors, possibly for the
purpose of rebuttal. Then he saw that Dussault was slipping something from
around his neck.
“Let's have a
demonstration,” he said. He was holding a medallion on a fine-link gold chain.
“Let's see what you can do with this.”
“We'll see no
such thing,” Weizak said. His bushy salt-and-pepper eyebrows had drawn
thunderously together and he stared down at Dussault like Moses. “This man is
not a carnival performer, sir!”
“You sure could
have fooled me,” Dussault said. “Either he can or he can't, right? While you
were busy suggesting things, I was busy suggesting something to myself. What I
was suggesting was that these guys can never perform on demand, because they're
all as genuine as a pile of three-dollar bills.”
Johnny looked at
the other reporters. Except for Bright, who looked rather embarrassed, they
were watching avidly. They looked like the nurses peering at him through the
glass; Suddenly he felt like a Christian in a pitful of lions. They win either
way, he thought. If I can tell him something, they've got a front-page story.
If I can't, or if I refuse to try, they've got another kind of story.
“Well?” Dussault
asked. The medallion swung back and forth below his fist.
Johnny looked at
Weizak, but Weizak was looking away, disgusted.
“Give it to me,”
Johnny said.
Dussault handed
it over. Johnny put the medallion in his palm. It was a St. Christopher medal.
He dropped the fine-link chain on top of it in a crisp little yellow heap and
closed his hand over it.
Dead silence fell
in the room. The handful of doctors and nurses standing by the lounge doorway
had been joined by half a dozen others, some of them dressed in streetclothes
and on their way out of the hospital for the night. A crowd of patients had
gathered at the end of the hallway leading to the first-floor TV and game
lounge. The people who had come for the regular early evening visiting hours
had drifted over from the main lobby. A feeling of thick tension lay in the air
like a humming power cable.
Johnny stood
silently, pale and thin in his white shirt and oversized blue jeans. The St.
Christopher medal was clamped so tightly in his right hand that the cords in
his wrist stood out dearly in the glare of the TV light bars. In front of him,
sober, impeccable, and judgmental in his dark suit, Dussault stood in the
adversary position. The moment seemed to stretch out interminably. No one
coughed or whispered.
“()h,” Johnny
said softly... then: “Is that it?”
His fingers
loosened slowly. He looked at Dussault.
“Well?” Dussault
asked, but the authority was suddenly gone from his voice. The tired, nervous
young man who had answered the reporters” questions seemed also to be gone.
There was a half-smile on Johnny's lips, but there was nothing warm about it.
The blue of his eyes had darkened. They had grown cold and distant. Weizak saw
and felt a chill of gooseflesh. He later told his wife that it had been the
face of a man looking through a high-powered microscope and observing an
interesting species of paramecium.
“It's your
sister's medallion,” he said to Dussault. “Her name was Anne but everyone
called her Terry. Your older sister. You loved her. You almost worshiped the
ground she walked on.”
Suddenly,
terribly, Johnny Smith's voice began to climb and change. It became the cracked
and unsure voice of an adolescent.
“It's for when
you cross Lisbon Street against the lights, Terry, or when you're out parking
with one of those guys from E. L. Don't forget, Terry... don't forget...”
The plump woman
who had asked Johnny who the Democrats would nominate next year uttered a
frightened little moan. One of the TV cameramen muttered “Holy Jesus!” in a
hoarse voice.
“Stop it,”
Dessault whispered. His face had gone a sick shade of gray. His eyes bulged and
spittle shone like chrome on his lower lip in this harsh light. His hands moved
for the medallion, which was now looped on its fine gold chain over Johnny's
fingers. But his hands moved with no power or authority. The medallion swung
back and forth, throwing off hypnotic gleams of light.
“Remember me,
Terry,” the adolescent voice begged. “Stay clean, Terry.. . please, for God's
sake stay clean...”
“Stop it! Stop
it, you bastard!”
Now Johnny spoke
in his own voice again. “It was speed, wasn't it? Then meth. She died of a
heart attack at twenty-seven. But she wore it ten years, Rog. She remembered
you. She never forgot. Never forgot... never
never.. . never.”
The medallion
slipped from his fingers and struck the floor with a small, musical sound.
Johnny stared away into emptiness for a moment, his face calm and cool and
distant. Dussault grubbed at his feet for the medallion, sobbing hoarsely in
the stunned silence.
A flashbulb
popped, and Johnny's face cleared and became his own again. Horror touched it,
and then pity. He knelt clumsily beside Dussault.
“I'm sorry,” he
said. “I'm sorry, I didn't mean...
“You cheapjack,
bastard hoaxer!” Dussault screamed at him. “It's a lie! All a lie! All a lie!”
He struck Johnny a clumsy, open-handed blow on the neck and Johnny fell over,
striking his head on the floor, hard. He saw stars.
Uproar.
He was dimly
aware that Dussault was pushing his way blindly through the crowd and toward
the doors. People milled around Dussault, around Johnny. He saw Dussault
through a forest of legs and shoes. Then Weizak was beside him, helping him to
sit up.
“John, are you
all right? Did he hurt you?”
“Not as bad as I
hurt him. I'm okay. “He struggled to his feet. Hands—maybe Weizak's, maybe
someone else's -helped him. He felt dizzy and sick; almost revolted. This had
been a mistake, a terrible mistake.
Someone screamed
piercingly—the stout woman who had asked about the Democrats. Johnny saw
Dussault pitch forward to his knees, grope at the sleeve of the stout woman's
print blouse and then slide tiredly forward onto the tile near the doorway he
had been trying to reach. The St. Christopher medal was still in one hand.
“Fainted,”
someone said. “Fainted dead away. I'll be damned.”
“My fault,”
Johnny said to Sam Weizak. His throat felt close and tight with shame, with
tears. “All my fault.”
“No,” Sam said.
“No, John.”
But it was. He
shook loose of Weizak's hands and went to where Dussault lay, coming around
now, eyes blinking dazedly at the ceiling. Two of the doctors had come over to
where he lay.
“Is he all
right?” Johnny asked. He turned toward the woman reporter in the slacksuit and
she shrank away from him. A cramp of fear passed over her face.
Johnny turned the
other way, toward the TV reporter who had asked him if he'd had any flashes
before his accident. It suddenly seemed very important that he explained to
someone. “I didn't mean to hurt him,” he said. “Honest to God, I never meant to
hurt him. I didn't know...
The TV reporter
backed up a step. “No,” he said. “Of course you didn't. He was asking for it,
anybody could see that. Just... don't touch me, huh?”
Johnny looked at
him dumbly, lips quivering. He was still in shock but beginning to understand.
Oh yes. He was beginning to understand. The TV reporter tried to smile and could
only produce a death's-head rictus.
“Just don't touch
me, Johnny. Please.”
“It's not like
that,” Johnny said—or tried to. Later, he was never sure if any sound had come
out.
“Don't touch me,
Johnny, okay?”
The reporter
backed up to where his cameraman was packing his gear. Johnny stood and watched
him. He began to shake all over.
3.
“It's for your
own good, John,” Weizak said. The nurse stood behind him, a white ghost, a
sorcerer's apprentice with her hands hovering above the small, wheeled medication
table, a junkie's paradise of sweet dreams.
“No,” Johnny
said. He was still shaking, and now there was cold sweat as well. “No more
shots. I've had it up to here with shots.”
“A pill, then.”
“No more pills,
either.”
“To help you
sleep.”
“Will he be able
to sleep? That man Dussault?”
“He asked for
it,” the nurse murmured, and then flinched as Weizak turned toward her. But
Weizak smiled crookedly.
“She is right,
nuh?” he said. “The man asked for it. He thought you were selling empty
bottles, John. A good night's sleep and you'll be able to put this in
perspective.”
“I'll sleep on my
own.”
“Johnny, please.”
It was quarter
past eleven. The TV across the room had just gone off. Johnny and Sam had
watched the filmed story together; it had been second-lined right after the
bills Ford had vetoed. My own story made better theater, Johnny thought with
morbid amusement. Film footage of a bald-headed Republican mouthing platitudes
about the national budget just didn't compare with the film clip that WABI
camera man had gotten here earlier this evening. The clip had ended with
Dussault plunging across the floor with his sister's medal clutched in his hand
and then crashing down in a faint, clutching at the woman reporter the way a
drowning man might clutch at a straw.
When the TV
anchorman went on to the police dog and the four hundred pounds of pot, Weizak
had left briefly and had come back with the news that the hospital switchboard
had jammed up with calls for him even before the report was over. The nurse
with the medication had shown up a few minutes later, leading Johnny to believe
that Sam had gone down to the nurses” station to do more than check on incoming
calls.
At that instant,
the telephone rang.
Weizak swore
softly under his breath. “I told them to hold them all. Don't answer it, John,
I'll...
But Johnny
already had it. He listened for a moment, then nodded. “Yes, that was right.
“He put a hand over the receiver. “It's my dad,” he said. He uncovered the
receiver. “Hi, Dad. I guess you... “He listened. The small smile on his lips
faded and was replaced by an expression of dawning horror. His lips moved
silently.
“John, what is
it?” Weizak asked sharply.
“All right,
Daddy,” Johnny said, almost in a whisper. “Yes. Cumberland General. I know
where it is. Just above Jerusalem's Lot. Okay. All right Daddy...
His voice broke.
His eyes were tearless but glistening.
“I know that,
Daddy. I love you too. I'm sorry.
Listened.
“Yes. Yes it
was,” Johnny said. “I'll see you, Daddy. Yes. Good-bye.”
He hung up the phone,
put the heels of his hands to his eyes, and pressed.
“Johnny?” Sam
leaned forward, took one of his hands away and held it gently. “Is it your
mother?”
“Yeah. It's my
mother.”
“Heart attack?”
“Stroke,” Johnny
said, and Sam Weizak made a small, pained hissing between his teeth. “They were
watching the TV news... neither of them had any idea... and I came on... and
she had a stroke. Christ. She's in the hospital. Now if something happens to my
dad, we got a triple play. “He uttered a high scream of laughter. His eyes
rolled wildly from Sam to the nurse and back to Sam again. “It's a good
talent,” he said. “Everybody should have it. “The laugh came again, so like a
scream.
“How bad is she?”
Sam asked.
“He doesn't know.
“Johnny swung his legs out of bed. He had changed back to a hospital gown and
his feet were bare.
“What do you
think you are doing?” Sam asked sharply.
“What does it
look like?”
Johnny got up,
and for a moment it seemed that Sam would push him hack onto the bed. But he
only watched Johnny limp over to the closet. “Don't be ridiculous. You're not
ready for this, John.”
Unmindful of the
nurse—they had seen his bare tail enough times, God knew Johnny let the gown
drop around his feet. The thick, twisting scars stood out on the backs of his
knees and dimpled into the scant swell of his calves. He began to rummage in
the closet for clothes, and came up with the white shirt and jeans he had worn
to the news conference.
“John, I
absolutely forbid this. As your doctor and your friend- I tell you, it is
madness.”
“Forbid all you
want, I'm going,” Johnny said. He began to dress. His face wore that expression
of distant preoccupation that Sam associated with his trances. The nurse
gawped.
“Nurse, you might
as well go back to your station,” Sam said.
She backed to the
door, stood there for a moment, and then left. Reluctantly.
“Johnny,” Sam
said. He got up, went to him, and put a hand on his shoulder. “You didn't do
it.”
Johnny shook the
hand off. “I did it, all right,” he said. “She was watching me when it
happened. “He began to button the shirt.
“You urged her to
take her medicine and she stopped.”
Johnny looked at
Weizak for a moment and then went back to buttoning his shirt.
“If it hadn't
happened tonight, it would have happened tomorrow, next week, next month...
“Or next year. Or
in ten years.
“No. It would not
have been ten years. or even one. And you know it. Why are you so anxious to
pin this tail on yourself? Because of that smug reporter? Is it maybe an
inverted kind of self-pity? An urge to believe that you have been cursed?”
Johnny's face
twisted. “She was watching me when it happened. Don't you get that? Are you so
fucking soft you don't get that?”
“She was planning
a strenuous trip, all the way to California and back, you told me that
yourself. A symposium of some kind. A highly emotional sort of thing, from what
you have said. Yes? Yes. It would almost certainly have happened then. A stroke
is not lightning from a blue sky, Johnny.”
Johnny buttoned
the jeans and then sat down as if the act of dressing had tired him out too
much to do more. His feet were still bare. “Yeah,” he said. “Yeah, you may be
right.”
“Sense! He sees
sense! Thank the Lord!”
“But I still have
to go, Sam.”
Weizak threw up
his hands. “And do what? She is in the hands of her doctors and her God. That
is the situation. Better than anyone else, you must understand.”
“My dad will need
me,” Johnny said softly. “I understand that, too.”
“How will you go?
It's nearly midnight.”
“By bus. I'll grab
a cab over to Peter's Candlelighter. The Greyhounds still stop there, don't
they?”
“You don't have
to do that,” Sam said.
Johnny was
groping under the chair for his shoes and not finding them, Sam got them from
under the bed and handed them to him.
“I'll drive you
down.”
Johnny looked up
at him. “You'd do that?”
“If you'll take a
mild tranquilizer, yes.
“But your wife...
“He realized in a confused sort of way that the only concrete thing he knew
about Weizak's personal life was that his mother was living in California.
“I am divorced,”
Weizak said. “A doctor has to be out at all hours of the night... unless he is
a pediatrist or a dermatologist, nub? My wife saw the bed as half-empty rather
than half-full. So she filled it with a variety of men.
“I'm sorry,”
Johnny said, embarrassed.
“You spend far
too much time being sorry, John. “Sam's face was gentle, but his eyes were
stern. “Put on your shoes.”
CHAPTER TWELVE
1.
Hospital to
hospital, Johnny thought dreamily, flying gently along on the small blue pill
he had taken just be-fore he and Sam left the EMMC and climbed into Sam's “75
El Dorado. Hospital to hospital, person to person, station to station.
In a queer,
secret way, he enjoyed the trip—it was his first time out of the hospital in
almost five years. The night was clear, the Milky Way sprawled across the sky
in an unwinding clockspring of light, a half-moon followed them over the dark
tree line as they fled south through Palmyra, Newport, Pittsfield, Benton,
Clinton. The car whispered along in near total silence. Low music, Haydn,
issued from the four speakers of the stereo tape player.
Came to one
hospital in the Cleaves Mills Rescue Squad ambulance, went to another in a
Cadillac, he thought. He didn't let it bother him. It was just enough to ride,
to float along on the track, to let the problem of his mother, his new ability,
and the people who wanted to pry into his soul (He asked for it... just don't
touch me, huh?) rest in a temporary limbo. Weizak didn't talk. Occasionally he
hummed snatches of the music.
Johnny watched
the stars. He watched the turnpike, nearly deserted this late. It unrolled
ceaselessly in front of them. They went through the tollgate at Augusta and
Weizak took a time-and-toll ticket. Then they went on again—Gardener, Sabbatus,
Lewiston.
Nearly five
years, longer than some convicted murderers spend in the slam.
He slept.
Dreamed.
“Johnny,” his
mother said in his dream. “Johnny, make me better, make me well. “She was in a
beggar's rags. She was crawling toward him over cobblestones. Her face was
white. Thin blood ran from her knees. White lice squirmed in her thin hair. She
held shaking hands out to him. “It's the power of God working in you,” she
said. “It's a great responsibility, Johnny. A great trust. You must be worthy.”
He took her
hands, closed his own over them, and said, “Spirits, depart from this woman.”
She stood up.
“Healed!” she cried in a voice that was filled with a strange and terrible
triumph. “Healed! My son has healed me! His work is great upon the earth!”
He tried to
protest, to tell her that he didn't want to do great works, or heal, or speak
in tongues, to divine the future, or find those things that had been lost. He
tried to tell her, but his tongue wouldn't obey the command of his brain. Then
she was past him, striding off down the cobbled street, her posture cringing
and servile but somehow arrogant at the same time; her voice belled like a
clarion: “Saved! Savior! Saved! Savior!”
And to his horror
he saw that there had been thousands of others behind her, maybe millions, all
of them maimed or deformed or in terror. The stout lady reporter was there,
needing to know who the Democrats would nominate for the presidency in 1976;
there was a death-eyed farmer in biballs with a picture of his son, a smiling young
man in Air Force blues, who had been reported MIA over Hanoi in 1972, he needed
to know if his son was dead or alive; a young woman who looked like Sarah with
tears on her smooth cheeks, holding up a baby with a hydrocephalic head on
which blue veins were traced like runes of doom; an old man with his fingers
turned into clubs by arthritis; others. They stretched for miles, they would
wait patiently, they would kill him with their mute, bludgeoning need.
“Saved!” His
mother's voice carried back imperatively. “Savior! Saved! Saved!”
He tried to tell
them that he could neither heal nor save, but before he could open his mouth to
make the denial, the first had laid hands on him and was shaking him.
The shaking was
real enough. It was Weizak's hand on his arm. Bright orange light filled the
car, turning the interior as bright as day it was nightmare light, turning
Sam's kind face into the face of a hobgoblin. For a moment he thought the
nightmare was still going on and then he saw the light was coming from parking-lot
lamps. They had changed those, too, apparently, while he was in his coma. From
hard white to a weird orange that lay on the skin like paint.
“Where are we?”
he asked thickly.
“The hospital,”
Sam said. “Cumberland General.”
“Oh. All right.”
He sat up. The
dream seemed to slide off him in fragments, still littering the floor of his
mind like something broken and not yet swept up.
“Are you ready to
go in?”
“Yes,” Johnny
said.
They crossed the
parking lot amid the soft creak of summer crickets in the woods. Fireflies
stitched through the darkness. The image of his mother was very much on him—but
not so much that he was unable to enjoy the soft and fragrant smell of the
night and the feel of the faint breeze against his skin. There was time to
enjoy the health of the night, and the feeling of health coming inside him. In
the context of why he was here, the thought seemed almost obscene—but only
almost. And it wouldn't go away.
2.
Herb came down
the hallway to meet them, and Johnny saw that his father was wearing old pants,
shoes with no socks, and his pajama shirt. It told Johnny a lot about the
suddenness with which it had come. It told him more than he wanted to know.
“Son,” he said.
He looked smaller, somehow. He tried to say more and couldn't. Johnny hugged
him and Herb burst into tears. He sobbed against Johnny's shirt.
“Daddy,” he said.
“That's all right, Daddy, that's all right.”
His father put
his arms on Johnny's shoulders and wept. Weizak turned away and began to
inspect the pictures on the walls, indifferent water colors by local artists.
Herb began to
recover himself. He swiped his arm across his eyes and said, “Look at me, still
in my pi top. I had time to change before the ambulance came. I guess I never
thought of it. Must be getting senile.”
“No, you're not.”
“Well. “He
shrugged. “Your doctor friend brought you down? That was nice of you, Dr.
Weizak.”
Sam shrugged. “It
was nothing.”
Johnny and his
father walked toward the small waiting room and sat down. “Daddy, is she...”
“She's sinking,”
Herb said. He seemed calmer now. “Conscious, but sinking. She's been asking for
you,
Johnny. I think
she's been holding on for you.”
“My fault,”
Johnny said. “All this is my-...”
The pain in his
ear startled him, and he stared at his father, astonished. Herb had seized his
ear and twisted it firmly. So much for the role reversal of having his father
cry in his arms. The old twist-the-ear trick had been a punishment Herb had
reserved for the gravest of errors. Johnny couldn't remember having his ear twisted
since he was thirteen, and had gotten fooling around with their old Rambler. He
had inadvertently pushed in the clutch and the old car had rumbled silently
downhill to crash into their back shed.
“Don't you ever
say that,” Herb said.
“Jeez Dad!”
Herb let go, a
little smile lurking just below the corners of his mouth. “Forgot all about the
old twist-the-ear, huh? Probably thought I had, too. No such luck, Johnny.”
Johnny stared at
his father, still dumbfounded.
“Don't you ever
blame yourself.”
“But she was
watching that damned...
“News, yes. She
was ecstatic, she was thrilled... then she was on the floor, her poor old mouth
opening and closing like she was a fish out of water. “Herb leaned closer to
his son. “The doctor won't come right out and tell me, but he asked me about
“heroic measures”. I told him none of that stuff. She committed her own kind of
sin, Johnny. She presumed to know the mind of God. So don't you ever blame
yourself for her mistake. “Fresh tears glinted in his eyes. His voice roughened.
“God knows I spent my life loving her and it got hard in the late going. Maybe
this is just the best thing.”
“Can I see her?”
“Yes, she's at
the end of the hall, Room ~ They're expecting you, and so is she. Just one
thing, Johnny. Agree with anything and everything she might say. Don't... let
her die thinking it was all for nothing.”
“No. “He paused.
“Are you coming with me?”
“Not now. Maybe
later.”
Johnny nodded and
walked up the hall. The lights were turned down low for the nighttime. The
brief moment in the soft, kind summer night seemed far away now, but his
nightmare in the car seemed very close.
Room 35. VERA
HELEN SMITH, the little card on the door read. Had he known her middle name was
Helen? It seemed he must have, although he couldn't remember. But he could
remember other things: her bringing him an ice-cream bar wrapped in her
handkerchief one bright summer day at Old Orchard Beach, smiling and gay. He
and his mother and father playing rummy for matches—later, after the religion
business began to deepen its hold on her, she wouldn't have cards in the house,
not even to play cribbage with. He remembered the day the bee had stung him and
he ran to her, bawling his head off, and she had kissed the swelling and pulled
out the stinger with tweezers and then had wrapped the wound in a strip of
cloth that had been dipped in baking soda.
He pushed the
door open and went in. She was a vague hump in the bed and Johnny thought,
That's what I looked like. A nurse was taking her pulse; she turned when the door
opened and the dim hall lights flashed on her spectacles.
“Are you Mrs.
Smith's son?”
“Yes.”
“Johnny?” The
voice rose from the hump in the bed, dry and hollow, rattling with death as a
few pebbles will rattle in an empty gourd. The voice—God help him -made his
skin crawl. He moved closer. Her face was twisted into a snarling mask on the
left-hand side. The hand on the counterpane was a claw. Stroke, he thought.
What the old people call a shock. Yes. That's better. That's what she looks
like. Like she's had a bad shock.
“Is that you,
John?”
“It's me, Ma.”
“Johnny? Is that
you?”
“Yes, Ma.”
He came closer
yet, and forced himself to take the bony claw.
“I want my
Johnny,” she said querulously.
The nurse shot
him a pitying look, and he found him-self wanting to smash his fist through it.
“Would you leave
us alone?” he asked.
“I really
shouldn't while...”
“Come on, she's
my mother and I want some time alone with her,” Johnny said. “What about it?”
“Well...”
“Bring me my
juice, Dad!” his mother cried hoarsely. “Feel like I could drink a quart!”
“Would you get
out of here?” he cried at the nurse. He was filled with a terrible sorrow of
which he could not even find the focus. It seemed like a whirlpool going down
into darkness.
The nurse left.
“Ma,” he said, sitting
beside her. That weird feeling of doubled time, of reversal, would not leave
him. How many times had she sat over his bed like this, perhaps holding his dry
hand and talking to him? He recalled the timeless period when the room had
seemed so close to him—seen through a gauzy placental membrane, his mother's
face bending over him, thundering senseless sounds slowly into his upturned
face.
“Ma,” he said
again, and kissed the hook that had replaced her hand.
“Gimme those
nails, I can do that,” she said. Her left eye seemed frozen in its orbit; the
other rolled wildly. It was the eye of a gutshot horse. “I want Johnny.”
“Ma, I'm here.”
“John-ny!
John-ny! JOHN-NY!”
“Ma,” he said,
afraid the nurse would come back.
“You... “She
broke off and her head turned toward him a little. “Bend over here where I can
see,” she whispered.
He did as she
asked.
“You came,” she
said. “Thank you. Thank you. “Tears began to ooze from the good eye. The bad
one, the one on the side of her face that had been frozen by the shock, stared
indifferently upward.
“Sure I came.”
“I saw you,” she
whispered. “What a power God has given you, Johnny! Didn't I tell you? Didn't I
say it was so?”
“Yes, you did.”
“He has a job for
you,” she said. “Don't run from him, Johnny. Don't hide away in a cave like
Elijah or make him send a big fish to swallow you up. Don't do that, John.”
“No. I won't. “He
held her claw-hand. His head throbbed.
“Not the potter
but the potter's clay, John. Remember.”
“All right.”
“Remember that!”
she said stridently, and he thought, She's going back into nonsense land. But
she didn't; at least she went no further into nonsense land than she had been
since he came out of his coma.
“Heed the still,
small voice when it comes,” she said.
“Yes, Ma. I
will.”
Her head turned a
tiny bit on the pillow, and—was she smiling?
“You think I'm
crazy, I guess. “She twisted her head a little more, so she could look directly
at him. “But that doesn't matter. You'll know the voice when it comes. It'll
tell you what to do. It told Jeremiah and Daniel and Amos and Abraham. It'll
come to you. It'll tell you. And when it does, Johnny... do your duty.”
“Okay, Ma.”
“What a power,”
she murmured. Her voice was growing furry and indistinct. “What a power God has
given you... I knew... I always knew... “Her voice trailed off. The good eye
closed. The other stared blankly forward.
Johnny sat with
her another five minutes, then got up to leave. His hand was on the doorknob
and he was easing the door open when her dry, rattling voice came again,
chilling him with its implacable, positive command.
“Do your duty,
John.”
“Yes, Ma.”
It was the last
time he ever spoke to her. She died at five minutes past eight on the morning
of August 20. Somewhere north of them, Walt and Sarah Hazlett were having a
discussion about Johnny that was almost an argument, and somewhere south of
them, Greg Stillson was cutting himself some prime asshole.
CHAPTER THIRTEEN
1.
“You don't
understand,” Greg Stillson said in a voice of utter, reasonable patience to the
kid sitting in the lounge at the back of the Ridgeway police station. The kid,
shirt-less, was tilted back in a padded folding chair and drinking a bottle of
Pepsi. He was smiling indulgently at Greg Stillson, not understanding that
twice was all Greg Still-son ever repeated himself, understanding that there
was one prime asshole in the room, but not yet understanding who it was.
That realization
would have to be brought home to him.
Forcibly, if
necessary.
Outside, the late
August morning was bright and warm. Birds sang in the trees. And Greg felt his
destiny was closer than ever. That was why he would be careful with this prime
asshole. That was no long-haired bike-freak with a bad case of bowlegs and B.
O.; this kid was a college boy, his hair was moderately long but squeaky clean,
and he was George Harvey's nephew. Not that George cared for him much (George
had fought his way across Germany in 1945, and he had two words for these
long-haired freaks, and those two words were not Happy Birthday), but he was
blood. And George was a man to be reckoned with on the town council. See what
you can do with him, George had told Greg when Greg informed him that Chief
Wiggins had arrested his sister's kid. But his eyes said, Don't hurt him. He's
blood.
The kid was looking
at Greg with lazy contempt. “I understand,” he said. “Your Deputy Dawg took my
shirt and I want it back. And you better understand something. If I don't get
it back, I'm going to have the American Civil Liberties Union down on your red
neck.”
Greg got up, went
to the steel-gray file cabinet opposite the soda machine, pulled out his
keyring, selected a key, and opened the cabinet. From atop a pile of accident
and traffic forms, he took a red T-shirt. He spread it open so the legend on it
was clear: BABY LET'S FUCK.
“You were wearing
this,” Greg said in that same mild voice. “On the street.”
The kid rocked on
the back legs of his chair and swigged some more Pepsi. The little indulgent
smile playing around his mouth—almost a sneer—did not change. “That's right,”
he said. “And I want it back. It's my property.
Greg's head began
to ache. This smartass didn't realize how easy it would be. The room was
soundproofed, and there had been times when that soundproofing had muffled
screams. No—he didn't realize. He didn't understand.
But keep your
hand on it. Don't go overboard. Don't upset the applecart.
Easy to think.
Usually easy to do. But sometimes, his temper—his temper got out of hand.
Greg reached into
his pocket and pulled out his Bic lighter.
“So you just go
tell your gestapo” chief and my fascist uncle that the First Amendment... “He
paused, eyes widening a little. “What are you... ? Hey! Hey!”
Taking no notice
and at least outwardly calm, Greg struck a light. The Bic's gas flame vroomed
upward, and Greg lit the kid's T-shirt on fire. It burned quite well, actually.
The front legs of
the kid's chair came down with a bang and he leaped toward Greg with his bottle
of Pepsi still in his hand. The self-satisfied little smirk was gone, replaced
with a look of wide-eyed shock and surprise—and the anger of a spoiled brat who
has had everything his own way for too long.
No one ever
called him runt, Greg Stillson thought, and his headache worsened. Oh, he was
going to have to be careful.
“Gimme that!” the
kid shouted. Greg was holding the shirt out, pinched together in two fingers at
the neck, ready to drop it when it got too hot. “Gimme that, you asshole!
That's mine! That's...”
Greg planted his
hand in the middle of the kid's bare chest and shoved him as hard as he could—which
was hard indeed. The kid went flying across the room, the anger dissolving into
total shock, and—at last—what Greg needed to see: fear.
He dropped the
shirt on the tile floor, picked up the kid's Pepsi, and poured what was left in
the bottle onto the smouldering T-shirt. It hissed balefully.
The kid was
getting up slowly, his back pressed against the wall. Greg caught his eyes with
his own. The kid's eyes were br6wn and very, very wide.
“We're going to
reach an understanding,” Greg said, and the words seemed distant to him, behind
the sick thud in his head. “We're going to have a little seminar right here in
this back room about just who's the asshole. you got my meaning? We're gonna
reach some conclusions. Isn't that what you college boys like to do? Reach
conclusions?”
The kid drew
breath in hitches. He wet his lips, seemed about to speak, and then he yelled:
“Help!”
“Yeah, you need
help, all right,” Greg said. “I'm going to give you some, too.”
“You're crazy,” George
Harvey's nephew said, and then yelled again, louder: “HELP!”
“I may be,” Greg
said. “Sure. But what we got to find out, Sonny, is who the prime asshole is.
See what I mean?”
He looked down at
the Pepsi bottle in his hand, and suddenly he swung it savagely against the
corner of the steel cabinet. It shattered, and when the kid saw the scatter of
glass on the floor and the jagged neck in Greg's hand pointing toward him, he
screamed. The crotch of his jeans, faded almost white, suddenly darkened. His face
went the color of old parchment. And as Greg walked toward him, gritting glass
under the workboots he wore summer and winter, he cringed against the wall.
“When I go out on
the street, I wear a white shirt,” Greg said. He was grinning, showing white
teeth. “Sometimes a tie. When you go out on the street, you wear some rag with
a filthy saying on it. So who's the asshole, kiddo?”
George Harvey's
nephew whined something. His bulging eyes never left the spears of glass
jutting from the bottle neck in Greg's hand.
“I'm standing
here high and dry,” Greg said, coming a little closer, “and you got piss
running down both legs into your shoes. So who's the asshole?”
He began to jab
the bottle neck lightly toward the kid's bare and sweaty midriff, and George
Harvey's nephew began to cry. This was the sort of kid that was tearing the
country in two, Greg thought. The thick wine of fury buzzed and coursed in his
head. Stinking yellow-belly crybaby assholes like this.
Ah, but don't
hurt him—don't kick over the apple cart -'I sound like a human being,” Greg
said, “and you sound like a pig in a grease-pit, boy. So who's the ass-hole?”
He jabbed with
the bottle again: one of the jagged glass points dimpled the kid's skin just
below the right nipple and brought a tiny bead of blood. The kid howled.
“I'm talking to
you,” Greg said. “You better answer up, same as you'd answer up one of your
professors. Who's the asshole?”
The kid sniveled
but made no coherent sound.
“You answer up if
you want to pass this exam,” Greg said. “I'll let your guts loose all over this
floor, boy. “And in that instant, he meant it. He couldn't look directly at
this welling drop of blood; it would send him crazy if he did, George Harvey's
nephew or not. “Who's the asshole?”
“Me,” the kid
said, and began to sob like a small child afraid of the bogeyman, the
Allamagoosalum that waits behind the closet door in the dead hours of the
night.
Greg smiled. The
headache thumped and flared. “Well, that's pretty good, you know. That's a
start. But it's not quite good enough. I want you to say, “I'm an asshole.
"”
“I'm an asshole,”
the kid said, still sobbing. Snot flowed from his nose and hung there in a
runner. He wiped it away with the back of his hand.
“Now I want you
to say, “I'm a prime asshole. "”
“I... I'm a prime
asshole.”
“Now you just say
one more thing and maybe we can be done here. You say, “Thank you for burning
up that dirty shirt, Mayor Stilison.”
The kid was eager
now. The kid saw his way clear. “Thanks for burning up that dirty shirt.”
In a flash, Greg
ran one of the jagged points from left to right across the kid's soft belly,
bringing a line of blood. He barely broke the skin, but the kid howled as if
all the devils of hell were behind him.
“You forgot to
say “Mayor Stillson”,” Greg said, and just like that it broke. The headache
gave one more massive beat right between his eyes and was gone. He looked down
stupidly at the bottle neck in his hand and could barely remember how it had
gotten there. Stupid damn thing. He had almost thrown everything away over one
numbnuts kid.
“Mayor Stillson!”
The kid was screaming. His terror was perfect and complete. “Mayor Stillson!
Mayor Still-son Mayor Still...”
“That's good,”
Greg said.
“... son Mayor
Stillson! Mayor Stillson! Mayor...”
Greg whacked him
hard across the face, and the kid rapped his head on the wall. He fell silent,
his eyes wide and blank.
Greg stepped very
close to him. He reached out. He closed one hand around each of the kid's ears.
He pulled the kid's face forward until their noses were touching. Their eyes
were less than half an inch apart.
“Now, your uncle
is a power in this town,” he said softly, holding the kid's ears like handles.
The kid's eyes were huge and brown and swimming. “I'm a power too -coming to be
one—but I ain't no George Harvey. He was born here, raised here, everything.
And if you was to tell your uncle what went on in here, he might take a notion
to finish me in Ridgeway.”
The kid's lips
were twitching in a nearly soundless blubber. Greg shook the boy's head slowly
back and forth by the ears, banging their noses together.
“He might not...
he was pretty damn mad about that shirt. But he might. Blood ties are strong
ties. So you think about this, son. If you was to tell your uncle what went on
here and your uncle squeezed me out, I guess I would come along and kill you.
Do you believe that?”
“Yeah,” the kid
whispered. His cheeks were wet, gleaming.
“Yes sir, Mayor
Stillson. "”
“Yessir, Mayor
Stilison.”
Greg let go of his
ears. “Yeah,” he said. “I'd kill you, but first I'd tell anybody that'd listen
about how you pissed yourself and stood there crying with snot running out of
your nose.”
He turned and
walked away quickly, as if the kid smelled bad, and went to the cabinet again.
He got a box of Band-Aids from one of the shelves and tossed them across to the
kid, who flinched back and fumbled them. He hastened to pick them up off the
floor, as if Stillson might attack him again for missing.
Greg pointed.
“Bathroom over there. You clean yourself up. I'm gonna leave you a Ridgeway PAL
sweatshirt. I want it mailed back, clean, no bloodstains. You understand?”
“Yes,” the kid
whispered.
“SIR!” Stillson
screamed at him. “SIR! SIR! SIR! Can't you remember that?”
“Sir,” the kid moaned.
“Yessir, yessir.”
“They don't teach
you kids respect for nothing,” Greg said. “Not for nothing.”
The headache was
trying to come back. He took several deep breaths and quelled it—but his
stomach felt miserably upset. “Okay, that's the end. I just want to offer you
one good piece of advice. Don't you make the mistake of getting back to your
damn college this fall or whenever and start thinking this was some way it
wasn't. Don't you try to kid yourself about Greg Stillson. Best forgotten, kid.
By you, me, and George. Working this around in your mind until you think you
could have another swing at it would be the worst mistake of your life. Maybe
the last.”
With that Greg
left, taking one last contemptuous look at the kid standing there, his chest
and belly caked with a few minor smears of dried blood, his eyes wide, his lips
trembling. He looked like an overgrown ten-year-old who has struck out in the
Little League playoffs.
Greg made a
mental bet with himself that he would never see or hear from this particular
kid again, and it was a bet he won. Later that week, George Harvey stopped by
the barbershop where Greg was getting a shave and thanked him for “talking some
sense” into his nephew. “You're good with these kids, Greg,” he said. “I
dunno... they seem to respect you.”
Greg told him not
to mention it.
2.
While Greg
Stillson was burning a shirt with an obscene saying on it in New Hampshire,
Walt and Sarah Hazlett were having a late breakfast in Bangor, Maine. Walt had
the paper.
He put his coffee
cup down with a clink and said, “Your old boyfriend made the paper, Sarah.”
Sarah was feeding
Denny. She was in her bathrobe, her hair something of a mess, her eyes still
only about a quarter open. Eighty percent of her mind was still asleep. There
had been a party last night. The guest of honor had been Harrison Fisher, who
had been New Hampshire's third district congressman since dinosaurs walked the
earth, and a sure candidate for reelection next year.
It had been
politic for her and Walt to go. Politic. That was a word that Walt used a lot
lately. He had had lots more to drink than she had, and this morning he was
dressed and apparently chipper while she felt buried in a pile of sludge. It
wasn't fair.
“Blue!” Denny
remarked, and spat back a mouthful of mixed fruit.
“That's not
nice,” Sarah said to Denny. To Walt: “Are you talking about Johnny Smith?”
“The one and
only.”
She got up and
came around to Walt's side of the table. “He's all right, isn't he?”
“Feeling good and
kicking up dickens by the sound of this,” Walt said dryly.
She had a hazy
idea that it might be related to what had happened to her when she went to see
Johnny, but the size of the headline shocked her: REAWAKENED COMA PATIENT
DEMONSTRATES PSYCHIC ABILITY AT DRAMATIC NEWS CONFERENCE.
The story was
under David Bright's by-line. The accompanying photo showed Johnny, still
looking thin and, in the unsparing glare of the flash, pitifully confused,
standing over the sprawled body of a man the caption identified as Roger
Dussault, a reporter for the Lewiston paper. Reporter Faints after Revelation,
the caption read.
Sarah sank down
into the chair next to Walt and began to read the article. This did not please
Denny, who began to pound on the tray of his highchair for his morning egg.
“I believe you're
being summoned,” Walt said.
“Would you feed
him, honey? He eats better for you anyway. “Story Continued Page 9, Col. 3. She
folded the paper open to page nine.
“Flattery will
get you everywhere,” Walt said agreeably. He slipped off his sports coat and
put on her apron. “Here it comes, guy,” he said, and began feeding Denny his
egg.
When she had
finished the story, Sarah went back and read it again. Her eyes were drawn
again and again to the picture, to Johnny's confused, horror-struck face. The
people loosely grouped around the prone Dussault were looking at Johnny with an
expression close to fear. She could understand that. She remembered kissing
him, and the strange, preoccupied look that had slipped over his face. And when
he told her where to find the lost wedding ring, she had been afraid.
But Sarah, what
you were afraid of wasn't quite the same thing, was it?
“Just a little
more, big boy,” Walt was saying, as if from a thousand miles away. Sarah looked
up at them, sitting together in a bar of mote-dusted sunlight, her apron
flapping between Walt's knees, and she was suddenly afraid again. She saw the
ring sinking to the bottom of the toilet bowl, turning over and over. She heard
the small clink as it struck the porcelain. She thought of Halloween masks, of
the kid saying, l love to see this guy take a beatin. She thought of promises
made and never kept, and her eyes went to his thin newsprint face, looking out
at her with such haggard, wretched surprise.
“... gimmick,
anyway,” Walt said, hanging up her apron. He had gotten Denny to eat the egg,
every bit of it, and now their son and heir was sucking contentedly away at a
juice-bottle.
“Huh?” Sarah
looked up as he came over to her.
“I said that for
a man who must have almost half a million dollars” worth of hospital bills
outstanding, it's a helluva good gimmick.”
“What are you
talking about? What do you mean, gimmick?”
“Sure,” he said,
apparently missing her anger. “He could make seven, maybe ten thousand dollars
doing a book about the accident and the coma. But if he came out of the coma
psychic—the sky's the limit.”
“That's one hell
of an allegation!” Sarah said, and her voice was thin with fury.
He turned to her,
his expression first one of surprise and then of understanding. The
understanding look made her angrier than ever. If she had a nickel for every
time Walt Hazlett had thought he understood her, they could fly first-class to
Jamaica.
“Look, I'm sorry
I brought it up,” he said.
“Johnny would no
more lie than the Pope would... would... you know.”
He bellowed
laughter, and in that moment she nearly picked up his own coffee cup and threw
it at him. Instead, she locked her hands together tightly under the table and
squeezed them. Denny goggled at his father and then burst into his own peal of
laughter.
“Honey,” Walt
said. “I have nothing against him, I have nothing against what he's doing. In
fact, I respect him for it. If that fat old mossback Fisher can go from a broke
lawyer to a millionaire during fifteen years in the House of Representatives,
then this guy should have a perfect right to pick up as much as he can playing
psychic...”
“Johnny doesn't
lie,” she repeated tonelessly.
“It's a gimmick
for the blue-rinse brigade who read the weekly tabloids and belong to the
Universe Book Club,” he said cheerily. “Although I will admit that a little
second sight would come in handy during jury selection in this damn Timmons
trial.”
“Johnny Smith
doesn't lie,” she repeated, and heard him saying: It slipped off your finger.
You were putting his shaving stuff into one of those side pockets and it just
slipped off... you go up in the attic and look, Sarah. You'll see. But she
couldn't tell Walt that. Walt didn't know she had been to see Johnny.
Nothing wrong in
going to see him, her mind offered uneasily.
No, but how would
he react to the news that she had thrown her original wedding ring into the
toilet and flushed it away? He might not understand the sudden twitch of fear
that had made her do it—the same fear she saw mirrored on those other newsprint
faces, and, to some degree, on Johnny's own. No, Walt might not under-stand
that at all. After all, throwing your wedding ring into the toilet and then
pushing the flush did suggest a certain vulgar symbolism.
“All right,” Walt
was saying, “he doesn't lie. But I just don't believe
Sarah said
softly, “Look at the people behind him, Walt. Look at their faces. They
believe.”
Walt gave them a
cursory glance. “Sure, the way a kid believes in a magician as long as the
trick is ongoing.”
“You think this
fellow Dussault was a, what-do-you-call-it, a shill? According to the article,
he and Johnny had
never met
before.”
“That's the only
way the illusion will work, Sarah,” Walt said patiently. “It doesn't do a magician
any good to pull a bunny out of a rabbit hutch, only out of a hat. Either
Johnny Smith knew something or he made a terribly good guess based on this guy
Dussault's behavior at the time. But I repeat, I respect him for it. He got a
lot of mileage out of it. If it turns him a buck, more power to him.”
In that moment
she hated him, loathed him, this good man she had married. There was really
nothing so terrible on the reverse side of his goodness, his steadiness, his
mild good humor—just the belief, apparently grounded in the bedrock of his
soul, that everybody was looking out for number one, each with his or her own
little racket. This morning he could call Harrison Fisher a fat old mossback;
last night he had been bellowing with laughter at Fisher's stories about Greg
Stillson, the funny mayor of some-town-or-other and who might just be crazy
enough to run as an independent in the House race next year.
No, in the world
of Walt Hazlett, no one had psychic powers and there were no heroes and the
doctrine of we-have-to-change-the-system from-within was all-powerful. He was a
good man, a steady man, he loved her and Denny, but suddenly her soul cried out
for Johnny and the five years together of which they had been robbed. Or the
lifetime together. A child with darker hair.
“You better get
going, babe,” she said quietly. “They'll have your guy Timmons in stocks and
bonds, or whatever they are.”
“Sure. “He smiled
at her, the summation done, session adjourned. “Still friends?”
“Still friends.
“But he knew where the ring was. He knew.
Walt kissed her,
his right hand resting lightly on the back of her neck. He always had the same
thing for breakfast, he always kissed her the same way, some day they were
going to Washington, and no one was psychic.
Five minutes later
he was gone, backing their little red Pinto out onto Pond Street, giving his
usual brief toot on the horn, and putting away. She was left alone with Denny,
who was in the process of strangling himself while he tried to wriggle under
his highchair tray.
“You're going at
that all wrong, Sluggo,” Sarah said, crossing the kitchen and unlatching the
tray.
“Blue!” Denny
said, disgusted with the whole thing.
Speedy Tomato,
their tomcat, sauntered into the kitchen at his usual slow, hipshot juvenile
delinquent's stride, and Denny grabbed him, making little chuckling noises.
Speedy laid his ears back and looked resigned.
Sarah smiled a
little and cleared the table. Inertia. A body at rest tends to remain at rest,
and she was at rest. Never mind Walt's darker side; she had her own. She had no
intention of doing more than sending Johnny a card at Christmas. It was better,
safer, that way—because a body in motion tends to keep moving. Her life here
was good. She had survived Dan, she had survived Johnny, who had been so
unfairly taken from her (but so much in this world was unfair), she had come
through her own personal rapids to this smooth water, and here she would stay.
This sunshiny kitchen was not a bad place. Best to forget county fairs, Wheels
of Fortune, and Johnny Smith's face.
As she ran water
into the sink to do the dishes she turned on the radio and caught the beginning
of the news. The first item made her freeze with a just-washed plate in one
hand, her eyes looking out over their small backyard in startled contemplation.
Johnny's mother had had a stroke while watching a TV report on her son's press
conference. She had died this morning, not an hour ago.
Sarah dried her
hands, snapped off the radio, and pried Speedy Tomato out of Denny's hands. She
carried her boy into the living room and popped him into his play-pen. Denny
protested this indignity with loud, lusty howls of which she took no notice.
She went to the telephone and called the EMMC. A switchboard operator who
sounded tired of repeating the same piece of intelligence over and over again
told her that John Smith had discharged himself the night before, slightly
before mid-night.
She hung up the
phone and sat down in a chair. Denny continued to cry from his playpen. Water
ran into the kitchen sink. After a while she got up, went into the kitchen, and
turned it off.
CHAPTER FOURTEEN
1.
The man from
Inside View showed up on October 16, not long after Johnny had walked up to get
the mail.
His father's
house was set well back from the road; their graveled driveway was nearly a
quarter of a mile long, running through a heavy stand of second-growth spruce
and pine. Johnny did the total round trip every day. At first he had returned
to the porch trembling with exhaustion, his legs on fire, his limp so pronounced
that he was really lurching along. But now, a month and a half after the first
time (when the half a mile had taken him an hour to do), the walk had become
one of his day's pleasures, something to look forward to. Not the mail, but the
walk.
He had begun
splitting wood for the coming winter, a chore Herb had been planning to hire
out since he himself had landed a contract to do some inside work on a new
housing project in Libertyville. “You know when old age has started lookin over
your shoulder, John,” he had said with a smile. “It's when you start lookin for
inside work as soon as fall rolls around.”
Johnny climbed
the porch and sat down in the wicker chair beside the glider, uttering a small
sound of relief. He propped his right foot on the porch railing, and with a
grimace of pain, used his hands to lift his left leg over it. That done, he
began to open his mail.
It had tapered
off a lot just lately. During the first week he had been back here in Pownal,
there had sometimes been as many as two dozen letters and eight or nine
packages a day, most of them forwarded through the EMMC, a few of them sent to
General Delivery, Pownal (and assorted variant spellings: Pownell, Poenul, and,
in one memorable case, Poonuts).
Most of them were
from dissociated people who seemed to be drifting through life in search of any
rudder. There were children who wanted his autograph, women who wanted to sleep
with him, both men and women seeking advice to the lovelorn. Some sent lucky
charms. Some sent horoscopes. A great many of the letters were religious in
nature, and in these badly spelled missives, usually written in a large and
careful handwriting but one step removed from the scrawl of a bright
first-grader, he seemed to feel the ghost of his mother.
He was a prophet,
these letters assured him, come to lead the weary and disillusioned American
people out of the wilderness. He was a sign that the Last Times were at hand.
To this date, October 16, he had received eight copies of Hal Lindsey's The
Late Great Planet Earth -his mother surely would have approved of that one. He
was urged to proclaim the divinity of Christ and put a stop to the loose morals
of youth.
These letters
were balanced off by the negative contingent, which was smaller but just as
vocal—if usually anonymous. One correspondent, writing in grubby pencil on a
sheet of yellow legal paper proclaimed him the Antichrist and urged him to
commit suicide. Four or five of the letter writers had inquired about how it
felt to murder your own mother. A great many wrote to accuse him of
perpetrating a hoax. One wit wrote, “PRECOGNITION, TELEPATHY, BULLSHIT! EAT MY
DONG, YOU EXTRASENSORY TURKEY!”
And they sent
things. That was the worst of it.
Every day on his way
home from work, Herb would stop at the Pownal post office and pick up the
packages that were too big to fit in their mailbox. The notes accompanying the
things were all essentially the same; a low-grade scream. Tell me, tell me,
tell me.
This scarf belonged
to my brother, who disappeared on a fishing trip in the Allagash in 1969. I
feel very strongly that he is still alive. Tell me where he is.
This lipstick
came from my wife's dressing table. I think she's having an affair, but I'm not
sure. Tell me if she is.
This is my son's
ID bracelet. He never comes home after school anymore, he stays out until all
hours, I'm worried sick. Tell me what he's doing.
A woman in North
Carolina—God knew how she had found out about him; the press conference in
August had not made the national media—sent a charred piece of wood. Her house
had burned down, her letter explained, and her husband and two of her five
children had died in the blaze. The Charlotte fire department said it was
faulty wiring, but she simply couldn't accept that. It had to be arson. She
wanted Johnny to feel the enclosed blackened relic and tell her who had done
it, so the monster would spend the rest of his life rotting in prison.
Johnny answered
none of the letters and returned all the objects (even the charcoaled hunk of
wood) at his cost and with no comment. He did touch some of them. Most, like
the charred piece of wallboard from the grief-stricken woman in Charlotte, told
him nothing at all. But when he touched a few of them, disquieting images came,
like waking dreams. In most cases there was barely a trace; a picture would
form and fade in seconds, leaving him with nothing concrete at all, only a
feeling. But one of them...
It had been the
woman who sent the scarf in hopes of finding out what had happened to her
brother. It was a white knitted scarf, no different from a million others. But
as he handled it, the reality of his father's house had suddenly been gone, and
the sound of the television in the next room rose and flattened, rose and flattened,
until it was the sound of drowsing summer insects and the far-away babble of
water.
Woods smells in
his nostrils. Green shafts of sunlight falling through great old trees. The
ground had been soggy for the last three hours or so, squelchy, almost swamplike.
He was scared, plenty scared, but he had kept his head. If you were lost in the
big north country and panicked, they might as well carve your headstone. He had
kept pushing south. It had been two days since he had gotten separated from
Stiv and Rocky and Logan. They had been camping near
(but that
wouldn't come, it was in the dead zone)
some stream,
trout-fishing, and it had been his own damn fault; he had been pretty damn
drunk.
Now he could see
his pack leaning against the edge of an old and moss-grown blowdown, white
deadwood poking through the green here and there like bones, he could see his
pack, yes, but he couldn't reach it because he had walked a few yards away to
take a leak and he had walked into a really squelchy place, mud almost to the tops
of his L. L. Bean's boots, and he tried to back out, find a dryer place to do
his business, but he couldn't get out. He couldn't get out because it wasn't
mud at all. It was
something else.
He stood there,
looking around fruitlessly for something to grab onto, almost laughing at the
idiocy of having walked right into a patch of quicksand while looking for a
place to take a piss.
He stood there,
at first positive that it must be a shallow patch of quicksand, at the very
worst over his boot-tops, another tale to tell when he was found.
He stood there,
and real panic did not begin to set in until the quicksand oozed implacably
over his knees. He began to struggle then, forgetting that if you got your
stupid self into quicksand you were supposed to remain very still. In no time
at all the quicksand was up to his waist and now it was chest-high, sucking at
him like great brown lips, constricting his breathing; he began to scream and
no one came, nothing came except for a fat brown squirrel that picked its way
down the side of the mossy deadfall and perched on his pack and watched him
with his bright, black eyes.
Now it was up to
his neck, the rich, brown smell of it in his nose and his screams became thin
and gasping as the quicksand implacably pressed the breath out of him. Birds
flew swooping and cheeping and scolding, and green shafts of sunlight like
tarnished copper fell through the trees, and the quicksand rose over his chin.
Alone, he was going to die alone, and he opened his mouth to scream one last time
and there was no scream because the quicksand flowed into his mouth, it flowed
over his tongue, it flowed between his teeth in thin ribbons, he was swallowing
quicksand and the scream was never uttered -Johnny had come out of that in a
cold sweat, his flesh marbled into goosebumps, the scarf wrapped tightly
between his hands, his breath coming in sh6rt, strangled gasps. He had thrown
the scarf on the floor where it lay like a twisted white snake. He would not
touch it again. His father had put it in a return envelope and sent it back.
But now,
mercifully, the mail was beginning to taper off. The crazies had discovered
some fresher object for their public and private obsessions. Newsmen no longer
called for interviews, partly because the phone number had been changed and
unlisted, partly because the story was old hat.
Roger Dussault
had written a long and angry piece for his paper, of which he was the feature
editor. He proclaimed the whole thing a cruel and tasteless hoax. Johnny had
undoubtedly boned up on incidents from the pasts of several reporters who were
likely to attend the press conference, just in case. Yes, he admitted, his
sister Anne's nickname had been Terry. She had died fairly young, and
amphetamines might have been a contributing cause. But all of that was
accessible information to anyone who wanted to dig it up. He made it all seem
quite logical. The article did not explain how Johnny, who had not been out of
the hospital, could have come by this “accessible information”, but that was a
point most readers seemed to have overlooked. Johnny could not have cared less.
The incident was closed, and he had no intention of creating new ones. What
good could it possibly do to write the lady who had sent the scarf and tell her
that her brother had drowned, screaming, in quicksand because he had gone the
wrong way while looking for a place to take a piss? Would it ease her mind or
help her live her life any better?
Today's mail was
a mere six letters. A power bill. A card from Herb's cousin out in Oklahoma. A
lady who had sent Johnny a crucifix with MADE IN TAIWAN stamped on Christ's
feet in tiny gold letters. There was a brief note from Sam Weizak. And a small
envelope with a return address that made him blink and sit up straighter. S.
Hazlett, 12 Pond Street, Bangor.
Sarah. He tore it
open.
He had received a
sympathy card from her two days after the funeral services for his mother.
Written on the back of it in her cool, back-slanting hand had been:
“Johnny—I'm so
sorry that this has happened. I heard on the radio that your mom had passed
away—in some ways that seemed the most unfair thing of all, that your private
grief should have been made a thing of public knowledge. You may not remember,
but we talked a little about your mom the night of your accident. I asked you
what she'd do if you brought home a lapsed Catholic and you said she would
smile and welcome me in and slip me a few tracts. I could see your love for her
in the way you smiled. I know from your father that she had changed, but much
of the change was because she loved you so much and just couldn't accept what
had happened. And in the end I guess her faith was rewarded. Please accept my
warm sympathy, and if there's anything I can do, now or later on, please count
on your friend—Sarah.”
That was one note
he had answered, thanking her for both the card and the thought. He had written
it carefully, afraid that he might betray himself and say the wrong thing. She
was a married woman now, that was beyond his control or ability to change. But
he did remember their conversation about his mother—and so many other things
about that night. Her note had summoned up the whole evening, and he answered
in a bittersweet mood that was more bitter than sweet. He still loved Sarah
Bracknell, and he had to remind himself constantly that she was gone, replaced
by another woman who was five years older and the mother of a small boy.
Now he pulled a
single sheet of stationery out of the envelope and scanned it quickly. She and
her boy were headed down to Kennebunk to spend a week with Sarah's freshman and
sophomore roommate, a girl named Stephanie Constantine now, Stephanie Carsleigh
then. She said that Johnny might remember her, but Johnny didn't. Anyway, Walt
was stuck in Washington for three weeks on combined firm and Republican party
business, and Sarah thought she might take one afternoon and come by Pownal to
see Johnny and Herb, if it was no trouble.
“You can reach me
at Steph's number, 814–6219, any time between Oct. 17th and the 23rd. Of
course, if it would make you feel uncomfortable in any way, just call me and
say so, either up here or down there in K'bunk. I'll understand. Much love to
both of you—Sarah.”
Holding the
letter in one hand, Johnny looked across the yard and into the woods, which had
gone russet and gold, seemingly just in the last week. The leaves would be
falling soon, and then it would be time for winter.
Much love to both
of you—Sarah. He ran his thumb across the words thoughtfully. It would be
better not to call, not to write, not to do anything, he thought. She would get
the message. Like the woman who mailed the scarf what possible good could it
do? Why kick a sleeping dog? Sarah might be able to use that phrase, much love,
blithely, but he could not. He wasn't over the hurt of the past. For him, time
had been crudely folded, stapled, and mutilated. In the progression of his own
interior time, she had been his girl only six months ago. He could accept the
coma and the loss of time in an intellectual way, but his emotions stubbornly
resisted. Answering her condolence note had been difficult, but with a note it
was always possible to crumple the thing up and start again if it began to go
in directions it shouldn't go, if it began to overstep the bounds of
friendship, which was all they were now allowed to share. If he saw her, he
might do or say something stupid. Better not to call. Better just to let it
sink.
But he would
call, he thought. Call and invite her over.
Troubled, he
slipped the note back into the envelope.
The sun caught on
bright chrome, twinkled there, and tossed an arrow of light back into his eyes.
A Ford sedan was crunching its way down the driveway. Johnny squinted and tried
to make out if it was a familiar car. Company out here was rare. There had been
lots of mail, but people had only stopped by on three or four occasions. Pownal
was small on the map, hard to find. If the car did belong to some seeker after
knowledge, Johnny would send him or her away quickly, as kindly as possible,
but firmly. That had been Weizak's parting advice. Good advice, Johnny thought.
“Don't let anyone
rope you into the role of consulting swami, John. Give no encouragement and
they will forget. It may seem heartless to you at first—most of them are
misguided people with too many problems and only the best of intentions—but it
is a question of your life, your privacy. So be firm. “And so he had been.
The Ford pulled
into the turnaround between the shed and the woodpile, and as it swung around,
Johnny saw the small Hertz sticker in the corner of the wind-shield. A very
tall man in very new blue jeans and a red plaid hunting shirt that looked as if
it had just come out of an L. L. Bean box got out of the car and glanced
around. He had the air of a man who is not used to the country, a man who knows
there are no more wolves or cougars in New England, but who wants to make sure
all the same. A city man. He glanced up at the porch, saw Johnny, and raised
one hand in greeting.
“Good afternoon,”
he said. He had a flat city accent as well—Brooklyn, Johnny thought—and he
sounded as if he were talking through a Saltine box.
“Hi,” Johnny
said. “Lost?”
“Boy, I hope
not,” the stranger said, coming over to the foot of the steps. “You're either
John Smith or his twin brother.”
Johnny grinned.
“I don't have a brother, so I guess you found your way to the right door. Can I
do something for you?”
“Well, maybe we
can do something for each other. “The stranger mounted the porch steps and
offered his hand. Johnny shook it. “My name is Richard Dees. Inside View
magazine.”
His hair was cut
in a fashionable ear-length style, and it was mostly gray. Dyed gray, Johnny
thought with some amusement. What could you say about a man who sounded as if
he were talking through a Saltine box and dyed his hair gray?
“Maybe you've
seen the magazine.”
“Oh, I've seen
it. They sell it at the checkout counters in the supermarket. I'm not
interested in being interviewed. Sorry you had to make a trip out here for
nothing. “They sold it in the supermarket, all right. The headlines did
everything but leap off the pulp-stock pages and try to mug you. CHILD KILLED
BY CREATURES FROM SPACE, DISTRAUGHT MOTHER CRIES. THE FOODS THAT ARE POISONING
YOUR CHILDREN. 12 PSYCHICS PREDICT CALIFORNIA EARTHQUAKE BY 1978.
“Well now, an
interview wasn't exactly what we were thinking of,” Dees said. “May I sit
down?”
“Really, I...”
“Mr. Smith, I've
flown all the way up from New York, and from Boston I came on a little plane
that had me wondering what would happen to my wife if I died interstate.”
“Portland-Bangor
Airways-” Johnny asked, grinning.
“That's what it
was,” Dees agreed.
“All right,”
Johnny said. “I'm impressed with your valor and your dedication to your job.
I'll listen, but only for fifteen minutes or so. I'm supposed to sleep every
afternoon. “This was a small lie in a good cause.
“Fifteen minutes
should be more than enough. “Dees leaned forward. “I'm just making an educated
guess, Mr. Smith, but I'd estimate that you must owe somewhere in the
neighborhood of two hundred thousand dollars. That roll somewhere within
putting distance of the pin, does it?”
Johnny's smile
thinned. “What I owe or don't owe,” he said, “is my business.”
“All right, of
course, sure. I didn't mean to offend, Mr. Smith. Inside View would like to
offer you a job. A rather lucrative job.”
“No. Absolutely
not.”
“If you'll just
give me a chance to lay this out for you...
Johnny said, “I'm
not a practicing psychic. I'm not a Jeanne Dixon or an Edgar Cayce or an Alex
Tannous. “That's over with. The last thing I want to do is rake it up again.”
“Can I have just
a few moments?”
“Mr Dees, you
don't seem to understand what I'm—”
“Just a few
moments?” Dees smiled winningly.
“How did you find
out where I was, anyway?”
“We have a
stringer on a mid-Maine paper called the Kennebec Journal He said that although
you'd dropped out of the public view, you were probably staying with your
father.”
“Well, I owe him
a real debt of thanks, don't I?”
“Sure,” Dees said
easily. “I'm betting you'll think so when you hear the whole deal. May I?”
“All right,” Johnny
said. “But just because you flew up here on Panic Airlines, I'm not going to
change my mind.”
“Well, however
you see it. It's a free country, isn't it? Sure it is. Inside View specializes
in a psychic view of things, Mr. Smith, as you probably know. Our readers, to
be perfectly frank, are out of their gourds for this stuff. We have a weekly
circulation of three million. Three million readers every week, Mr. Smith,
how's that for a long shot straight down the fairway? How do we do it? We stick
with the upbeat, the spiritual...”
“Twin Babies
Eaten By Killer Bear,” Johnny murmured.
Dees shrugged.
“Sure, well, it's a tough old world, isn't it? People have to be informed about
these things. It's their right to know. But for every downbeat article we've
got three others telling our readers how to lose weight painlessly, how to find
sexual happiness and compatibility, how to get closer to God...
“Do you believe
in God, Mr. Dees?”
“Actually, I
don't,” Dees said, and smiled his winning smile. “But we live in a democracy,
greatest country on earth, right? Everyone is the captain of his own soul. No,
the point is, our readers believe in God. They believe in angels and
miracles...
“And exorcisms
and devils and Black Masses...
“Right, right,
right. You catch. It's a spiritual audience. They believe all this psychic
bushwah. We have a total of ten psychics under contract, including Kathleen
Nolan, the most famous seer in America. We'd like to put you under contract,
Mr. Smith.”
“Would you?”
“Indeed we would.
What would it mean for you? Your picture and a short column would appear
roughly twelve times a year, when we run one of our All-Psychic issues. Inside
View's Ten Famous Psychics Preview the Second Ford Administration, that sort of
thing. We always do a New Year's issue, and one each Fourth of July on the
course of America over the next year—that's always a very informative issue,
lots of chip shots on foreign policy and economic policy in that one—plus
assorted other goodies.”
“I don't think
you understand,” Johnny said. He was speaking very slowly, as if to a child.
“I've had a couple of precognitive bursts—I suppose you could say I “saw the
future”—but I don't have any control over it. I could no more come up with a
prediction for the second Ford administration—if there ever is one—than I could
milk a bull.”
Dees looked
horrified. “Who said you could? Staff writers do all those columns.”
“Staff...?”
Johnny gaped at Dees, finally shocked.
“Of course,” Dees
said impatiently. “Look. One of our most popular guys over the last couple of
years has been Frank Ross, the guy who specializes in natural disasters. Hell
of a nice guy, but Jesus Christ, he quit school in the ninth grade. He did two
hitches in the Army and was swamping out Greyhound buses at the Port Authority
terminal in New York when we found him. You think we'd let him write his own
column? He'd misspell cat.
“But the
predictions...
“A free hand,
nothing but a free hand. But you'd be surprised how often these guys and gals
get stuck for a real whopper.
“Whopper,” Johnny
repeated, bemused. He was a little surprised to find himself getting angry. His
mother had bought inside View for as long as he could remember, all the way
back to the days when they had featured pictures of bloody car wrecks,
decapitations, and bootlegged execution photos. She had sworn by every word.
Presumably the greater part of inside View's other,999,999 readers did as well.
And here sat this fellow with his dyed gray hair and his fortydollar shoes and
his shirt with the store-creases still in it, talking about whoppers.
“But it all works
out,” Dees was saying. “If you ever get stuck, all you have to do is call us
collect and we all take it into the pro-shop together and come up with
something. We have the right to anthologize your columns in our yearly book,
Inside Views of Things to Come. You're perfectly free to sign any contract you
can get with a book publisher, however. All we get is first refusal on the
magazine rights, and we hardly ever refuse, I can tell you. And we pay very
handsomely. That's over and above whatever figure we contract for. Gravy on
your mashed potatoes, you might say. “Dees chuckled.
“And what might
that figure be?” Johnny asked slowly. He was gripping the arms of his rocker. A
vein in his right temple pulsed rhythmically.
“Thirty thousand
dollars per year for two years,” Dees said. “And if you prove popular, that
figure would become negotiable. Now, all our psychics have some area of
expertise. I understand that you're good with objects. “Dees's eyes became
half-lidded, dreamy. “I see a regular feature. Twice monthly, maybe—we don't
want to run a good thing into the ground. “John Smith invites inside Viewers to
send in personal belongings for psychic examination...” Something like that.
We'd make it clear, of course, that they should send in inexpensive stuff
because nothing could be returned. But you'd be surprised. Some people are
crazy as bedbugs, God love em. You'd be surprised at some of the stuff that
would come in, Diamonds, gold coins, wedding rings... and we could attach a
rider to the contract specifying that all objects mailed in would become your
personal property.
Now Johnny began
to see tones of dull red before his eyes. “People would send things in and I'd
just keep them. That's what you're saying.”
“Sure, I don't
see any problem with that. It's just a question of keeping the ground rules
clear up front. A little extra gravy for those mashed potatoes.”
“Suppose,” Johnny
said, carefully keeping his voice even and modulated, “suppose I got .. . stuck
for a whopper, as you put it... and I just called in and said President Ford
was going to be assassinated on September 31, 1976? Not because I felt he was,
but because I was stuck?”
“Well, September
only has thirty days, you know,” Dees said. “But otherwise, I think it's a hole
in one. You're going to be a natural, Johnny. You think big. That's good. You'd
be surprised how many of these people think small. Afraid to put their mouths
where their money is” I suppose. One of our guys—Tim Clark out in Idaho -wrote in
two weeks ago and said he'd had a flash that Earl Butz was going to be forced
to resign next year. Well pardon my French, but who gives a fuck? Who's Earl
Butz to the American housewife? But you have good waves, Johnny. You were made
for this stuff.”
“Good waves,”
Johnny muttered.
Dees was looking
at him curiously. “You feel all right, Johnny? You look a little white.”
Johnny was
thinking 6f the lady who had sent the scarf. Probably she read Inside View,
too. “Let me see if I can summarize this,” he said. “You'd pay me thirty
thousand dollars a year for my name...
“And your
picture, don't forget.
And my picture,
for a few ghostwritten columns. Also a feature where I tell people what they want
to know about objects they send in. As an extra added attraction, I get to keep
the stuff...
“If the lawyers
can work it out..”
“... as my
personal property. That the deal?”
“That's the bare
bones of the deal. Johnny. The way these things feed each other, it's just
amazing. You'll be a household word in six months, and after that, the sky is
the limit. The Carson show. Personal appearances. Lecture tours. Your book, of
course, pick your house, they're practically throwing money at psychics along
Publisher's Row. Kathy Nolan started with a contract like the one we're
offering you, and she makes over two hundred thou a year now. Also, she founded
her own church and the IRS can't touch dime-one of her money. She doesn't miss
a trick, does our Kathy. “Dees leaned forward, grinning. “I tell you, Johnny,
the sky is the limit.”
“I'll bet.”
“Well? What do
you think?”
Johnny leaned
forward toward Dees. He grabbed the sleeve of Dees's new L. L. Bean shirt in
one hand and the collar of Dees's new L. L. Bean shirt in the other.
“Hey! What the
hell do you think you're-...”
Johnny bunched
the shirt in both hands and drew Dees forward. Five months of daily exercise
had toned up the muscles in his hands and arms to a formidable degree.
“You asked me
what I thought,” Johnny said. His head was beginning to throb and ache. “I'll
tell you. I think you're a ghoul. A grave robber of people's dreams. I think
someone ought to put you to work at Roto-Rooter. I think your mother should
have died of cancer the day after she conceived you. If there's a hell, I hope
you burn there.”
“You can't talk
to me like that!” Dees cried. His voice rose to a fishwife's shriek. “You're
fucking crazy! Forget it! Forget the whole thing, you stupid hick sonofabitch I
You had your chance! Don't come crawling around...”
“Furthermore, you
sound like you're talking through a Saltine box,” Johnny said, standing up. He
lifted Dees with him. The tails of his shirt popped out of the waist-band of
his new jeans, revealing a fishnet undershirt beneath. Johnny began to shake
Dees methodically back and forth. Dees forgot about being angry. He began to
blubber and roar.
Johnny dragged
him to the porch steps, raised one foot and planted it squarely in the seat of
the new Levi's. Dees went down in two big steps, still blubbering and roaring.
He fell in the dirt and sprawled full length. When he got up and turned around
to face Johnny, his country-cousin duds were caked with dooryard dust. It made
them look more real, somehow, Johnny thought, but doubted if Dees would appreciate
that.
“I ought to put
the cops on you,” he said hoarsely. “And maybe I will.”
“You do whatever
turns you on,” Johnny said. “But the law around here doesn't take too kindly to
people who stick their noses in where they haven't been invited.”
Dees's face
worked in an uneasy contortion of fear, anger, and shock. “God help you if you
ever need us,” he said.
Johnny's head was
aching fiercely now, but he kept his voice even. “That's just right,” he said.
“I couldn't agree more.
“You're going to
be sorry, you know. Three million readers. That cuts both ways. When we get
done with you the people in this country wouldn't believe you if you predicted
spring in April. They wouldn't believe you if you said the World Series is
going to come in October. They wouldn't believe you if... if... . Dees
spluttered, furious.
“Get out of here,
you cheap cocksucker,” Johnny said.
“You can kiss off
that book!” Dees screamed, apparently summoning up the worst thing he could
think of. With his working, knotted face and his dust-caked shirt, he looked
like a kid having a class-A tantrum. His Brooklyn accent had deepened and
darkened to the point where it was almost a patois. “They'll laugh you out of
every publishing house in New York! Nightstand Readers wouldn't touch you when
I get done with you! There are ways of fixing smart guys like you and we got
em, fuckhead! We...”
“I guess I'll go
get my Remmy and shoot myself a trespasserJohnny remarked.
Dees retreated to
his rental car, still shouting threats and obscenities. Johnny stood on the
porch and watched him, his head thudding sickly. Dees got in, revved the car's
engine mercilessly, and then screamed out, throwing dirt into the air in
clouds. He let the car drift just enough on his way out to knock the chopping
block by the shed flying. Johnny grinned a little at that in spite of his bad
head. He could set up the chopping block a lot more easily than Dees was going
to be able to explain the big dent in that Ford's front fender to the Hertz
people.
Afternoon sun
twinkled on chrome again as Dees sprayed gravel all the way up the driveway to
the road. Johnny sat down in the rocker again and put his forehead in his hand
and got ready to wait out the headache.
2.
“You're going to
do what?” the banker asked outside and below, traffic passed back and forth
along the bucolic main street of Ridgeway, New Hampshire. On the walls of the
banker's pine-panelled, third-floor office were Frederick Remington prints and
photographs of the banker at local functions. On his desk was a lucite cube,
and embedded in this cube were pictures of his wife and son.
“I'm going to run
for the House of Representatives next year,” Greg Stillson repeated. He was
dressed in khaki suntan pants, a blue shirt with the sleeves rolled up, and a black
tie with a single blue figure. He looked out of place in the banker's office,
somehow, as if at any moment he might rise to his feet and begin an aimless,
destructive charge around the room, knocking over furniture, sweeping the
expensively framed Remington prints to the floor, pulling the drapes from their
rods.
The banker,
Charles “Chuck” Gendron, president of the local Lions Club, laughed—a bit
uncertainly. Stillson had a way of making people feel uncertain. As a boy he
had been scrawny, perhaps; he liked to tell people that “a high wind woulda
blowed me away'; but in the end his father's genes had told, and sitting here
in Gendron's office, he looked very much like the Oklahoma oufield roughneck
that his father had been.
He frowned at
Gendron's chuckle.
“I mean, George
Harvey might have something to say about that, mightn't he, Greg?” George
Harvey, besides being a mover and a shaker in town politics, was the third
district Republican godfather.
“George won't say
boo,” Greg said calmly. There was a salting of gray in his hair, but his face
suddenly looked very much like the face of the man who long ago had kicked a
dog to death in an Iowa farmyard. His voice was patient. “George is going to be
on the sidelines, but he's gonna be on my side of the sidelines, if you get my
meaning. I ain't going to be stepping on his toes, because I'm going to run as
an independent. I don't have twenty years to spend learning the ropes and
licking boots.”
Chuck Gendron
said hesitantly, “You're kidding, aren't you, Greg?”
Greg's frown
returned. It was forbidding. “Chuck, I never kid. People... they think I kid.
The Union-Leader and those yo-yos on the Daily Democrat, they think I kid. But
you go see George Harvey. You ask him if I kid around, or if I get the job
done. You ought to know better, too. After all, we buried some bodies together,
didn't we, Chuck?”
The frown
metamorphosed into a somehow chilling grin—chilling to Gendron, perhaps,
because he had allowed himself to be pulled along on a couple of Greg
Stilison's development schemes. They had made money, yes, of course they had,
that wasn't the problem. But there had been a couple of aspects of the
Sunningdale Acres development (and the Laurel Estates deal as well, to be
honest) that hadn't been—well, strictly legal. A bribed EPA agent for one
thing, but that wasn't the worst thing.
On the Laurel
Estates thing there had been an old man out on the Back Ridgeway Road who
hadn't wanted to sell, and first the old man's fourteen-or-so chickens had died
of some mysterious ailment and second there had been a fire in the old man's
potato house and third when the old man came back from visiting his sister, who
was in a nursing home in Keene, one weekend not so long ago, someone bad
smeared dogshit all over the old man's living room and dining room and fourth
the old man had sold and fifth Laurel Estates was now a fact of life.
And, maybe sixth:
That motorcycle spook, Sonny Elliman, was hanging around again. He and Greg
were good buddies, and the only thing that kept that from being town gossip was
the counterbalancing fact that Greg was seen in the company of a lot of heads,
hippies, freaks, and cyclists—as a direct result of the Drug Counselling Center
he had set up, plus Ridgeway's rather unusual program for young drug, alcohol,
and road offenders. Instead of fining them or locking them up, the town took
out their services in trade. It had been Greg's idea—and a good one, the banker
would be the first to admit. It had been one of the things that had helped Greg
to get elected mayor.
But this—this was
utter craziness.
Greg had said
something else. Gendron wasn't sure what.
“Pardon me,” he
said.
“I asked you how
you'd like to be my campaign manager,” Greg repeated.
“Greg... “Gendron
had to clear his throat and start again. “Greg, you don't seem to understand.
Harrison Fisher is the Third District representative in Washington. Harrison
Fisher is Republican, respected, and probably eternal.”
“No one is
eternal,” Greg said.
“Harrison is damn
close,” Gendron said. “Ask Harvey. They went to school together. Back around
1800, I think.”
Greg took no
notice of this thin witticism. “I'll call myself a Bull Moose or something...
and everyone will think I'm kidding around... and in the end, the good people
of the Third District are going to laugh me all the way to Washington.”
“Greg, you're
crazy.”
Greg's smile
disappeared as if it had never been there. Something frightening happened to
his face. It became very still, and his eyes widened to show too much of the
whites. They were like the eyes of a horse that smells bad water.
“You don't want
to say something like that, Chuck. Ever.”
The banker felt
more than chilled now.
“Greg, I
apologize. It's just that...
“No, you don't
ever want to say that to me, unless you want to find Sonny Elliman waiting for
you some afternoon when you go out to get your big fucking Imperial.”
Gendron's mouth
moved but no sound came out.
Greg smiled
again, and it was like the sun suddenly breaking through threatening clouds.
“Never mind. We don't want to be kicking sand if we're going to be working
together.”
“Greg...
“I want you
because you know every damn business man in this part of New Hampshire. We're
gonna have plenty good money once we get this thing rolling, but I figure we'll
have to prime the pump. Now's the time for me to expand a little, and start
looking like the state's man as well as Ridgeway's man. I figure fifty thousand
dollars ought to be enough to fertilize the grass roots.
The banker, who
had worked for Harrison Fisher in his last four canvasses, was so astounded by
Greg's political naivete that at first he was at a loss on how to proceed. At
last he said, “Greg. Businessmen contribute to campaigns not out of the
goodness of their hearts but be-cause the winner ends up owing them something.
in a close campaign they'll contribute to any candidate who has a chance of
winning, because they can write off the loser as a tax loss as well. But the
operant phrase is chance of winning. Now Fisher is a...
“Shoo-in,” Greg supplied.
He produced an envelope from his back pocket. “Want you to look at these.”
Gendron looked
doubtfully at the envelope, then up at Greg. Greg nodded encouragingly. The
banker opened the envelope.
There was a long
silence in the pine-panelled office after Gendron's initial gasp for breath. It
was unbroken except for the faint hum of the digital clock on the banker's desk
and the hiss of a match as Greg lit a Phillies cheroot. On the walls of the
office were Frederick Remington pictures. In the lucite cube were family
pictures. Now, spread on the desk, were pictures of the banker with his head
buried between the thighs of a young woman with black hair—or it might have
been red, the pictures were high-grain black-and-white glossies and it was hard
to tell. The woman's face was very clear. It was not the face of the banker's
wife. Some residents of Ridge. way would have recognized it as the face of one
of the waitresses at Bobby Strang's truckstop two towns over.
The pictures of
the banker with his head between the legs of the waitress were the safe
ones—her face was clear but his was not. In others, his own grandmother would
have recognized him. There were pictures of Gendron and the waitress involved
in a whole medley of sexual delights—hardly all the positions of the Kama
Sutra, but there were several positions represented that had never made the
“Sexual Relationships” chapter of the Ridgeway High health textbook.
Gendron looked
up, his face cheesy, his hands trembling. His heart was galloping in his chest.
He feared a heart attack.
Greg was not even
looking at him. He was looking out the window at the bright blue slice of
October sky visible between the Ridgeway Five and Ten and the Ridgeway Card and
Notion Shoppe.
“The winds of
change have started to blow,” he said, and his face was distant and
preoccupied; almost mystical. He looked back at Gendron. “One of those
drugfreaks down at the Center, you know what he gave me?”
Chuck Gendron
shook his head numbly. With one of his shaking hands he was massaging the left
side if his chest—just in case. His eyes kept falling to the photographs. The
damning photographs. What if his secretary came in right now? He stopped
massaging his chest and began gathering up the pictures, stuffing them back
into the envelope.
“He gave me
Chairman Mao's little red book,” Greg said. A chuckle rumbled up from the
barrel chest that had once been so thin, part of a body that had mostly
disgusted his idolized father. “And one of the proverbs in there... I can't
remember exactly how it went, but it was something like, “The man who senses
the wind of change should build not a windbreak but a windmill.” That was the
flavor of it, anyway.”
He leaned
forward.
“Harrison
Fisher's not a shoo-in, he's a has-been. Ford is a has-been. Muskie's a has-been.
Humphrey's a has-been. A lot of local and state politicians all the way across
this country are going to wake up the day after election day and find out that
they're as dead as dodo birds. They forced Nixon out, and the next year they
forced out the people who stood behind him in the impeachment hearings, and
next year they'll force out Jerry Ford for the same reason.
Greg Stillson's
eyes blazed at the banker.
“You want to see
the wave of the future? Look up in Maine at this guy Longley. The Republicans
ran a guy named Erwin and the Democrats ran a guy named Mitchell and when they
counted the votes for governor, they both got a big surprise, because the
people went and elected themselves an insurance man from Lewiston that didn't
want any part of either party. Now they're talking about him as a dark horse
candidate for president.”
Gendron still
couldn't talk.
Greg drew in his
breath. “They're all gonna think I'm kiddin, see? They thought Longley was
kiddin. But I'm not kiddin. I'm building windmills. And you're gonna supply the
building materials.”
He ceased.
Silence fell in the office, except for the hum of the clock. At last Gendron
whispered, “Where did you get these pictures? Was it that Elliman?”
“Aw, hey. You
don't want to talk about that. You forget all about those pictures. Keep them.”
“And who keeps
the negatives?”
“Chuck,” Greg
said earnestly, “you don't understand. I'm offering you Washington. Sky's the
limit, boy! I'm not even asking you to raise that much money. Like I said, just
a bucket of water to help prime the pump. When we get rolling, plenty of money
is going to come in. Now, you know the guys that have money. You have lunch
with them down at the Caswell House. You play poker with them. You have written
them commercial loans tied to the prime rate at no more than their say so. And
you know how to put an armlock on them.”
“Greg you don't
understand, you don't...”
Greg stood up.
“The way I just put an armlock on you,” he said.
The banker looked
up at him. His eyes rolled helplessly. Greg Stillson thought he looked like a
sheep that had been led neatly to the slaughter.
“Fifty thousand
dollars,” he said. “You find it.”
He walked out,
closing the door gently behind him. Gendron heard his booming voice even
through the thick walls, bandying with his secretary. His secretary was a
sixty-year-old flat-chested biddy, and Stillson probably had her giggling like
a schoolgirl. He was a buffoon. It was that as much as his programs for coping
with youthful crime that had made him mayor of Ridgeway. But the people didn't
elect buffoons to Washington.
Well—hardly ever.
That wasn't his
problem. Fifty thousand dollars in campaign contributions, that was his
problem. His mind began to scurry around the problem like a trained white rat
scurrying around a piece of cheese on a plate. It could probably be done. Yes,
it could probably be done—but would it end there?
The white
envelope was still on his desk. His smiling wife looked at it from her place in
the lucite cube. He scooped the envelope up and jammed it into the inner pocket
of his suitcoat. It had been Elliman, somehow Elliman had found out and had
taken the pictures, he was sure of it.
But it had been
Stillson who told him what to do.
Maybe the man
wasn't such a buffoon after all. His assessment of the political climate of
1975–76 wasn't completely stupid. Building windmills instead of wind-breaks.. .
the sky's the limit.
But that wasn't
his problem.
Fifty thousand
dollars was his problem.
Chuck Gendron, president
of the Lions and all-round good fellow (last year he had ridden one of those
small, funny motorcycles in the Ridgeway Fourth of July parade), pulled a
yellow legal tablet out of the top drawer of his desk and began jotting down a
list of names. The trained white rat at work. And down on Main Street Greg
Stillson turned his face up into the strong autumn sunlight and congratulated
himself on a job well-done—or well-begun.
CHAPTER FIFTEEN
1.
Later, Johnny
supposed that the reason he ended up finally making love to Sarah—almost five
years to the day after the fair—had a lot to do with the visit of Richard Dees,
the man from inside View. The reason he finally weakened and called Sarah and
invited her to come and visit was little more than a wistful urge to have
someone nice to come to call and take the nasty taste out of his mouth. Or so
he told himself.
He called her in
Kennebunk and got the former roommate, who said Sarah would be right with him.
The phone clunked down and there was a moment of silence when he contemplated
(but not very seriously) just hanging up and closing the books for good. Then
Sarah's voice was in his ear.
“Johnny? Is it
you?”
“The very same.”
“How are you?”
“Fine. How's by
you?”
“I'm fine,” she
said. “Glad you called. I... didn't know if you would.”
“Still sniffin
that wicked cocaine?”
“No, I'm on
heroin now.”
“You got your boy
with you?”
“I sure do. Don't
go anywhere without him.”
“Well, why don't
the two of you truck on out here some day before you have to go back up north?”
“I'd like that,
Johnny. “she said warmly.
“Dad's working in
Westbrook and I'm chief cook and bottlewasher. He gets home around four-thirty
and we eat around five-thirty. You're welcome to stay for dinner, but be
warned: all my best dishes use Franco-Amencan spaghetti as their base.”
She giggled.
“Invitation accepted. Which day is best?”
“What about
tomorrow or the day after, Sarah?”
“Tomorrow's
fine,” she said after the briefest of hesitations. “See you then.”
“Take care,
Sarah.”
“You too.”
He hung up thoughtfully,
feeling both excited and guilty—for no good reason at all. But your mind went
where it wanted to, didn't it? And where his mind wanted to go now was to
examine possibilities maybe best left unconsidered.
Well, she knows the
thing she needs to know. She knows what time dad comes home—what else does she
need to know?
And his mind
answered itself: What you going to do if she shows up at noon?
Nothing, he
answered, and didn't wholly believe it. Just thinking about Sarah, the set of
her lips, the small, upward tilt of her green eyes—those were enough to make
him feel weak and sappy and a little desperate.
Johnny went out
to the kitchen and slowly began to put together this night's supper, not so
important, just for two. Father and son batching it. It hadn't been all that
bad. He was still healing. He and his father had talked about the
four-and-a-half years he had missed, about his mother—working around that
carefully but always seeming to come a little closer to the center, in a
tightening spiral. Not needing to understand, maybe, but needing to come to
terms. No, it hadn't been that bad. It was a way to finish putting things
together. For both of them. But it would be over in January when he returned to
Cleaves Mills to teach. He had gotten his half-year contract from Dave Pelsen
the week before, had signed it and sent it back. What would his father do then?
Go on, Johnny supposed. People had a way of doing that, just going on, pushing
through with no particular drama, no big drumrolls. He would get down to visit
Herb as often as he could, every weekend, if that felt like the right thing to
do. So many things had gotten strange so fast that all he could do was feel his
way slowly along, groping like a blind man in an unfamiliar room.
He put the roast
in the oven, went into the living room, snapped on the TV, then snapped it off
again. He sat down and thought about Sarah. The baby, he thought The baby will
be our chaperon if she comes early. So that was all right, after all. All bases
covered.
But his thoughts
were still long and uneasily speculative.
2.
She came at
quarter past twelve the next day, wheeling a snappy little red Pinto into the
driveway and parking it, getting out, looking tall and beautiful, her dark
blonde hair caught in the mild October wind.
“Hi, Johnny! “she
called, raising her hand.
“Sarah!” He came
down to meet her; she lifted her face and he kissed her cheek lightly.
“Just let me get
the emperor,” she said, opening the passenger door.
“Can I help?”
“Naw, we get
along just fine together, don't we, Denny? Come on, kiddo. “Moving deftly, she
unbuckled the straps holding a pudgy little baby in the car seat. She lifted
him out. Denny stared around the yard with wild, solemn interest, and then his
eyes fixed on Johnny and held there. He smiled.
“Vig!” Denny
said, and waved both hands.
“I think he wants
to go to you,” Sarah said. “Very unusual. Denny has his father's Republican
sensibilities -he's rather standoffish. Want to hold him?”
“Sure,” Johnny
said, a little doubtfully.
Sarah grinned.
“He won't break and you won't drop him,” she said, and handed Denny over. “If
you did, he'd probably bounce right up like Silly Putty. Disgustingly fat baby.
“Vun bunk! “Denny
said, curling one arm nonchalantly around Johnny's neck and looking comfortably
at his mother.
“It really is
amazing,” Sarah said. “He never takes to people like... Johnny? Johnny?”
When the baby put
his arm around Johnny's neck, a confused rush of feelings had washed over him
like mild warm water. There was nothing dark, nothing troubling. Everything was
very simple. There was no concept of the future in the baby's thoughts. No
feeling of trouble. No sense of past unhappiness. And on words, only strong
images: warmth, dryness, the mother, the man that was himself.
“Johnny?” She was
looking at him apprehensively.
“Hmmmm?”
“Is everything
all right?”
She's asking me
about Denny, he realized. Is everything all right with Denny? Do you see
trouble? Problems?
“Everything's
fine,” he said. “We can go inside if you want, but I usually roost on the
porch. It'll be time to crouch around the stove all day long soon enough.”
“I think the
porch will be super. And Denny looks as if he'd like to try out the yard. Great
yard, he says. Right, kiddo?” She ruffled his hair and Denny laughed.
“He'll be okay?”
“As long as he
doesn't try to eat any of those wood-chips.”
“I've been
splitting stove-lengths,” Johnny said, setting Denny down as carefully as a
Ming vase. “Good exercise.”
“How are you?
Physically?”
“I think,” Johnny
said, remembering the heave-ho he had given Richard Dees a few days ago, “that
I'm doing as well as could be expected.”
“That's good. You
were kinda low the last time I saw you.
Johnny nodded.
“The operations.”
“Johnny?”
He glanced at her
and again felt that odd mix of speculation, guilt, and something like
anticipation in his viscera. Her eyes were on his face, frankly and openly.
“Yeah?”
“Do you
remember... about the wedding ring?” He nodded.
“It was there.
Where you said it would be. I threw it away.”
“Did you?” He was
not completely surprised.
“I threw it away
and never mentioned it to Walt. “She shook her head. “And I don't know why.
It's bothered me ever since.
“Don't let it.”
They were
standing on the steps, facing each other. Color had come up in her cheeks, but
she didn't drop her eyes.
“There's
something I'd like to finish,” she said simply. “Something we never had the
chance to finish.”
“Sarah... “he
began, and stopped. He had absolutely no idea what to say next. Below them,
Denny tottered six steps and then sat down hard. He crowed, not put out of
countenance at all.
“Yes,” she said.
“I don't know if it's right or wrong. I love Walt. He's a good man, easy to
love. Maybe the one thing I know is a good man from a bad one. Dan—that guy I
went with in college—was one of the bad guys. You set my mouth for the other
kind, Johnny. Without you, I never could have appreciated Walt for what he is.”
“Sarah, you don't
have... ..
“I do have to,”
Sarah contradicted. Her voice was low and intense. “Because things like this
you can only say once. And you either get it wrong or right, it's the end
either way, because it's too hard to ever try to say again. “She looked at him
pleadingly. “Do you understand?”
“Yes, I suppose I
do.”
“I love you,
Johnny,” she said. “I never stopped. I've tried to tell myself that it was an
act of God that split us up. I don't know. Is a bad hot dog an act of God? Or
two kids dragging on a back road in the middle of the night? All I want... “Her
voice had taken on a peculiar flat emphasis that seemed to beat its way into
the cool October afternoon like an artisan's small hammer into thin and
precious foil, “... all I want is what was taken from us. “Her voice faltered.
She looked down. “And I want it with all my heart, Johnny. Do you?”
“Yes,” he said.
He put his arms out and was confused when she shook her head and stepped away.
“Not in front of
Denny,” she said. “It's stupid, maybe, but that would be a little bit too much
like public infidelity. I want everything, Johnny. “Her color rose again, and
her pretty blush began to feed his own excitement. “I want you to hold me and
kiss me and love me,” she said. Her voice faltered, nearly broke. “I think it's
wrong, but I can't help it. It's wrong but it's right. It's fair.”
He reached out
One finger and brushed away a tear that was moving slowly down her cheek.
“And it's only
this once, isn't it?”
She nodded. “Once
will have to put paid to everything. Everything that would have been, if things
hadn't gone wrong. “She looked up, her eyes brighter green than ever, swimming
with tears. “Can we put paid to everything with only the one time, Johnny?”
“No,” he said,
smiling. “But we can try, Sarah.”
She looked fondly
down at Denny, who was trying to climb up onto the chopping block without much
success. “He'll sleep,” she said.
3.
They sat on the
porch and watched Denny play in the yard under the high blue sky. There was no
hurry, no impatience between them, but there was a growing electricity that they
both felt. She had opened her coat and sat on the porch glider in a powder-blue
wool dress, her ankles crossed, her hair blown carelessly on her shoulders
where the wind had spilled it. The blush never really left her face. And high
white clouds fled across the sky, west to east.
They talked of
inconsequential things—there was no hurry. For the first time since he had come
out of it, Johnny felt that time was not his enemy. Time had provided them with
this little air pocket in exchange for the main flow of which they had been
robbed, and it would be here for as long as they needed it. They talked about
people who had been married, about a girl from Cleaves Mills who had won a
Merit scholarship, about Maine's independent governor. Sarah said he looked like
Lurch on the old Addams Family show and thought like Herbert Hoover, and they
both laughed over that.
“Look at him,”
Sarah said, nodding toward Denny.
He was sitting on
the grass by Vera Smith's ivy trellis, his thumb in his mouth, looking at them
sleepily.
She got his
car-bed out of the Pinto's back seat.
“Will he be okay
on the porch?” she asked Johnny. “It's so mild, I'd like to have him nap in the
fresh air.”
“He'll be fine on
the porch,” Johnny said.
She Set the bed
in the shade, popped him into it, and pulled the two blankets up to his chin.
“Sleep, baby,” Sarah said.
He smiled at her
and promptly closed his eyes.
“Just like that?”
Johnny asked.
“Just like that,”
she agreed. She stepped close to him and put her arms around his neck. Quite
clearly he could hear the faint rustle of her slip beneath her dress. “I'd like
you to kiss me,” she said calmly. “I've waited five years for you to kiss me
again, Johnny.”
He put his arms
around her waist and kissed her gently. Her lips parted.
“Oh, Johnny,” she
said against his neck. “I love you.”
“I love you too,
Sarah.”
“Where do we go?”
she asked, stepping away from him. Her eyes were as dear and dark as emeralds
now. “Where?”
4.
He spread the
faded army blanket, which was old but clean, on the straw of the second loft.
The smell was fragrant and sweet. High above them there was the mysterious coo
and flutter of the barn swallows, and then they settled down again. There was a
small, dusty window which looked down on the house and porch. Sarah wiped a
clean place on the glass and looked down at Denny.
“It's okay?”
Johnny asked.
“Yes. Better here
than in the house. That would have been like... “She shrugged.
“Making my dad a
part of it?”
“Yes. This is
between us.”
“Our business.”
“Our business,” she
agreed. She lay on her stomach, her face turned to one side on the faded
blanket, her legs bent at the knee. She pushed her shoes off, one by one.
“Unzip me, Johnny.”
He knelt beside
her and pulled the zipper down. The sound was loud in the stillness. Her back
was the color of coffee with cream against the whiteness of her slip. He kissed
her between the shoulder blades and she shivered.
“Sarah,” he
murmured.
“What?”
“I have to tell
you something.”
“What?”
“The doctor made
a mistake during one of those operations and gelded me.”
She punched him
on the shoulder. “Same old Johnny,” she said. “And you had a friend once who
broke his neck on the crack-the-whip at Topsham Fair.”
“Sure,” he said.
Her hand touched
him like silk, moving gently up and down.
“It doesn't feel
like they did anything terminal to you,” she said. Her luminous eyes searched
his. “Not at all. Shall we look and see?”
There was the
sweet smell of the hay. Time spun out. There was the rough feel of the army
blanket, the smooth feel of her flesh, the naked reality of her. Sinking into
her was like sinking into an old dream that had never been quite forgotten.
“Oh, Johnny, my
dear... “Her voice in rising excitement. Her hips moving in a quickening tempo.
Her voice was far away. The touch of her hair was like fire on his shoulder and
chest. He plunged his face deeply into it, losing himself in that dark-blonde
darkness.
Time spinning out
in the sweet smell of hay. The rough-textured blanket. The sound of the old
barn creaking gently, like a ship, in the October wind. Mild white light coming
in through the roof chinks, catching motes of chaff in half a hundred
pencil-thin sunbeams. Motes of chaff dancing and revolving.
She cried out. At
some point she cried out his name, again and again and again, like a chant. Her
fingers dug into him like spurs. Rider and ridden. Old wine decanted at last, a
fine vintage.
Later they sat by
the window, looking out into the yard. Sarah slipped her dress on over bare
flesh and left him for a little bit. He sat alone, not thinking, content to
watch her reappear in the window, smaller, and cross the yard to the porch. She
bent over the baby bed and readjusted the blankets. She came back, the wind
blowing her hair out behind her and tugging playfully at the hem of her dress.
“He'll sleep
another half hour,” she said.
“Will he?” Johnny
smiled. “Maybe I will, too.”
She walked her
bare toes across his belly. “You better not.”
And so again, and
this time she was on top, almost in an attitude of prayer, her head bent, her
hair swinging forward and obscuring her face. Slowly. And then it was over.
5.
“Sarah...”
“No, Johnny.
Better not say it. Time's up.”
“I was going to
say that you're beautiful.”
“Am I?”
“You are,” he
said softly. “Dear Sarah.”
“Did we put paid to
everything?” she asked him.
Johnny smiled.
“Sarah, we did the best we could.”
6.
Herb didn't seem
surprised to see Sarah when he got home from Westbrook. He welcomed her, made
much of the baby, and then scolded Sarah for not bringing him down sooner.
“He has your
color and complexion,” Herb said. “And I think he's going to have your eyes,
when they get done changing.”
“if only he has
his father's brains,” Sarah said. She had put an apron on over the blue wool
dress. Outside, the sun was going down. Another twenty minutes and it would be
dark.
“You know, the
cooking is supposed to be Johnny's job,” Herb said.
“Couldn't stop
her. She put a gun to my head.”
“Well, maybe it's
all for the best,” Herb said. “Everything you make comes out tasting like
Franco-American spaghetti.”
Johnny shied a
magazine at him and Denny laughed, a high, piercing sound that seemed to fill
the house.
Can he see?
Johnny wondered. It feels like it's written all over my face. And then a
startling thought came to him as he watched his father digging in the entryway
closet for a box of Johnny's old toys that he had never let Vera give away:
Maybe he understands.
They ate. Herb
asked Sarah what Walt was doing in Washington and she told them about the
conference he was attending, which had to do with Indian land claims. The
Republican meetings were mostly wind-testing exercises, she said.
“Most of the
people he's meeting with think that if Reagan is nominated over Ford next year,
it's going to mean the death of the party. “Sarah said. “And if the Grand Old
Party dies, that means Walt won't be able to run for Bill Cohen's seat in 1978
when Cohen goes after Bill Hathaway's Senate seat.
Herb was watching
Denny eat string beans, seriously, one by one, using all six of his teeth on
them. “I don't think Cohen will be able to wait until “78 to get in the Senate.
He'll run against Muskie next year.”
“Walt says Bill
Cohen's not that big a dope,” Sarah said. “He'll wait. Walt says his own chance
is coming, and I'm starting to believe him.”
After supper they
sat in the living room, and the talk turned away from politics. They watched
Denny play with the old wooden cars and trucks that a much younger Herb Smith
had made for his own son over a quarter of a century ago. A younger Herb Smith
who had been married to a tough, good-humored woman who would sometimes drink a
bottle of Black Label beer in the evening. A man with no gray in his hair and
nothing but the highest hopes for his son.
He does
understand, Johnny thought, sipping his coffee. Whether he knows what went on
between Sarah and me this afternoon, whether or not he suspects what might have
gone on, he understands the basic cheat. You can't change it or rectify it, the
best you can do is try to come to terms. This afternoon she and I consummated a
marriage that never was. And tonight he's playing with his grandson.
He thought of the
Wheel of Fortune, slowing, stopping.
House number.
Everyone loses.
Gloom was trying
to creep up, a dismal sense of finality, and he pushed it away. This wasn't the
time; he wouldn't let it be the time.
By eight-thirty
Denny had begun to get scratchy and cross and Sarah said, “Time for us to go,
folks. He can suck a bottle on our way back to Kennebunk. About three miles
from here, he'll have corked off. Thanks for having us. “Her eyes, brilliant
green, found Johnny's for a moment.
“Our pleasure
entirely,” Herb said, standing up. “Right, Johnny?”
“Right,” he said.
“Let me carry that car-bedout for you, Sarah.”
At the door. Herb
kissed the top of Denny's head (and Denny grabbed Herb's nose in his chubby
fist and honked it hard enough to make Herb's eyes water) and Sarah's cheek.
Johnny carried the car-bed down to the red Pinto and Sarah gave him the keys so
he could put everything in the back.
When he finished,
she was standing by the driver's door, looking at him. “It was the best we
could do,” she said, and smiled a little. But the brilliance of her eyes told
him the tears were close again.
“It wasn't so bad
at all,” Johnny said.
“We'll stay in
touch?”
“I don't know, Sarah.
Will we?”
“No, I suppose
not. It would be too easy, wouldn't it?”
“Pretty easy,
yes.
She stepped close
and stretched to kiss his cheek. He could smell her hair, clean and fragrant.
“Take care,” she
whispered. “I'll think about you.”
“Be good, Sarah,”
he said, and touched her nose.
She turned then,
got in behind the wheel, a smart young matron whose husband was on the way up.
I doubt like hell if they'll be driving a Pinto next year, Johnny thought.
The lights came
on, then the little sewing machine motor roared. She raised a hand to him and
then she was pulling out of the driveway. Johnny stood by the chopping block,
hands in his pockets, and watched her go. Something in his heart seemed to have
closed. It was not a major feeling. That was the worst of it—it wasn't a major
feeling at all.
He watched until
the taillights were out of sight and then he climbed the porch steps and went
back into the house. His dad was sitting in the big easy chair in the living
room. The TV was off. The few toys he had found in the closet were scattered on
the rug and he was looking at them.
“Good to see
Sarah,” Herb said. “Did you and she have... “there was the briefest, most
minute hesitation
—'a nice visit?”
“Yes,” Johnny
said.
“She'll be down
again?”
“No, I don't
think so.”
He and his father
were looking at each other.
“Well now, maybe
that's for the best,” Herb said finally.
“Yes. Maybe so.”
“You played with
these toys,” Herb said, getting down on his knees and beginning to gather them
up. “I gave a bunch of them to Lottie Gedreau when she had her twins, but I
knew I had a few of them left. I saved a few back.”
He put them back
in the box one at a time, turning each of them over in his hands, examining
them. A race car. A bulldozer. A police car. A small hook-and-ladder truck from
which most of the red paint had been worn away where a small hand would grip.
He took them back to the entryway closet and put them away.
Johnny didn't see
Sarah Hazlett again for three years.
CHAPTER SIXTEEN
1.
The snow came
early that year. There were six inches on the ground by November 7, and Johnny
had taken to lacing on a pair of old green gumrubber boots and wearing his old
parka for the trek up to the mailbox. Two weeks before, Dave Pelsen had mailed
down a package containing the texts he would be using in January, and Johnny
had already begun making tentative lesson plans. He was looking forward to
getting back. Dave had also found him an apartment on Howland Street in
Cleaves. 24 Howland Street. Johnny kept that on a scrap of paper in his wallet,
because the name and number had an irritating way of slipping his mind.
On this day the
skies were slatey and lowering, the temperature hovering just below the twenty
degree mark. As Johnny tramped up the driveway, the first spats of snow began
to drift down. Because he was alone, he didn't feel too self conscious about
running his tongue out and trying to catch a flake on it. He was hardly limping
at all, and he felt good. There hadn't been a headache in two weeks or more.
The mail consisted
of an advertising circular, a Newsweek, and a small manila envelope addressed
to John Smith, no return address. Johnny opened it on the way back, the rest of
the mail stuffed into his hip pocket. He pulled out a single page of newsprint,
saw the words Inside View at the top, and came to a halt halfway back to the
house.
It was page three
of the previous week's issue. The headline story dealt with a reporter's
“expose” on the handsome second banana of a TV crime show; the second banana
had been suspended from high school twice (twelve years ago) and busted for
possession of cocaine (six years ago). Hot news for the hausfraus of America.
There was also an all-grain diet, a cute baby photo, and a story of a
nine-year-old girl who had been miraculously cured of cerebral palsy at Lourdes
(DOCTORS MYSTIFIED, the headline trumpeted gleefully). A story near the bottom
of the page had been circled. MAINE “PSYCHIC” ADMITS HOAX, the headline read.
The story was not by-lined.
IT HAS ALWAYS
BEEN THE POLICY of Inside View not only to bring you the fullest coverage of
the psychics which the so-called “National Press” ignores, but to expose the
tricksters and charlatans who have held back true acceptance of legitimate
psychic phenomena for so long.
One of these tricksters
admitted his own hoax to an Inside View source recently. This so called
“psychic”, John Smith of Pownal, Maine, admitted to our source that “it was all
a gimmick to pay back my hospital bills. If there's a book in it, I might come
out with enough to pay off what I owe and retire for a couple of years in the
bargain,” Smith grinned. “These days, people will believe anything—why
shouldn't I get on the gravy train?”
Thanks to Inside
View, which has always cautioned readers that there are two phony psychics for
each real one, John Smith's gravy train has just been derailed. And we
reiterate our standing offer of $1000 to anyone who can prove that any
nationally known psychic is a fraud.
Hoaxers and
charlatans be warned!
Johnny read the
article twice as the snow began to come down more heavily. A reluctant grin
broke over his features. The ever-vigilant press apparently didn't enjoy being
thrown off some bumpkin's front porch, he thought. He tucked the tear sheet
back into its envelope and stuffed it into his back pocket with the rest of the
mail.
“Dees,” he said
aloud, “I hope you're still black and blue.
5.
His father was
not so amused. Herb read the clipping and then slammed it down on the kitchen
table in disgust. “You ought to sue that son of a whore. That's nothing but
slander, Johnny. A deliberate hatchet job.”
“Agreed and
agreed,” Johnny said. It was dark outside. This afternoon's silently falling
snow had developed into tonight's early winter blizzard. The wind shrieked and
howled around the eaves. The driveway had disappeared under a dunelike
progression of drifts. “But there was no third party when we talked, and Dees
damn well knows it. It's his word against mine.”
“He didn't even
have the guts to put his own name to this lie,” Herb said. “Look at this “an
Inside View source”. What's this source? Get him to name it, that's what I say.
“Oh, you can't do
that,” Johnny said, grinning. “That's like walking up to the meanest
street-fighter on the block with a KICK ME HARD sign taped to your crotch. Then
they turn it into a holy war, page one and all. No thanks. As far as I'm
concerned, they did me a favor. I don't want to make a career out of telling
people where gramps hid his stock certificates or who's going to win the fourth
at Scarborough Downs. Or take this lottery. “One of the things that had most
surprised Johnny on coming out of his coma was to discover that Maine and about
a dozen other states had instituted a legal numbers game. “In the last month
I've gotten sixteen letters from people who want me to tell them what the
number's going to be. It's insane. Even if I could tell them, which I couldn't,
what good would it do them? You can't pick your own number in the Maine
lottery, you get what they give you. But still I get the letters.”
“I don't see what
that has to do with this crappy article.
“If people think
I'm a phony, maybe they'll leave me alone.”
“Oh,” Herb said.
“Yeah, I see what you mean. “He lit his pipe. “You've never really been
comfortable with it, have you?”
“No,” Johnny
said. “We never talk much about it, either, which is something of a relief. It
seems like the only thing other people do want to talk about. “And it wasn't
just that they wanted to talk; that wouldn't have bothered him so much. But
when he was in Slocum's Store for a sixpack or a loaf of bread, the girl would
try to take his money without touching his hand, and the frightened, skittish
look in her eyes was unmistakable. His father's friends would give him a little
wave instead of a handshake. In October Herb had hired a local high school girl
to come in once a week to do some dusting and vacuum the floors. After three
weeks she had quit for no stated reason at all probably someone at her high
school had told her who she was cleaning for. It seemed that for everyone who
was anxious to be touched, to be informed, to be in contact with Johnny's
peculiar talent, there was another who regarded him as a kind of leper. At
times like these, Johnny would think of the nurses staring at him the day he
had told Eileen Magown that her house was on fire, staring at him like magpies
on a telephone wire. He would think of the way the TV reporter had drawn back
from him after the press conference's unexpected conclusion, agreeing with
everything he said but not wanting to be touched. Unhealthy either way.
“No, we don't
talk about it,” Herb agreed. “It makes me think of your mother, I suppose. She
was so sure you'd been given the... the whatever-it-is for some reason.
Sometimes I wonder if she wasn't right.”
Johnny shrugged.
“All I want is a normal life. I want to bury the whole damn thing. And if this
little squib helps me do it, so much the better.”
“But you still
can do it, can't you?” Herb asked. He was looking closely at his son.
Johnny thought
about a night not quite a week ago. They had gone out to dinner, a rare
happening on their strapped budget. They had gone to Cole's Farm in Gray,
probably the best restaurant in the area, a place that was always packed. The
night had been cold, the dining room cheery and warm. Johnny had taken his
father's coat and his own into the cloakroom, and as he thumbed through the
racked coats, looking for empty hangers, a whole series of clear impressions
had cascaded through his mind. It was like that sometimes, and on another
occasion he could have handled every coat for twenty minutes and gotten nothing
at all. Here was a lady's coat with a fur collar. She was having an affair with
one of her husband's poker buddies, was scared sick about it, but didn't know
how to close it off. A man's denim jacket, sheepskin-lined. This guy was also
worried—about his brother, who had been badly hurt on a construction project
the week before. A small boy's parka—his grandmother in Durham had given him a
Snoopy transistor radio just today and he was mad because his father hadn't let
him bring it into the dining room with him. And another one, a plain, black
topcoat, that had turned him cold with terror and robbed him of his appetite.
The man who owned this coat was going mad. So far he had kept up
appearances—not even his wife suspected—but his vision of the world was being
slowly darkened by a series of increasingly paranoid fantasies. Touching that
Coat had been
like touching a writhing coil of snakes.
“Yes, I can still
do it,” Johnny said briefly. “I wish to hell I couldn't.”
“You really mean
that?”
Johnny thought of
the plain, black topcoat. He had only picked at his meal, looking this way and
that, trying to single the man out of the crowd, unable to do so.
“Yes,” he said.
“I mean it.”
“Best forgotten then,”
Herb said, and clapped his son on the shoulder.
3.
And for the next
month or so it seemed that it would be forgotten. Johnny drove north to attend
a meeting at the high school for midyear teachers and to take a load of his
personal things up to his new apartment, which he found small but liveable.
He went in his
father's car, and as he was getting ready to leave Herb asked him, “You're not
nervous? About driving?”
Johnny shook his
head. Thoughts of the accident itself troubled him very little now. If
something was going to happen to him, it would. And deep down he felt confident
that lightning would not strike in the same place again—when he died, he didn't
believe it would be in a car accident.
In fact, the long
trip was quiet and soothing, the meeting a little bit like Old Home Week. All
of his old colleagues who were still teaching at CMHS dropped by to wish him
the best. But he couldn't help noticing how few of them actually shook hands
with him, and he seemed to sense a certain reserve, a wariness in their eyes.
Drivmg home, he convinced himself it was probably imagination. And if not,
well—even that had its amusing side. If they had read their Inside View, they
would know he was a hoax and nothing to worry about.
The meeting over,
there was nothing to do but go back to Pownal and wait for the Christmas
holidays to come and go. The packages containing personal objects stopped
coming, almost as if a switch had been thrown—the power of the press, Johnny
told his father. They were replaced by a brief spate of angry—and mostly
anonymous—letters and cards from people who seemed to feel personally cheated.
“You ort to burn
in H! E! L! L! for your slimey skeems to bilk this American Republic,” a
typical one read. It had been written on a crumpled sheet of Ramada Inn
stationery and was postmarked York, Pennsylvania. “You are nothing but a Con
Artist and a dirty rotten cheet. I bless God for that paper that saw thru you.
You Ort to be ashamed of yourself Sir. The Bible says an ordinery sinner will
be cast into the Lake of F!I!R!E! and be consomed but a F!A!L!S!E P!R!O!F!I!T!
shall burn forever and EVER! That's you a False Profit who sold your Immortal
Soul for a few cheep bucks. So thats the end of my letter and I hope for your
sake I never catch you ut on the Streets of your Home Town. Signed, A FRIEND
(of God not you Sir)!”
Over two dozen
letters in this approximate vein came in during the course of about twenty days
following the appearance of the inside View story. Several enterprising souls
expressed an interest in joining in with Johnny as partners. “I used to be a
magician's assistant,” one of these latter missives bragged, “and I could trick
an old whore out of her g-string. If you're planning a mentalist gig, you need
me in!”
Then the letters
dried up, as had the earlier influx of boxes and packages. On a day in late
November when he had checked the mailbox and found it empty for the third
afternoon in a row, Johnny walked back to the house remembering that Andy
Warhol had predicted that a day would come when everyone in America would be
famous for fifteen minutes. Apparently his fifteen minutes had come and gone,
and no one was any more pleased about it than he was.
But as things
turned out, it wasn't over yet.
4.
“Smith?” The
telephone voice asked. “John Smith?”
“Yes. “It wasn't
a voice he knew, or a wrong number. That made it something of a puzzle since
his father had had the phone unlisted about three months ago. This was December
17, and their tree stood in the corner of the living room, its base firmly
wedged into the old tree stand Herb had made when Johnny was just a kid.
Outside it was snowing.
“My name is
Bannerman. Sheriff George Bannerman, from Castle Rock. “He cleared his throat.
“I've got a well, I suppose you'd say I've got a proposal for you.
“How did you get
this number?”
Bannerman cleared
his throat again. “Well, I could have gotten it from the phone company, I
suppose, it being police business. But actually I got it from a friend of
yours. Doctor by the name of Weizak.”
“Sam Weizak gave
you my number?”
“That's right.”
Johnny sat down
in the phone nook, utterly perplexed. Now the name Bannerman meant something to
him. He had come across the name in a Sunday supplement article only recently.
He was the sheriff of Castle County, which was considerably west of Pownal, in
the Lakes region. Castle Rock was the county seat, about thirty miles from
Norway and twenty from Bridgton.
“Police
business?” he repeated.
“Well, I guess
you'd say so, ayuh. I was wondering if maybe the two of us could get together
for a cup of coffee
“It involves
Sam?”
“No. Dr. Weizak
has nothing to do with it,” Banner-man said. “He gave me a call and mentioned
your name. That was,.. oh, a month ago, at least. To be frank, I thought he was
nuts. But now we're just about at our wits” end.”
“About what? Mr.
—Sheriff—Bannerman, I don't understand what you're talking about.”
“It'd really be a
lot better if we could get together for coffee,” Bannerman said. “Maybe this
evening? There's a place called Jon's on the main drag in Bridgton. Sort of
halfway between your town and mine.”
“No, I'm sorry,”
Johnny said. “I'd have to know what it was about. And how come Sam never called
me?”
Bannerman sighed.
I guess you're a man who doesn't read the papers,” he said.
But that wasn't
true. He had read the papers compulsively since he had regained consciousness,
trying to pick up on the things he had missed. And he had seen Bannerman's name
just recently. Sure. Because Bannerman was on a pretty hot seat. He was the man
in charge of-Johnny held the phone away from his ear and looked at it with
sudden understanding. He looked at it the way a man might look at a snake he
has just realized is poisonous.
“Mr. Smith?” It
squawked tinnily. “Hello, Mr. Smith?”
“I'm here,”
Johnny said putting the phone back to his ear. He was conscious of a dull anger
at Sam Weizak, Sam who had told him to keep his head down only this summer, and
then had turned around and given this local-yokel sheriff an earful—behind
Johnny's back.
“It's that
strangling business, isn't it?”
Bannerman
hesitated a long time. Then he said, “Could we talk, Mr. Smith?”
“No. Absolutely
not. “The dull anger had ignited into sudden fury. Fury and something else. He
was scared.
“Mr. Smith, it's
important. Today...”
“No. I want to be
left alone. Besides, don't you read the goddam inside View? I'm a fake anyway.”
“Dr. Weizak
said...”
“He had no
business saying anything! “Johnny shouted. He was shaking all over. “Good-bye!”
He slammed the phone into its cradle and got out of the phone nook quickly, as
if that would prevent it from ringing again. He could feel a headache beginning
in his temples. Dull drill-bits. Maybe I should call his mother out there in
California, he thought. Tell her where her little sonny-buns is. Tell her to
get in touch. Tit for tat.
Instead he hunted
in the address book in the phone-table drawer, found Sam's office number in
Bangor, and called it. As soon as it rang once on the other end he hung up,
scared again. Why had Sam done that to him? Goddammit, why?
He found himself
looking at the Christmas tree.
Same old
decorations. They had dragged them down from the attic again and taken them out
of their tissue-paper cradles again and hung them up again, just two evenings
ago. It was a funny thing about Christmas decorations. There weren't many
things that remained intact year after year as a person grew up. Not many lines
of continuity, not many physical objects that could easily serve both the
states of childhood and adulthood. Your kid clothes were handed down or packed
off to the Salvation Army; your Donald Duck watch sprung its mainspring; your
Red Ryder cowboy boots wore out. The wallet you made in your first camp
handicrafts class got replaced by a Lord Buxton, and you traded your red wagon
and your bike for more adult toys—a car, a tennis racket, maybe one of those
new TV hockey games. There were only a few things you could hang onto. A few
books, maybe, or a lucky coin, or a stamp collection that had been preserved
and improved upon.
Add to that the
Christmas tree ornaments in your parents” house.
The same chipped
angels year after year, and the same tinsel star on top; the tough surviving
platoon of what had once been an entire battalion of glass balls (and we never
forget the honored dead, he thought—this one died as a result of a baby's
clutching hand, this one slipped as dad was putting it on and crashed to the
floor, the red one with the Star of Bethlehem painted on it was simply and
mysteriously broken one year when we took them down from the attic, and I
cried); the tree stand itself. But sometimes, Johnny thought, absently
massaging his temples, it seemed it would be better, more merciful, if you lost
touch with even these last vestiges of childhood. You could never discover the
books that had first turned you on in quite the same way. The lucky coin had
not protected you from any of the ordinary whips and scorns and scrapes of an
ordinary life. And when you looked at the ornaments you remembered that there
had once been a mother in the place to direct the tree-trimming operation,
always ready and willing to piss you off by saying “a little higher” or “a
little lower” or “I think you've got too much tinsel on that left side, dear.
“You looked at the ornaments and remembered that just the two of you had been
around to put them up this year, just the two of you because your mother went
crazy and then she died, but the fragile Christmas tree ornaments were still
here, still hanging around to decorate another tree taken from the small back woodlot
and didn't they say more people committed suicide around Christmas than at any
other time of the year? By God, it was no wonder.
What a power God
has given you, Johnny.
Sure, that's
right, God's a real prince. He knocked me through the windshield of a cab and I
broke my legs and spent five years or so in a coma and three people died. The
girl I loved got married. She had the son who should have been mine by a lawyer
who's breaking his ass to get to Washington so he can help run the big electric
train set. If I'm on my feet for more than a couple of hours at a time it feels
like somebody took a long splinter and rammed it straight up my leg to my
balls. God's a real sport. He's such a sport that he fixed up a funny
comic-opera world where a bunch of glass Christmas tree globes could outlive
you. Neat world, and a really first-class God in charge of it. He must have
been on our side during Vietnam, because that's the way he's been running
things ever since time began.
He has a job for
you, Johnny.
Bailing some
half-assed country cop out of a jam so he can get re-elected next year.
Don't run from
him, Johnny. Don't hide away in a cave.
He rubbed his
temples. Outside, the wind was rising. He hoped dad would be careful coming
home from work.
Johnny got up and
pulled on a heavy sweatshirt. He went out into the shed, watching his breath
frost the air ahead of him. To the left was a large pile of wood he had split
in the autumn just past, all of it cut into neat Stove lengths. Next to it was
a box of kindling, and be-side that was a stack of old newspapers. He squatted
down and began to thumb through them. His hands went numb quickly but he kept
going, and eventually he came to the one he was looking for. The Sunday paper
from three weeks ago.
He took it into
the house, slapped it down on the kitchen table, and began to root through it.
He found the article he was looking for in the features section and sat down to
reread it.
The article was
accompanied by several photos, one of them showing an old woman locking a door,
another showing a police car cruising a nearly deserted street, two others
showing a couple of businesses that were nearly deserted. The headline read:
THE HUNT FOR THE CASTLE ROCK STRANGLER GOES ON... AND
ON.
Five years ago, according
to the story, a young woman named Alma Frechette who worked at a local
restaurant had been raped and strangled on her way home from work. A joint
investigation of the crime had been conducted by the state attorney general's
office and the Castle County sheriff's department. The result had been a total
zero. A year later an elderly woman, also raped and strangled, had been
discovered in her tiny third-floor apartment on Carbine Street in Castle Rock.
A month later the killer had struck again; this time the victim had been a
bright young junior high school girl.
There had been a
more intensive investigation. The investigative facilities of the FBI had been
utilized, all to no result. The following November Sheriff Carl M. Kelso, who
had been the county's chief law officer since approximately the days of the
Civil War, had been voted out and George Bannerman had been voted in, largely
on an aggressive campaign to catch the “Castle Rock Strangler”.
Two years passed.
The strangler had not been apprehended, but no further murders occurred,
either. Then, last January, the body of seventeen-year-old Carol Dunbarger had
been found by two small boys. The Dunbarger girl had been reported as a missing
person by her parents. She had been in and out of trouble at Castle Rock High
School where she had a record of chronic tardiness and truancy, she had been
busted twice for shop-lifting, and had run away once before, getting as far as
Boston. Both Bannerman and the state police assumed she had been thumbing a
ride—and the killer had picked her up. A midwinter thaw had uncovered her body
near Strimmer's Brook, where two small boys had found it. The state medical
examiner said she had been dead about two months.
Then, this
November 2, there had been yet another murder. The victim was a well-liked
Castle Rock grammar school teacher named Etta Ringgold. She was a lifetime
member of the local Methodist church, holder of an M. B. S. in elementary
education, and prominent in local charities. She had been fond of the works of Robert
Browning, and her body had been found stuffed into a culvert that ran beneath
an unpaved secondary road. The uproar over the murder of Miss Ringgold had
rumbled over all of northern New England. Comparisons to Albert DeSalvo, the
Boston Strangler, were made -comparisons that did nothing to pour oil on the
troubled waters. William Loeb's Union-Leader in not-so distant Manchester, New
Hampshire, had published a helpful editorial titled THE DO-NOTHING COPS IN OUR
SISTER STATE.
This Sunday
supplement article, now nearly six weeks old and smelling pungently of shed and
woodbox, quoted two local psychiatrists who had been perfectly happy to
blue-sky the situation as long as their names weren't printed. One of them
mentioned a particular sexual aberration—the urge to commit some violent act at
the moment of orgasm. Nice, Johnny thought, grimacing. He strangled them to
death as he came. His headache was getting worse all the time.
The other shrink
pointed out the fact that all five murders had been committed in late fall or
early winter. And while the manic-depressive personality didn't con-form to any
one set pattern, it was fairly common for such a person to have mood-swings
closely paralleling the change of the seasons. He might have a “low” lasting
from mid-April until about the end of August and then begin to climb, “peaking”
at around the time of the murders.
During the manic
or “up” state, the person in question was apt to be highly sexed, active,
daring, and optimistic. “He would be likely to believe the police unable to
catch him,” the unnamed psychiatrist had finished. The article concluded by
saying that, so far, the person in question had been right.
Johnny put the
paper down, glanced at the clock, and saw his father should be home almost
anytime, unless the snow was holding him up. He took the old newspaper over to
the wood stove and poked it into the firebox.
Not my business.
Goddam Sam Weizak anyway.
Don't hide away
in a cave, Johnny.
He wasn't hiding
away in a cave, that wasn't it at all. It just so happened that he'd had a
fairly tough break. Losing a big chunk of your life, that qualified you for
tough-break status, didn't it?
And all the
self-pity you can guzzle?
“Fuck you,” he
muttered to himself. He went to the window and looked out. Nothing to see but
snow falling in heavy, wind-driven lines. He hoped dad was being careful, but
he also hoped his father would show up soon and put an end to this useless
rat-run of introspection. He went over to the telephone again and stood there,
undecided.
Self-pity or not,
he had lost a goodish chunk of his life. His prime, if you wanted to put it
that way. He had worked hard to get back. Didn't he deserve some ordinary
privacy? Didn't he have a right to what he had just been thinking of a few
minutes ago—an ordinary life?
There is no such
thing, my man.
Maybe not, but
there was such a thing as an abnormal life. That thing at Cole's Farm. Feeling
people's clothes and suddenly knowing their little dreads, small secrets, petty
triumphs—that was abnormal. It wasn't a talent, it was a curse.
Suppose he did
meet this sheriff? There was no guarantee he could tell him a thing. And
suppose he could? Just suppose he could hand him his killer on a silver
platter? It would be the hospital press conference all over again, a three-ring
circus raised to the grisly nth power.
A little song
began to run maddeningly through his aching head, little more than a jingle,
really. A Sunday. school song from his early childhood: This little light of
mine... I'm gonna let it shine... this little light of mine... I'm gonna let it
shine... let it shine, shine, shine, let it shine...
He picked up the
phone and dialed Weizak's office number. Safe enough now, after five. Weizak
would have gone home, and big-deal neurologists don't list their home phones.
The phone rang six or seven times and Johnny was going to put it down when it
was answered and Sam himself said, “Hi? Hello?”
“Sam?”
“John Smith?” The
pleasure in Sam's voice was Unmistakable—but was there also an undercurrent of
unease in it.
“Yeah, it's me.”
“How do you like
this snow?” Weizak said, maybe a little heartily. “Is it snowing where you
are?”
“It's snowing.”
“Just started
here about an hour ago. They say John? Is it the sheriff? Is that why you sound
so cold?”
“Well, he called
me,” Johnny said, “and I've been sort of wondering what happened. Why you gave
him my name?
Why you didn't
call me and say you had... and why you didn't call me first and ask if you
could.”
Weizak sighed.
“Johnny, I could maybe give you a lie, but that would be no good. I didn't ask
you first because I was afraid you would say no. And I didn't tell you I'd done
it afterward because the sheriff laughed at me. When someone laughs at one of
my suggestions, I assume, nub, that the suggestion is not going to be taken.”
Johnny rubbed at
one aching temple with his free hand and closed his eyes. “But why, Sam? You
know how I feel about that. You were the one who told me to keep my head down
and let it blow over. You told me that yourself.”
“It was the piece
in the paper,” Sam said. “I said to myself, Johnny lives down that way. And I
said to myself, five dead women. Five. “His voice was slow, halting, and
embarrassed. It made Johnny feel much worse to hear Sam sounding like this. He
wished he hadn't called.
“Two of them
teenage girls. A young mother. A teacher of young children who loved Browning.
All of it so corny, nuh? So corny I suppose they would never make a movie or a
TV show out of it. But nonetheless true. It was the teacher I thought about
most. Stuffed into a culvert like a bag of garbage...
“You had no damn
right to bring me into your guilt fantasies,” Johnny said thickly.
“No, perhaps
not.”
“No perhaps about
it!”
“Johnny, are you
all right? You sound...”
“I'm fine!
“Johnny shouted.
“You don't sound
fine.”
“I've got a
shitter of a headache, is that so surprising? I wish to Christ you'd left this
alone. When I told you about your mother you didn't call her. Because you
said...”
“I said some
things are better lost than found. But that is not always true, Johnny. This
man, whoever he is, has a terribly disturbed personality. He may kill himself.
I am sure that when he stopped for two years the police thought he had. But a
manicdepressive sometimes has long level periods—it is called a “plateau of
normality” -and then goes back to the same mood-swings. He may have killed
himself after murdering that teacher last month. But if he hasn't, what then?
He may kill another one. Or two. Or four. Or...”
“Stop it.”
Sam said, “Why
did Sheriff Bannerman call you? What made him change his mind?”
“I don't know. I
suppose the voters are after him.”
“I'm sorry I
called him, Johnny, and that this has u~ set you so. But even more I am sorry
that I did not call you and tell you what I had done. I was wrong. God knows
you have a right to live your life quietly.”
Hearing his own
thoughts echoed did not make him feel better. Instead he felt more miserable
and guilty than ever.
“All right,” he
said. “That's okay, Sam.”
“I'll not say
anything to anyone again. I suppose that is like putting a new lock on the barn
door after a horse theft, but it's all I can say. I was indiscreet. In a
doctor, that's bad.”
“All right,”
Johnny said again. He felt helpless, and the slow embarrassment with which Sam
spoke made it worse.
“I'll see you soon?”
“I'll be up in
Cleaves next month to start teaching. I'll drop by.”
“Good. Again, my
sincere apologies, John.”
Stop saying that!
They said their
good-byes and Johnny hung up, wishing he hadn't called at all. Maybe he hadn't
wanted Sam to agree so readily that what he had done was wrong. Maybe what he
had really wanted Sam to say was, Sure l called him. I wanted you to get off
your ass and do something.
He wandered
across to the window and looked out into the blowing darkness. Stuffed into a
culvert like a bag of garbage
.
God, how his head
ached.
5.
Herb got home
half an hour later, took one look at Johnny's white face and said, “Headache?”
“Yeah.”
“Bad?”
“Not too bad.”
“We want to watch
the national news,” Herb said. “Glad I got home in time. Bunch of people from
NBC were over in Castle Rock this afternoon, filming. That lady reporter you
think is so pretty was there. Cassie Mackin.”
He blinked at the
way Johnny turned on him. For a moment it seemed that Johnny's face was all
eyes, staring out at him and full of a nearly inhuman pain.
“Castle Rock?
Another murder?”
“Yeah. They found
a little girl on the town common this morning. Saddest damn thing you ever
heard of. I guess she had a pass to go across the common to the library for
some project she was working on. She got to the library but she never got
back... Johnny, you look terrible, boy.
“How old was
she?”
“Just nine,” Herb
said. “A man who'd do a thing like that should be strung up by the balls.
That's my view on it.”
“Nine,” Johnny
said, and sat down heavily. “Stone the crows.
“Johnny, you sure
you feel okay? You're white as paper.
“Fine. Turn on
the news.”
Shortly, John
Chancellor was in front of them, bearing his nightly satchel of political
aspirations (Fred Harris's campaign was not catching much fire), government
edicts (the cities of America would just have to learn common budgetary sense,
according to President Ford), international incidents (a nationwide strike in
France), the Dow Jones (up), and a “heartwarming” piece about a boy with
cerebral palsy who was raising a 4-H cow.
“Maybe they cut
it,” Herb said.
But after a
commercial, Chancellor said: “In western Maine, there's a townful of
frightened, angry people tonight. The town is Castle Rock, and over the last
five years there have been five nasty murders—five women ranging in age from
seventy-one to fourteen have been raped and strangled. Today there was a sixth
murder in Castle Rock, and the victim was a nine-year-old girl. Catherine
Mackin is in Castle Rock with the story.”
And there she
was, looking like a figment of make-believe carefully superimposed on a real
setting. She was standing across from the Town Office Building. The first of
that afternoon's snow which had developed into tonight's blizzard was powdering
the shoulders of her coat and her blonde hair.
“A sense of
quietly mounting hysteria lies over this small New England mill town this
afternoon,” she began. “The townspeople of Castle Rock have been nervous for a long
time over the unknown person the local press calls “the Castle Rock Strangler”
or sometimes “the November Killer”. That nervousness has changed to terror—no
one here thinks that word is too strong—following the discovery of Mary Kate
Hendrasen's body on the town common, not far from the bandstand where the body
of the November Killer's first victim, a waitress named Alma Frechette, was
discovered.”
A long panning
shot of the town common, looking bleak and dead in the falling snow. This was
replaced with a school photograph of Mary Kate Hendrasen, grinning brashly
through a heavy set of braces. Her hair was a fine white-blonde. Her dress was
an electric blue. Most likely her best dress, Johnny thought sickly. Her mother
put her into her best dress for her school photo.
The report went
on—now they were recapitulating the past murders—but Johnny was on the phone,
first to directory assistance and then to the Castle Rock town offices. He
dialed slowly, his head thudding.
Herb came out of
the living room and looked at him curiously. “Who are you calling, son?”
Johnny shook his
head and listened to the phone ring on the other end. It was picked up. “Castle
County sheriff's office.
“I'd like to talk
to Sheriff Bannerman, please.”
“Could I have
your name?”
“John Smith, from
Pownal.”
“Hold on,
please.”
Johnny turned to
look at the TV and saw Bannerman as he had been that afternoon, bundled up in a
heavy parka with county sheriff patches on the shoulders. He looked
uncomfortable and dogged as he fielded the reporters” questions. He was a
broad-shouldered man with a big, sloping head capped with curly dark hair. The
rimless glasses he wore looked strangely out of place, as spectacles always
seem to look out of place on very big men.
“We're following up
a number of leads,” Bannerman said.
“Hello? Mr.
Smith?” Bannerman said.
Again that queer
sense of doubling. Bannerman was in two places at one time. Two times at one
time, if you wanted to look at it that way. Johnny felt an instant of helpless
vertigo. He felt the way, God help him, you felt on one of those cheap carnival
rides, the Tilt-A-Whirl or the Crack-The-Whip.
“Mr. Smith? Are
you there, man?”
“Yes, I'm here.
“He swallowed. “I've changed my mind.”
“Good boy! I'm
damned glad to hear it.”
“I still may not
be able to help you, you know.
“I know that.
But... no venture, no gain. “Bannerman cleared his throat. “They'd run me out
of this town on a rail if they knew I was down to consulting a psychic.”
Johnny's face was
touched with a ghost of a grin. “And a discredited psychic, at that.”
“Do you know
where Jon's in Bridgton is?”
“I can find it.”
“Can you meet me
there at eight o'clock?”
“Yes, I think
so.”
“Thank you, Mr.
Smith.”
“All right.”
He hung up. Herb
was watching him closely. Behind him, the “Nightly News” credits were rolling.
“He called you
earlier, huh?”
“Yeah, he did.
Sam Weizak told him I might be able to help.”
“Do you think you
can?”
“I don't know,”
Johnny said, “but my headache feels a little better.”
6.
He was fifteen
minutes late getting to Jon's Restaurant in Bridgton; it seemed to be the only
business establishment on Bridgton's main drag that was still open. The plows
were falling behind the snow, and there were drifts across the road in several
places. At the junction of Routes 3O2 and 117, the blinker light swayed back
and forth in the screaming wind. A police cruiser with CASTLE COUNTY SHERIFF in
gold leaf on the door was parked in front of Jon's. He parked behind it and
went inside.
Bannerman was
sitting at a table in front of a cup of coffee and a bowl of chili. The TV had
misled. He wasn't a big man; he was a huge man. Johnny walked over and
introduced himself.
Bannerman stood
up and shook the offered hand. Looking at Johnny's white, strained face and the
way his thin body seemed to float inside his Navy pea jacket, Bannerman's first
thought was: This guy is sick—he's maybe not going to live too long. Only
Johnny's eyes seemed to have any real life—they were a direct, piercing blue,
and they fixed firmly on Bannerman's own with sharp, honest curiosity. And when
their hands clasped, Bannerman felt a peculiar kind of surprise, a sensation he
would later describe as a draining. It was a little like getting a shock from a
bare electrical wire. Then it was gone.
“Glad you could
come,” Bannerman said. “Coffee?”
“Yes.”
“How about a bowl
of chili? They make a great damn chili here. I'm not supposed to eat it because
of my ulcer, but I do anyway. “He saw the look of surprise on Johnny's face and
smiled. “I know, it doesn't seem right, a great big guy like me having an
ulcer, does it?”
“I guess anyone
can get one.
“You're damn
tooting,” Bannerman said. “What changed your mind?”
“It was the news.
The little girl. Are you sure it was the same guy?”
“It was the same
guy. Same M. O. And the same sperm type.
He watched
Johnny's face as the waitress came over. “Coffee?” she asked.
“Tea,” Johnny
said.
“And bring him a
bowl of chili, Miss,” Bannerman said. When the waitress had gone he said, “This
doctor, he says that if you touch something, sometimes you get ideas about
where it came from, who might have owned it, that sort of thing.”
Johnny smiled.
“Well,” he said, “I just shook your hand and I know you've got an Irish setter
named Rusty. And I know he's old and going blind and you think it's time he was
put to sleep, but you don't know how you'd explain it to your girl.”
Bannerman dropped
his spoon back into his chili -plop. He stared at Johnny with his mouth open.
“By God,” he said. “You got that from me? Just now?”
Johnny nodded.
Bannerman shook
his head and muttered, “It's one thing to hear something like that and another
to... doesn't it tire you out?”
Johnny looked at
Bannerman, surprised. It was a question he had never been asked before. “Yes.
Yes, it does.”
“But you knew.
I'll be damned.”
“But look,
Sheriff.”
“George. Just
plain George.”
“Okay, I'm
Johnny, just plain Johnny. George, what I don't know about you would fill about
five books. I don't know where you grew up or where you went to police school
or who your friends are or where you live. I know you've got a little girl, and
her name's something like Cathy, but that's not quite it I. don't know what
you; did last week or what beer you favor or what your favorite TV program is.
“My daughter's
name is Katrina,” Bannerman said softly. “She's nine, too. She was in Mary
Kate's class.”
“What I'm trying
to say is that the... the knowing is sometimes a pretty limited thing. Because
of the dead zone.”
“Dead zone?”
“It's like some
of the signals don't conduct,” Johnny said. “I can never get streets or
addresses. Numbers are hard but they sometimes come. “The waitress returned
with Johnny's tea and chili. He tasted the chili and nodded at Bannerman.
“You're right. It's good. Especially on a night like this.”
“Go to it,”
Bannerman said. “Man, I love good chili. My ulcer hollers bloody hell about it.
Fuck you, ulcer, I say. Down the hatch.”
They were quiet
for a moment. Johnny worked on his chili and Bannerman watched him curiously.
He sup-posed Smith could have found out he had a dog named Rusty. He even could
have found out that Rusty was old and nearly blind. Take it a step farther: if
he knew Katrina's name, he might have done that “something like Cathy but
that's not quite it” routine just to add the right touch of hesitant realism.
But why? And none of that explained that queer, zapped feeling he'd gotten in
his head when Smith touched his hand. If it was a con, it was a damned good
one.
Outside, the wind
gusted to a low shriek that seemed to rock the small building on its
foundations. A flying veil of snow lashed the Pondicherry Bowling Lanes across
the street.
“Listen to that,”
Bannerman said. “Supposed to keep up all night. Don't tell me the winters're
getting milder.”
“Have you got
something?” Johnny asked. “Something that belonged to the guy you're looking
for?”
“We think we
might,” Bannerman said, and then shook his head. “But it's pretty thin,”
“Tell me.”
Bannerman laid it
out for him. The grammar school and the library sat facing each other across
the town common. It was standard operating procedure to send students across
when they needed a book for a project or a report. The teacher gave them a pass
and the librarian initialed it before sending them back. Near the center of the
common, the land dipped slightly. On the west side of the dip was the town
bandstand. In the dip itself were two dozen benches where people sat during
band concerts and football rallies in the fall.
“We think he just
sat himself down and waited for a kid to come along. He would have been out of
sight from both sides of the common. But the footpath runs along the north side
of the dip, close to those benches.”
Bannerman shook
his head slowly.
“What makes it
worse is that the Frechette woman was killed right on the bandstand. I am going
to face a shit-storm about that at town meeting in March—that is, if I'm still
around in March. Well, I can show them a memo I wrote to the town manager,
requesting adult crossing guards on the common during school hours. Not that it
was this killer that I was worried about, Christ, no. Never in my wildest
dreams did I think he'd go back to the same spot a second time.”
“The town manager
turned down the crossing guards?”
“Not enough
money,” Bannerman said. “Of course, he can spread the blame around to the town
selectmen, and they'll try to spread it back on me, and the grass will grow on
Mary Kate Hendrasen's grave and... “He paused for a moment, or perhaps choked
on what he was saying. Johnny gazed at his lowered head sympathetically.
“It might not
have made any difference anyhow,” Bannerman went on in a dryer voice. “Most of
the crossing guards we use are women, and this fuck we're after doesn't seem to
care how old or young they are.”
“But you think he
waited on one of those benches?”
Bannerman did.
They had found an even dozen fresh cigarette butts near the end of one of the
benches, and four more behind the bandstand itself, along with an empty box.
Marlboros, unfortunately—the second or third most popular brand in the country.
The cellophane on the box had been dusted for prints and had yielded none at
all.
“None at all?”
Johnny said. “That's a little funny, isn't it?”
“Why do you say
so?”
“Well, you'd
guess the killer was wearing gloves even if he wasn't thinking about prints—it
was cold out -, but you'd think the guy that sold him the cigarettes...
Bannerman
grinned. “You've got a head for this work,” he said, “but you're not a smoker.”
“No,” Johnny
said. “I used to smoke a few cigarettes when I was in college, but I lost the
habit after my accident.
“A man keeps his
cigarettes in his breast pocket. Take them out, get a cigarette, put the pack
back. If you're wearing gloves and not leaving fresh prints every time you get
a butt, what you're doing is polishing that cellophane wrapper? Get it? And you
missed one other thing, Johnny. Need me to tell you?”
Johnny thought it
over and then said, “Maybe the pack of cigarettes came out of a carton. And
those cartons are packed by machine.”
“That's it,”
Bannerman said. “You are good at this.”
“What about the
tax stamp on the package?”
“Maine,”
Bannerman said.
“So if the killer
and the smoker were the same man... Johnny said thoughtfully.
Bannerman
shrugged. “Sure, there's the technical possibility that they weren't. But I've
tried to imagine who else would want to sit on a bench in the town common on a
cold, cloudy winter morning long enough to smoke twelve or sixteen cigarettes,
and I come up a blank.”
Johnny sipped his
tea. “None of the other kids that crossed saw anything?”
“Nothing,”
Bannerman said. “I've talked to every kid that had a library pass this
morning.”
“That's a lot
weirder than the fingerprint business. Doesn't it strike you that way?”
“It strikes me as
goddam scary. Look, the guy is sitting there, and what he's waiting for is one
kid one girl—by herself. He can hear the kids as they come along. And each time
he fades back behind the bandstand...”
“Tracks,” Johnny
said.
“Not this
morning. There was no snow-cover this morning. Just frozen ground. So here's
this crazy shitbag that ought to have his own testicles carved off and served
to him for dinner, here he is, skulking behind the bandstand. At about 8: 50 A.
M., Peter Harrington and Melissa Loggins come along. School has been in session
about twenty minutes at that time. When they're gone, he goes back to his
bench. At 9: i5 he fades back behind the bandstand again. This time it's two
little girls, Susan Flarhaty and Katrina Bannerman.”
Johnny set his
mug down with a bang. Bannerman had taken off his spectacles and was polishing
them savagely.
“Your daughter
crossed this morning? Jesus!”
Bannerman put his
glasses on again. His face was dark and dull with fury. And he's afraid, Johnny
saw. Not afraid that the voters would turn him out, or that the Union-Leader
would publish another editorial about nitwit cops in western Maine, but afraid
because, if his daughter had happened to go to the library alone this morning
“My daughter,” Bannerman
agreed softly. “I think she passed within forty feet of that... that animal.
You know what that makes me feel like?”
“I can guess,”
Johnny said.
“No, I don't
think you can. It makes me feel like I almost stepped into an empty elevator
shaft. Like I passed up the mushrooms at dinner and someone else died of
toadstool poisoning. And it makes me feel dirty. It makes me feel filthy. I
guess maybe it also explains why I finally called you. I'd do anything right
now to nail this guy. Anything at all.”
Outside, a giant
orange plow loomed out of the snow like something from a horror movie. It
parked and two men got out. They crossed the street to Jon's and sat at the
counter. Johnny finished his tea. He no longer wanted the chili.
“This guy goes
back to his bench,” Bannerman resumed, “but not for long. Around 9:25 he hears
the Harrington boy and the Loggins girl coming back from the library. So he
goes back behind the bandstand again. It must have been around 9:25 because the
librarian signed them out at 9:18. At 9:45 three boys from the fifth grade went
past the bandstand on their way to the library. One of them thinks he might
have seen “some guy” standing on the other side of the bandstand. That's our
whole description. “Some guy.” We ought to put it out on the wire, what do you
think? Be on the lookout for some guy.
Bannerman uttered
a short laugh like a bark.
“At 9:55 my
daughter and her friend Susan go by on their way back to school. Then, about
10:05, Mary Kate Hendrasen came along... by herself. Katrina and Sue met her
going down the school steps as they were going up. They all said hi.”
“Dear God,”
Johnny muttered. He ran his hands through his hair.
“Last of all,
10:20 A. M. The three fifth-grade boys are coming back. One of them sees
something on the bandstand. It's Mary Kate, with her leotard and her underpants
yanked down, blood all over her legs, her face—” her face—-”
“Take it easy,”
Johnny said, and put a hand on Banner-man's arm.
“No, I can't take
it easy,” Bannerman said. He spoke almost apologetically. “I've never seen
anything like that, not in eighteen years of police work. He raped that little
girl and that would have been enough—enough to, you know, kill her—the medical
examiner said the way he did it—he ruptured something and it—yeah, it probably
would have, well—killed her—but then he had to go on and choke her. Nine years
old and choked and left—left on the bandstand with her underpants pulled down.”
Suddenly
Bannerman began to cry. The tears filled his eyes behind his glasses and then
rolled down his face in two streams. At the counter the two guys from the
Bridgton road crew were talking about the Superbowl. Bannerman took his glasses
off again and mopped his face with his handkerchief. His shoulders shook and
heaved. Johnny waited, stirring his chili aimlessly.
After a little
while, Bannerman put his handkerchief away. His eyes were red, and Johnny
thought how oddly naked his face looked without his glasses.
“I'm sorry, man,”
he said. “It's been a very long day.”
“It's all right,”
Johnny said.
“I knew I was
going to do that, but I thought I could hold on until I got home to my wife.”
“Well, I guess
that was just too long to wait.”
“You're a
sympathetic ear. “Bannerman slipped his glasses back on. “No, you're more than
that. You've got something. I'll be damned if I know just what it is, but it's
something.”
“What else have
you got to go on?”
“Nothing. I'm
taking most of the heat, but the state police haven't exactly distinguished
themselves. Neither has the attorney general's special investigator, or our pet
FBI man. The county M. E. has been able to type the sperm, but that's no good
to us at this stage of the game. The thing that bothers me the most is the lack
of hair or skin under the victim's fingernails. They all must have struggled, but
we don't have as much as a centimeter of skin. The devil must be on this guy's
side. He hasn't dropped a button or a shopping list or left a single damn
track. We got a shrink from Augusta, also courtesy of the state A. G., and he
tells us all these guys give themselves away sooner or later. Some comfort.
What if it's later -say about twelve bodies from now?”
“The cigarette
pack is in Castle Rock?”
“Yes.”
Johnny stood up.
“Well, let's take a ride.”
“My car?”
Johnny smiled a
little as the wind rose, shrieking, outside. “On a night like this, it pays to
be with a policeman, he said.
7.
The snowstorm was
at its height and it took them an hour and a half to get over to Castle Rock in
Bannerman's cruiser. It was twenty past ten when they came in through the foyer
of the Town Office Building and stamped the snow off their boots.
There were half a
dozen reporters in the lobby, most of them sitting on a bench under a gruesome
oil portrait of some town founding father, telling each other about previous
night watches. They were up and surrounding Bannerman and Johnny in no time.
“Sheriff
Bannerman, is it true there has been a break in the case?”
“I have nothing
for you at this time,” Bannerman said stolidly.
“There's been a
rumor that you've taken a man from Oxford into custody, Sheriff, is that true?”
“No. If you folks
will pardon us...
But their
attention had turned to Johnny, and he felt a sinking sensation in his belly as
he recognized at least two faces from the press conference at the hospital.
“Holy God!” one
of them exclaimed. “You're John Smith, aren't you?”
Johnny felt a
crazy urge to take the fifth like a gangster at a Senate committee hearing.
“Yes,” he said.
“That's me.”
“The psychic
guy?” another asked.
“Look, let us
pass!” Bannerman said, raising his voice. “Haven't you guys got anything better
to do than—”
“According to
Inside View, you're a fake,” a young man in a heavy topcoat said. “Is that
true?”
“All I can say
about that is Inside View prints what they want,” Johnny said. “Look, really—”
“You're denying
the Inside View story?”
“Look, I really
can't say anything more.”
As they went
through the frosted glass door and into the sheriff's office, the reporters
were racing toward the two pay phones on the wall by the dog warden's office.
“Now the shit has
truly hit the fan,” Bannerman said unhappily. “I swear before God I never
thought they'd still be here on a night like this. I should have brought you in
the back.”
“Oh, didn't you
know?” Johnny asked bitterly. “We love the publicity. All of us psychics are in
it for the publicity.”
“No, I don't
believe that,” Bannerman said. “At least not of you. Well, it's happened. Can't
be helped now.”
But in his mind,
Johnny could visualize the headlines:
a little extra
seasoning in a pot of stew that was already bubbling briskly. CASTLE ROCK
SHERIFF DEPUTIZES LOCAL PSYCHIC IN STRANGLER CASE. “NOVEMBER KILLER” TO BE
INVESTIGATED BY SEER. HOAX ADMISSION STORY A FABRICATION, SMITH PROTESTS.
There were two
deputies in the outer office, one of them snoozing, the other drinking coffee
and looking glumly through a pile of reports.
“His wife kick
him out or something?” Bannerman asked sourly, nodding toward the sleeper.
“He just got back
from Augusta,” the deputy said. He was little more than a kid himself, and
there were dark circles of weariness under his eyes. He glanced over at Johnny
curiously.
“Johnny Smith,
Frank Dodd. Sleeping beauty over there is Roscoe Fisher.”
Johnny nodded
hello.
“Roscoe says the
A. G. wants the whole case,” Dodd told Bannerman. His look was angry and
defiant and somehow pathetic. “Some Christmas present, huh?”
Bannerman put a
hand on the back of Dodd's neck and shook him gently. “You worry too much,
Frank. Also, you're spending too much time on the case.”
“I just keep
thinking there must be something in these reports... “He shrugged and then
flicked them with one finger. “Something.”
“Go home and get some
rest, Frank. And take sleeping beauty with you. All we need is for one of those
photographers to get a picture of him. They'd run it in the papers with a
caption like “In Castle Rock the Intensive Investigation Goes On,” and we'd all
be out sweeping streets.”
Bannerman led
Johnny into his private office. The desk was awash in paperwork. On the
windowsill was a triptych showing Bannerman, his wife, and his daughter
Katrina. His degree hung neatly framed on the wall, and beside it, in another
frame, the front page of the Castle Rock Call which had announced his election.
“Coffee?”
Bannerman asked him, unlocking a file cabinet.
“No thanks. I'll
stick to tea.”
“Mrs. Sugarman
guards her tea jealously,” Bannerman said. “Takes it home with her every day,
sorry. I'd offer you a tonic, but we'd have to run the gauntlet out there again
to get to the machine. Jesus Christ, I wish they'd go home.”
“That's okay.”
Bannerman came
back with a small clasp envelope. “This is it,” he said. He hesitated for a
moment, then handed the envelope over.
Johnny held it
but did not immediately open it. “As long as you understand that nothing comes
guaranteed. I can't promise. Sometimes I can and sometimes I can't.”
Bannerman
shrugged tiredly and repeated: “No venture, no gain.”
Johnny undid the
clasp and shook an empty Marlboro cigarette box out into his hand. Red and
white box. He held it in his left hand and looked at the far wall. Gray wall.
Industrial gray wall. Red and white box. Industrial gray box. He put the
cigarette package in his other hand, then cupped it in both. He waited for
something, anything to come. Nothing did. He held it longer, hoping against
hope, ignoring the knowledge that when things come, they came at once.
At last he handed
the cigarette box back. “I'm sorry,” he said.
“No soap, huh?”
“No.”
There was a
perfunctory tap at the door and Roscoe Fisher stuck his head in. He looked a
bit shamefaced. “Frank and I are going home, George. I guess you caught me
coopin.”
“As long as I
don't catch you doing it in your cruiser,” Bannerman said. “Say hi to Deenie
for me.”
“You bet. “Fisher
glanced at Johnny for a moment and then closed the door.
“Well,” Bannerman
said. “It was worth the try, I guess. I'll run you back...”
“I want to go
over to the common,” Johnny said abruptly.
“No, that's no
good. It's under a foot of snow.”
“You can find the
place, can't you?”
“Of course I can.
But what'll it gain?”
“I don't know.
But let's go across.”
“Those reporters
are going to follow us, Johnny. Just as sure as God made little fishes.”
“You said
something about a back door.”
“Yeah, but it's a
fire door. Getting in that way is okay, but if we use it to go out, the alarm
goes off.”
Johnny whistled
through his teeth. “Let them follow along, then.”
Bannerman looked
at him thoughtfully, for several moments and then nodded. “Okay.”
8.
When they came
out of the office, the reporters were up and surrounding them immediately.
Johnny was reminded of a rundown kennel over in Durham where a strange old woman
kept collies. The dogs would all runout at you when you went past with your
fishing pole, yapping and snarling and generally scaring the hell out of you.
They would nip but not actually bite.
“Do you know who
did it, Johnny?” “Have any ideas at all?”
“Got any
brainwaves, Mr. Smith?”
“Sheriff, was
calling in a psychic your idea?”
“Do the state
police and the A. G. “s office know about this development, Sheriff Bannerman?”
“Do you think you
can break the case, Johnny?”
“Sheriff, have
you deputized this guy?”
Bannerman pushed
his way slowly and solidly through them, zipping his coat. “No comment, no
comment. “Johnny said nothing at all.
The reporters
clustered in the foyer as Johnny and Bannerman went down the snowy steps. It
wasn't until they bypassed the cruiser and began wading across the street that
one of them realized they were going to the common. Several of them ran back
for their topcoats. Those who had been dressed for outside when Banner-man and
Johnny emerged from the office now floundered down the Town Office steps after
them, calling like children.
9.
Flashlights
bobbing in the snowy dark. The wind howled, blowing snow past them this way and
that in errant sheets.
“You're not gonna
be able to see a damn thing,” Bannerman said. “You w... holy shit!” He was
almost knocked off his feet as a reporter in a bulky overcoat and a bizarre tam
o'shanter sprawled into him.
“Sorry, Sheriff,”
he said sheepishly. “Slippery. Forgot my galoshes.”
Up ahead a yellow
length of nylon rope appeared out of the gloom. Attached to it was a wildly
swinging sign reading POLICE INVESTIGATION.
“You forgot your
brains, too,” Bannerman said. “Noyou keep back, all of you! Keep right back!”
“Town common's
public property, Sheriff!” one of the reporters cried.
“That's right,
and this is police business. You stay be-hind this rope here or you'll spend
the night in my holding cell.”
With the beam of
his flashlight he traced the course of the rope for them and then held it up so
Johnny could pass beneath. They walked down the slope toward the snow-mounded
shapes of the benches. Behind them the reporters gathered at the rope, pooling
their few lights so that Johnny and George Bannerman walked in a dull sort of
spotlight,
“Flying blind,”
Bannerman said.
“Well, there's
nothing to see, anyway,” Johnny said. “Is there?”
“No, not now. I
told Frank he could take that rope down anytime. Now I'm glad he didn't get
around to it. You want to go over to the bandstand?”
“Not yet. Show me
where the cigarette butts were. “They went on a little farther and then
Bannerman stopped. “Here,” he said, and shone his light on a bench that was
little more than a vague hump poking out of a drift.
Johnny took off
his gloves and put them in his coat pockets. Then he knelt and began to brush
the snow away from the seat of the bench. Again Bannerman was struck by the
haggard pallor of the man's face. On his knees before the bench he looked like
a religious penitent, a man in desperate prayer.
Johnny's hands went
cold, then mostly numb. Melted now ran off his fingers. He got down to the
splintered, weatherbeaten surface of the bench. He seemed to see it very
clearly, almost with magnifying power. It had once been green, but now much of
the paint had flaked and eroded away. Two rusted steel bolts held the seat to
the backrest.
He seized the
bench in both hands, and sudden weirdness flooded him he had felt nothing so
intense before and would feel something so intense only once ever again.
He stared down at
the bench, frowning, gripping it tightly in his hands. It -...
(A summer bench)
How many hundreds
of different people had sat here at one time or another, listening to “God
Bless America”, to “Stars and Stripes Forever” ('Be hind to your web-footed
friends... for a duck may be somebody's moooother... “), to the Castle Rock
Cougars” fight song? Green summer leaves, smoky haze of fall like a memory of
cornhusks and men with rakes in mellow dusk. The thud of the big snare drum.
Mellow gold trumpets and trombones. School band uniforms...
(for a duck...
may be... somebody's mother...)
Good summer
people sitting here, listening. applauding, holding programs that had been
designed and printed in the Castle Rock High School graphic arts shop.
But this morning
a killer had been sitting here. Johnny could feel him.
Dark tree
branches etched against a gray snow-sky like runes. He(I) am sitting here,
smoking, waiting, feeling good, feeling like he(I) could jump right over the
roof of the world and land lightly on two feet. Humming a song. Something by
the Rolling Stones. Can't get that, but very dearly everything is... is what?
All right.
Everything is all right) everything is gray and waiting for snow, and Em...
“Slick,” Johnny
muttered. “I'm slick, I'm so slick.”
Bannerman leaned
forward, unable to catch the words over the howling wind. “What?”
“Slick,” Johnny
repeated. He looked up at Bannerman and the Sheriff involuntarily took a step
backward. Johnny's eyes were cool and somehow inhuman. His dark hair blew
wildly around his white face, and overhead the winter wind screamed through the
black sky. His hands seemed welded to the bench.
“I'm so fucking
slick,” he said clearly. A triumphant smile had formed on his lips. His eyes
stared through Bannerman. Bannerman believed. No one could be acting this, or
putting it on. And the most terrible part of it was... he was “reminded of
someone. The... ... the tone of voice... Johnny Smith was gone; he seemed to
have been replaced by a human blank. And lurking behind the planes of his ordinary
features, almost near enough to touch. was another face. The face of the
killer.
The face of
someone he knew.
“Never catch me
because I'm too slick for you. “A little laugh escaped him, confident, lightly
taunting. “I put it on every time, and if they scratch... or bite... they don't
get a bit of me... because I'm so SLICK!” His voice rose to a triumphant, crazy
shriek that competed with the wind, and Bannerman fell back another step, his
flesh crawling helplessly, his balls tight and cringing against his guts.
Let it stop, he
thought. Let it stop now. Please.
Johnny bent his
head over the bench. Melting snow dripped between his bare fingers.
(Snow. Silent
snow, secret snow -)
(She put a
clothespin on it so I'd know how it felt. How it felt when you got a disease. A
disease from one of those nasty-fuckers, they're all nasty. fuckers, and they
have to be stopped, yes, stopped, stop them, stop, the stop, the STOP—OH MY GOD
THE STOP SIGN -!)
He was little
again. Going to school through the silent, secret snow. And there was a man
looming out of the shifting whiteness, a terrible man, a terrible black
grinning man with eyes as shiny as quarters, and there was a red STOP sign
clutched in one gloved hand... him!... him! .. him!
(OH MY GOD
DON'T... DON'T LET HIM GET ME... MOMMA... DON'T LET HIM GET MEEEEE...)
Johnny screamed
and fell away from the bench, his hands suddenly pressed to his cheeks.
Bannerman crouched beside him, badly frightened. Behind the rope the reporters
stirred and murmured.
“Johnny! Snap out
of it! Listen, Johnny...”
“Slick,” Johnny
muttered. He looked up at Bannerman with hurt, frightened eyes. In his mind he
still saw that black shape with the shiny-quarter eyes looming out of the snow.
His crotch throbbed dully from the pain of the clothespin the killer's mother
had made him wear. He hadn't been the killer then, oh no, not an animal, not a
pusbag or a shitbag or whatever Bannerman had called him, he'd only been a
scared little boy with a clothespin on his... his...
“Help me get up,”
he muttered.
Bannerman helped
him to his feet. “The bandstand now,” Johnny said.
“No, I think we
ought to go back, Johnny.”
Johnny pushed
past him blindly and began to flounder toward the bandstand, a big circular
shadow up ahead. It bulked and loomed in the darkness, the death place.
Bannerman ran and caught up to him.
“Johnny, who is
it? Do you know who...?”
“You never found
any scraps of tissue under their finger. nails because he was wearing a raincoat,”
Johnny said, He panted the words out. “A raincoat with a hood. A slick vinyl
raincoat. You go back over the reports. You go back over the reports and you'll
see. It was raining or snowing every time. They clawed at him, all right. They
fought him. Sure they did. But their fingers just slipped and slid over it.”
“Who, Johnny?
Who?”
“I don't know.
But I'm going to find out.”
He stumbled over
the lowest of the six steps leading up to the bandstand, fumbled for his
balance, and would have lost it if Bannerman had not gripped his arm. Then they
were up on the stage. The snow was thin here, a bare dusting, kept off by the
conical roof. Bannerman trained his flashlight beam on the floor and Johnny
dropped to his hands and knees and began to crawl slowly across it. His hands
were bright red. Bannerman thought they must be like chunks of raw meat by now.
Johnny stopped
suddenly and stiffened like a dog on point. “Here,” he muttered. “He did it
right here.”
Images and
textures and sensations flooded in. The copper taste of excitement, the
possibility of being seen adding to it. The girl was squirming, trying to
scream. He had covered her mouth with one gloved hand. Awful excitement. Never
catch me, I'm the Invisible Man, is it dirty enough for you now, momma?
Johnny began to
moan, shaking his head back and forth.
Sound of clothes
ripping. Warmth. Something flowing. Blood? Semen? Urine?
He began to
shudder all over. His hair hung in his face. His face. His smiling, open face
caught inside the circular border of the raincoat's hood as his (my) hands
close around the neck at the moment of orgasm and squeeze... and squeeze... and
squeeze.
The strength left
his arms as the images began to fade. He slipped forward, now lying on the
stage full-length, sobbing. When Bannerman touched his shoulder he cried out
and tried to scramble away, his face crazy with fear. Then, little by little,
it loosened. He put his head back against the waist-high bandstand railing and
closed his eyes. Shudders raced through his body like whippets. His pants and
coat were sugared with snow.
“I know who it
is,” he said.
10.
Fifteen minutes
later Johnny sat in Bannerman's inner office again, stripped to his shorts and
sitting as close as he could to a portable electric heater. He still looked
cold and miserable, but he had stopped shaking.
“Sure you don't
want some coffee?”
Johnny shook his
head. “I can't abide the stuff.”
Johnny...
“Bannerman sat down. “Do you really know something?”
“I know who
killed them. You would have gotten him eventually. You were just too close to
it. You've even seen him in his raincoat, that shiny all-over raincoat. Because
he crosses the kids in the morning. He has a stop sign on a stick and he
crosses the kids in the morning.”
Bannerman looked
at him, thunderstruck. “Are you talking about Frank? Frank Dodd? You're nuts!”
“Frank Dodd
killed them,” Johnny said. “Frank Dodd killed them all.”
Bannerman looked
as though he didn't know whether to laugh at Johnny or deal him a good swift
kick. “That's the craziest goddam thing I've ever heard,” he said finally.
“Frank Dodd's a fine officer and a fine man. He's crossing over next November
to run for municipal chief of police, and he'll do it with my blessing. “Now
his expression was one of amusement mixed with tired contempt. “Frank's
twenty-five. That means he would have had to have started this crazy shit when
he was just nineteen. He lives at home very quietly with his mother, who isn't
very well hypertension, thyroid, and a semidiabetic condition. Johnny, you put
your foot in the bucket. Frank Dodd is no murderer. I'd stake my life on that.”
“The murders
stopped for two years,” Johnny said. “Where was Frank Dodd then? Was he in
town?”
Bannerman turned
toward him, and now the tired amusement had left his face and he only looked
hard. Hard and angry. “I don't want to hear any more about this. You were right
the first time—you're nothing but a fake. Well, you got your press coverage,
but that doesn't mean I have to listen to you malign a good officer, a man
I...
“A man you think
of as your son,” Johnny said quietly. Bannerman's lips thinned, and a lot of
the color that had risen in his cheeks during their time outside now faded out
of his face. He looked like a man who has been punched low. Then it passed and
his face was expressionless.
“Get out of
here,” he said. “Get one of your reporter friends to give you a ride home. You
can hold a press conference on your way. But I swear to God, I swear to holy
God that if you mention Frank Dodd's name, I'll come for you and I'll break your
back. Understood?”
“Sure, my buddies
from the press!” Johnny shouted at him suddenly. “That's right! Didn't you see
me answering all their questions? Posing for their pictures and making sure they
got my good side?. Making sure they spelled my name right?”
Bannerman looked
startled, then hard again. “Lower your voice.”
“No, I'll be
goddamned if I will!” Johnny said, and his voice rose even higher in pitch and
volume. “I think you forgot who called who! I'll refresh your recollection for
you. It was you, calling me. That's how eager I was to get over here!”
“That doesn't
mean you...
Johnny walked
over to Bannerman, pointing his index finger like a pistol. He was several
inches shorter and probably eighty pounds lighter, but Bannerman backed up a
step—as he had done on the common. Johnny's cheeks had flushed a dull red. His
lips were drawn back slightly from his teeth.
“No, you're
right, you calling me doesn't mean shit in a tin bucket,” he said. “But you
don't want it to be Dodd, do you? It can be somebody else, then we'll at least
look into it, but it can't be good old Frank Dodd. Because Frank's upstanding,
Frank takes care of his mother, Frank looks up to good old Sheriff George
Bannerman, oh, Frank's bloody Christ down from the cross except when he's
raping and strangling old ladies and little girls, and it could have been your
daughter, Bannerman, don't you understand it could have been your own
Bannerman hit
him. At the last moment he pulled the punch, but it was still hard enough to
knock Johnny backward; he stumbled over the leg of a chair and then sprawled on
the floor. Blood trickled from his cheek where Bannerman's Police Academy ring
had grazed him.
“You had that
coming,” Bannerman said, but there was no real conviction in his voice. It
occurred to him that for the first time in his life he had hit a cripple—or the
next thing to a cripple.
Johnny's head
felt light and full of bells. His voice seemed to belong to someone else, a
radio announcer or a B-movie actor. “You ought to get down on your knees and
thank God that he really didn't leave any clues, because you would have
overlooked them, feeling like you do about Dodd. And then you could have held
yourself responsible in Mary Kate Hendrasen's death, as an accessory.
“That is nothing
but a damnable lie,” Bannerman said slowly and clearly. “I'd arrest my own
brother if he was the guy doing this. Get up off the floor. I'm sorry I hit
you.
He helped Johnny
to his feet and looked at the scrape on his cheek.
“I'll get the
first-aid kit and put some iodine on that.”
“Forget it,”
Johnny said. The anger had left his voice. “I guess I kind of sprang it on you,
didn't I?”
“I'm telling you,
it can't be Frank. You're not a publicity hound, okay. I was wrong about that.
Heat of the moment, okay? But your vibes or your astral plane or whatever it is
sure gave you a bum steer this time.”
“Then check,”
Johnny said. He caught Bannerman's eyes with his own and held them. “Check it
out. Show me I got it wrong. “He swallowed. “Check the times and dates against
Frank's work schedule. Can you do that?”
Grudgingly,
Bannerman said, “The time cards in the back closet there go back fourteen or
fifteen years. I guess I could check it.”
“Then do it.”
“Mister... “He
paused. “Johnny, if you knew Frank, you'd laugh at yourself. I mean it. It's
not just me, you ask anybody...”
“If I'm wrong,
I'll be glad to admit it.”
“This is crazy,”
Bannerman muttered, but he went to the storage closet where the old time cards
were kept and opened the door.
11.
Two hours passed.
It was now nearly one o'clock in the morning. Johnny had called his father and
told him he would find a place to sleep in Castle Rock; the storm had leveled
off at a single furious pitch, and driving back would be next to impossible.
“What's going on
over there?” Herb asked. “Can you tell me?”
“I better not
over the phone, Dad.”
“All right,
Johnny. Don't exhaust yourself.”
“No.”
But he was
exhausted. He was more tired than he could remember being since those early
days in physical therapy with Eileen Magown. A nice woman, he thought randomly.
A nice friendly woman, at least until I told her that her house was burning
down. After that she had become distant and awkward. She had thanked him, sure,
but—had she ever touched him after that? Actually touched him? Johnny didn't
think so. And it would be the same with Bannerman when this thing was over. Too
bad. Like Eileen, he was a fine man. But people get very nervous around people
who can just touch things and know all about them.
“It doesn't prove
a thing,” Bannerman was saying now. There was a sulky, little-boy
rebelliousness in his voice that made Johnny want to grab him and shake him
until he rattled. But he was too tired.
They were looking
down at a rough chart Johnny had made on the back of a circular for used state
police interceptors. Stacked untidily by Bannerman's desk were seven or eight
cartons of old time cards, and sitting in the top half of Bannerman's in/out
basket were Frank Dodd's cards, going back to 1971, when he had joined the
sheriff's department. The chart looked like this:
THE MURDERS—FRANK
DODD
Alma Frechette
(waitress) Then working at Main Street
3:00PM, 11/12/70
Gulf Station
Pauline Toothaker
Off-duty
10:00AM, 11/17/71
Cheryl Moody U.
H. S. student) Off-duty
2:00 PM, 12/16/71
Carol Dunbarger
(H. S. student) Two-week vacation period
11/?/74
Etta Ringgold
(teacher) Regular duty tours
10/29(?)/75
Mary Kate
Hendrasen Off-duty
10:10 AM,
12/17/75
All times are
“estimated time of death” figures supplied by State Medical Examiner
“No, it doesn't
prove anything,” Johnny agreed, rubbing his temples. “But it doesn't exactly
rule him out, either.”
Bannerman tapped
the chart. “When Miss Ringgold was killed, he was on duty.”
“Yeah, if she
really was killed on the twenty-ninth of October. But it might have been the
twenty-eighth, or the twenty-seventh. And even if he was on duty, who suspects
a cop?”
Bannerman was
looking at the little chart very carefully.
“What about the
gap?” Johnny said. “The two-year gap?”
Bannerman thumbed
the time cards. “Frank was right here on duty all during 1973 and 1974. You saw
that.”
“So maybe the
urge didn't come on him that year. At least, so far as we know.”
“So far as we
know, we don't know anything,” Banner-man contradicted quickly.
“But what about
1972? Late 1972 and early 1973? There are no time cards for that period. Was he
on vacation?”
“No,” Bannerman
said. “Frank and a guy named Tom Harrison took a semester course in Rural Law
Enforcement at a branch of the University of Colorado in Pueblo. It's the only
place in the country where they offer a deal like that. It's an eight-week
course. Frank and Tom were out there from October 15 until just about
Christmas. The state pays part, the county pays part, and the U. S. government
pays part under the Law Enforcement Act of 1971. I picked Harrison—he's chief
of police over in Gates Falls now—and Frank. Frank almost didn't go, because he
was worried about his mother being alone. To tell you the truth, I think she
tried to persuade him to stay home. I talked him into it. He wants to be a
career officer, and something like the Rural Law Enforcement course looks damn
good on your record. I remember that when he and Tom got back in December,
Frank had a low-grade virus and he looked terrible. He'd lost twenty pounds.
Claimed no one out there in cow country could cook like his mom.
Bannerman fell
silent. Something in what he had just said seemed to disturb him.
“He took a week's
sick leave around the holidays and then he was okay,” Bannerman resumed, almost
defensively. “He was back by the fifteenth of January at the latest. Check the
time cards for yourself.”
“I don't have to.
Any more than I have to tell you what your next step is.”
“No,” Bannerman said.
He looked at his hands. “I told you that you had a head for this stuff. Maybe I
was righter than I knew. Or wanted to be.”
He picked up the
telephone and pulled out a thick directory with a plain blue cover from the
bottom drawer of his desk. Paging through it without looking up, he told
Johnny, “This is courtesy of that same Law Enforcement Act. Every sheriff's
office in every county of the United States. “He found the number he wanted and
made his call.
Johnny shifted in
his seat.
“Hello,”
Bannerman said. “Am I talking to the Pueblo sheriff's office?... All right. My
name is George Banner-man, I'm the county sheriff of Castle County, in western
Maine... yes, that's what I said. State of Maine. Who am I talking to,
please?... All right, Officer Taylor, this is the situation. We've had a series
of murders out here, rape-stranglings, six of them in the past five years. All
of them have taken place in the late fall or early winter. We have a... “He
looked up at Johnny for a moment, his eyes hurt and helpless. Then he looked
down at the phone again. “We have a suspect who was in Pueblo from October 15
of 1972 until... uh, December 17, I think. What I'd like to know is if you have
an unsolved homicide on your books during that period, victim female, no particular
age, raped, cause of death, strangulation. Further, I would like to know the
perpetrator's sperm type if you have had such a crime and a sperm sample was
obtained. What?... Yes, okay. Thanks... I'll be right here, waiting. Good-bye,
Officer Taylor.”
He hung up. “He's
going to verify my bona fides, then check it through, then call me back. You
want a cup of no, you don't drink it, do you?”
“No,” Johnny
said. “I'll settle for a glass of water.”
He went over to
the big glass cooler and drew a paper cupful of water. Outside the storm howled
and pounded.
Behind him,
Bannerman said awkwardly: “Yeah, okay. You were right. He's the son I'd've
liked to have had. My wife had Katrina by cesarian. She can never have another
one, the doctor said it would kill her. She had the Band-Aid operation and I
had a vasectomy. Just to be sure.”
Johnny went to
the window and looked out on darkness, his cup of water in his hand. There was
nothing to see but snow, but if he turned around, Bannerman would break off—you
didn't have to be psychic to know that.
“Frank's dad
worked on the B&M line and died in an accident when Frank was five or so.
He was drunk, tried to make a coupling in a state where he probably would have
pissed down his own leg and never known it. He got crushed between two
flatcars. Frank's had to be the man of the house ever since. Roscoe says he had
a girl in high school, but Mrs. Dodd put paid to that in a hurry.”
I bet she did,
Johnny thought. A woman who would do that thing... that clothespin thing... to
her own son... that sort of woman would stop at nothing. She” must be almost as
crazy as he is.
“He came to me
when he was sixteen and asked if there was such a thing as a part-time
policeman. Said it was the only thing he'd ever really wanted to do or be since
he was a kid. I took a shine to him right off. Hired him to work around the
place and paid him out of my own pocket. Paid him what I could, you know, he
never complained about the wages. He was the Sort of kid who would have worked
for free. He put in an application for full-time work the month before he
graduated from high school, but at that time we didn't have any vacancies. So
he went to work at Donny Haggar's Gulf and took a night course in police work
at the university down in Gorham. I guess Mrs. Dodd tried to put paid to that,
too—felt she was alone too much of the time, or something—but that time Frank
stood up to her... with my encouragement. We took him on in July of 1971 and
he's been with the department ever since. Now you tell me this and I think of
Katrina being out yesterday morning, walking right past whoever did it... and
it's like some dirty kind of incest, almost. Frank's been at our house, he's
eaten our food, babysat Katie once or twice... and you tell me...
Johnny turned
around. Bannerman had taken off his glasses and was wiping his eyes again.
“If you really
can see such things, I pity you. You're a freak of God, no different from a
two-headed cow I once saw in the carnival. I'm sorry. That's a shit thing to
say, I know.”
“The Bible says
God loves all his creatures,” Johnny said. His voice was a bit unsteady.
“Yeah?” Bannerman
nodded and rubbed the red places on the sides of his nose where his glasses
sat. “Got a funny way of showing it, doesn't he?”
12.
About twenty
minutes later the telephone rang and Bannerman answered it smartly. Talked
briefly. Listened.
Johnny watched
his face get old. He hung up and looked at Johnny for a long time without
speaking.
“November 12,
1972,” he said. “A college girl. They found her in a field out by the turnpike.
Ann Simons, her name was. Raped and strangled. Twenty-three years old. No semen
type obtained. It's still not proof, Johnny.”
“I don't think,
in your own mind, you need any more proof,” Johnny said. “And if you confront
him with what you have, I think he'll break down.”
“And if he
doesn't?”
Johnny remembered
the vision on the handstand. It whirled back at him like a crazy, lethal
boomerang. The tearing sensation. The pain that was pleasant, the pain that
recalled the pain of the clothespin, the pain that reconfirmed everything.
“Get him to drop
his pants,” Johnny said. Bannerman looked at him.
13.
The reporters
were still out in the lobby. In truth, they probably wouldn't have moved even had
they not suspected a break in the case—or at least a bizarre new development.
The roads out of town were impassable.
Bannerman and
Johnny went out the supply closet window.
“Are you sure
this is the way to do it?” Johnny asked, and the storm tried to rip the words
out of his mouth. His legs hurt.
“No,” Bannerman
said simply, “but I think you should be in on it. Maybe I think he should have
the chance to look you in the face, Johnny. Come on. The Dodds are only two
blocks from here.”
They set off,
hooded and booted, a pair of shadows in the driving snow. Beneath his coat
Bannerman was wearing his service pistol. His handcuffs were clipped to his
belt. Before they had gone a block through the deep snow Johnny was limping
badly, but he kept his mouth grimly shut about it.
But Bannerman
noticed. They stopped in the doorway of the Castle Rock Western Auto.
“Son, what's the
matter with you?”
“Nothing,” Johnny
said. His head was starting to ache again, too.
“It sure is
something. You act like you're walking on two broken legs.”
“They had to
operate on my legs after I came out of the coma. The muscles had atrophied.
Started to melt is how Dr. Brown put it. The joints were decayed. They fixed it
up the best they could with synthetics...
“Like the Six
Million Dollar Man, huh?”
Johnny thought of
the neat piles of hospital hills back home, sitting in the top drawer of the
dining room hutch.
“Yes, something
like that. When I'm on them too long, they stiffen up. That's all.”
“You want to go
back?”
You bet I do. Go
back and not have” to think about this hellacious business anymore”. Wish I'd
never come. Not my problem. This is the guy who compared me to a two-headed
cow.
“No, I'm okay,”
he said.
They stepped out
of the doorway and the wind grabbed them and tried to bowl them along the empty
street. They struggled through the harsh, snow-choked glare of arc-sodium
streetlights, bent into the wind. They turned onto a side street and five
houses down Bannerman stopped in front of a small and neat New England
salt-box. Like the other houses on the street, it was dark and battened down.
“This is the
house,” Bannerman said, his voice oddly colorless. They worked their way
through the snowdrift that the wind had thrown against the porch and mounted
the steps.
14.
Mrs. Henrietta Dodd
was a big woman who was carrying a dead weight of flesh on her frame. Johnny
had never seen a woman who looked any sicker. Her skin was a yellowish-gray.
Her hands were nearly reptilian with an eczemalike rash. And there was
something in her eyes, narrowed to glittering slits in their puffy sockets,
that reminded him unpleasantly of the way his mother's eyes had sometimes
looked when Vera Smith was transported into one of her religious frenzies.
She had opened
the door to them after Bannerman had rapped steadily for nearly five minutes.
Johnny stood beside him on his aching legs, thinking that this night would
never end. It would just go on and on until the snow bad piled up enough to
avalanche down and bury them all.
“What do you want
in the middle of the night, George Bannerman?” she asked suspiciously. Like
many fat women, her voice was a high, buzzy reed instrument—it sounded a bit
like a fly or a bee caught in a bottle.
“Have to talk to
Frank, Henrietta.”
“Then talk to him
in the morning,” Henrietta Dodd said, and started to close the door in their
faces.
Bannerman stopped
the door's swing with a gloved hand. “I'm sorry, Henrietta. Has to be now.”
“Well, I'm not
going to wake him up!” she cried, not moving from the doorway. “He sleeps like
the dead anyway! Some nights I ring my bell for him, the palpitations are
terrible sometimes, and does he come? No, he sleeps right through it and he
could wake up some morning to find me dead of a heart attack in my bed instead
of getting him his goddam runny poached egg! Because you work him too hard!”
She grinned in a
sour kind of triumph; the dirty secret exposed and hats over the windmill.
“All day, all
night, swing shift, chasing after drunks in the middle of the night and any one
of them could have a—gun under the seat, going out to the ginmills and
honky-tonks, oh, they're a rough trade out there but a lot you mind! I guess I
know what goes on in those places, those cheap slutty women that'd be happy to
give a nice boy like my Frank an incurable disease for the price of a quarter
beer!”
Her voice, that
reed instrument, swooped and buzzed. Johnny's head pumped and throbbed in
counterpoint. He wished she would shut up. It was a hallucination, he knew,
just the tiredness and stress of this awful night catching up, but it began to
seem more and more to him that this was his mother standing here, that at any
moment she would turn from Bannerman to him and begin to huckster him about the
wonderful talent God had given him.
“Mrs. Dodd...
Henrietta... “Bannerman began patiently.
Then she did turn
to Johnny, and regarded him with her smart-stupid little pig's eyes.
“Who's this?”
“Special deputy,”
Bannerman said promptly. “Henrietta, I'll take the responsibility for waking
Frank up.”
“Oooh, the responsibility!”
she cooed with monstrous, buzzing sarcasm, and Johnny finally realized she was
afraid. The fear was coming off her in pulsing, noisome waves—that was what was
making his headache worse. Couldn't Bannerman feel it? “The
ree-spon-si-bil-i-tee! Isn't that big of you, my God yes! Well, I won't have my
boy waked up in the middle of the night, George Bannerman, so you and your
special deputy can just go peddle your goddam papers!”
She tried to shut
the door again and this time Banner-man shoved it all the way open. His voice
showed tight anger and beneath that a terrible tension. “Open up, Henrietta, I
mean it, now.”
“You can't do
this!” she cried. “This isn't no police state! I'll have your job! Let's see
your warrant!”
“No, that's
right, but I'm going to talk to Frank,” Bannerman said, and pushed past her.
Johnny, barely
aware of what he was doing, followed. Henrietta Dodd made a grab for him.
Johnny caught her Wrist—and a terrible pain flared in his head, dwarfing the
sullen thud of the headache. And the woman felt it, too. The two of them stared
at each other for a moment that seemed to last forever, an awful, perfect
understanding. For that moment they seemed welded together. Then she fell back,
clutching at her ogre's bosom.
“My heart .. . my
heart .. . “She scrabbled at her robe pocket and pulled out a phial of pills.
Her face had gone to the color of raw dough. She got the cap off the phial and
spilled tiny pills all over the floor getting one into her palm. She slipped it
under her tongue. Johnny stood staring at her in mute horror. His head felt
like a swelling bladder full of hot blood.
“You knew?” he
whispered.
Her fat, wrinkled
mouth opened and closed, opened and closed. No sound came out. It was the mouth
of a beached fish.
“All of this time
you knew?”
“You're a devil!”
she screamed at him. “You're a monster... devil... oh my heart... oh, I'm
dying... think I'm dying... call the doctor... George Bannerman don't you go up
there and wake my baby!”
Johnny let go of
her, and unconsciously rubbing his hand back and forth on his coat as if to
free it of a stain, he stumbled up the stairs after Bannerman. The wind outside
sobbed around the eaves like a lost child. Halfway up he glanced back.
Henrietta Dodd sat in a wicker chair, a sprawled mountain of meat, gasping and
holding a huge breast in each hand. His head still felt as if it were swelling
and he thought dreamily: Pretty soon it'll just pop and that'll be the end.
Thank God.
An old and
threadbare runner covered the narrow hall floor. The wallpaper was watermarked.
Bannerman was pounding on a closed door. It was at least ten degrees colder up
here.
“Frank? Frank!
It's George Bannerman! Wake up, Frank!”
There was no
response. Bannerman turned the knob and shoved the door open. His hand had
fallen to the butt of his gun, but he had not drawn it. It could have been a
fatal mistake, but Frank Dodd's room was empty.
The two of them
stood in the doorway for a moment, looking in. It was a child's room. The
wallpaper—also watermarked—was covered with dancing clowns and rocking horses.
There was a child-sized chair with a Raggedy Andy sitting in it, looking back
at them with its shiny blank eyes. In one corner was a toybox. In the other was
a narrow maple bed with the covers thrown back. Hooked over one of the bedposts
and looking out of place was Frank Dodd's holstered gun.
“My God,”
Bannerman said softly. “What is this?”
“Help,” Mrs.
Dodd's voice floated up. “Help me
“She knew,”
Johnny said. “She knew from the very beginning, from the Frechette woman. He
told her. And she covered up for him.”
Bannerman backed
slowly out of the room and opened another door. His eyes were dazed and hurt.
It was a guest bedroom, unoccupied. He opened the closet, which was empty
except for a neat tray of D-Con rat-killer on the floor. Another door. This
bedroom was unfinished and cold enough to show Bannerman's breath. He looked
around. There was another door, this one at the head of the stairs. He went to
it, and Johnny followed. This door was locked.
“Frank? Are you in
there?” He rattled the knob. “Open it, Frank!”
There was no
answer. Bannerman raised his foot and kicked out, connecting with the door just
below the knob. There was a flat cracking sound that seemed to echo in Johnny's
head like a steel platter dropped on a tile floor.
“Oh God,”
Bannerman said in a flat, choked voice. “Frank.”
Johnny could see
over his shoulder, could see too much. Frank Dodd was propped on the lowered
seat of the toilet. He was naked except for a shiny black raincoat, which he
had looped over his shoulders; the raincoat's black hood (executioner's hood,
Johnny thought dimly) dangled down on the top of the toilet tank like some
grotesque, deflated black pod. He had somehow managed to cut his own
throat—Johnny would not have thought that possible. There was a package of
Wilkinson Sword Blades on the edge of the washbasin. A single blade lay on the
floor, glittering wickedly. Drops of blood had beaded on its edge. The blood
from his severed jugular vein and carotid artery had splashed everywhere. There
were pools of it caught in the folds of the raincoat which dragged on the
floor. It was on the shower curtain, which had a pattern of paddling ducks with
umbrellas held over their heads. It was on the ceiling.
Around Frank
Dodd's neck on a string was a sign crayoned in lipstick. It read: I CONFESS.
The pain in
Johnny's head began to climb to a sizzling, insupportable peak. He groped out
with a hand and found the doorjamb.
Knew, he thought
incoherently. Knew somehow when he” saw me. Knew it was all over. Came home.
Did this.
Black rings
overlaying his sight, spreading like evil ripples.
What a talent God
has given you, Johnny.
(I CONFESS)
“Johnny?”
From far away.
“Johnny, are you
all...”
Fading.
Everything fading away. That was good. Would have been better if he had never
come out of the coma at all. Better for all concerned. Well, he had had his
chance.
“Johnny—”
Frank Dodd had
come up here and somehow he had slit his throat from the ear to the proverbial
ear while the storm howled outside like all the dark things of the earth let
loose. Gone a gusher, as his father had said that winter twelve years or so
ago, when the pipes in the basement had frozen and burst. Gone a gusher. Sure
as hell had. All the way up to the ceiling.
He believed that
he might have screamed then, but afterward was never sure. It might only have
been in his own head that he screamed. But he had wanted to scream;
to scream out all
the horror and pity and agony in his heart.
Then he was
falling forward into darkness, and grateful to go. Johnny blacked out.
15.
From the New York
Time's, December 19, 1975:
MAINE PSYCHIC
DIRECTS SHERIFF TO KILLER DEPUTY'S HOME AFTER VISITING SCENE OF THE CRIME
(Special to the
Times) John Smith of Pownal may not actually be psychic, but one would have
difficulty persuading Sheriff George F. Bannerman of Castle County, Maine, to
believe that. Desperate after a sixth assault-murder in the small western Maine
town of Castle Rock, Sheriff Bannerman called Mr. Smith on the phone and asked
him to come over to Castle Rock and lend a hand, if possible. Mr. Smith, who
received national attention earlier this year when he recovered from a deep
coma after fifty-five months of unconsciousness, had been condemned by the
weekly tabloid Inside View as a hoaxer, but at a press conference yesterday
Sheriff Bannerman would only say, “We don't put a whole lot of stock up here in
Maine in what those New York reporters think.”
According to
Sheriff Bannerman, Mr. Smith crawled on his hands and knees around the scene of
the sixth murder, which occurred on the Castle Rock town common. He came up
with a mild case of frostbite and the murderer's name—Sheriff's Deputy Franklin
Dodd, who had been on the Castle County Sheriff's payroll five years, as long
as Bannerman himself.
Earlier this year
Mr. Smith stirred controversy in his native state when he had a psychic flash
that his physical therapist's house had caught fire. The flash turned out to be
nothing but the truth. At a press conference following, a reporter challenged him
to...
From Newsweek,
page 41, week of December 24, 1975:.
THE NEW HURKOS
It may be that
the first genuine psychic since Peter Hurkos has been uncovered in this country
Hurkos was the German-born seer who has been able to tell questioners all about
their private lives by touching their hands, silverware, or items from their
handbags.
John Smith is a
shy and unassuming young man from the south-central Maine town of Pownal.
Earlier this year he returned to consciousness after a period of more than four
years in a deep coma following a car accident (see photo). According to the
consulting neurologist in the case, Dr. Samuel Weizak, Smith made a “perfectly
astounding recovery”. Today he is recovering from a mild case of frostbite and
a four-hour blackout following the bizarre resolution of a long-unsolved
multiple murder case in the town of...
December 27, 1975
Dear Sarah,
Dad and I both
enjoyed your le'tter, which arrived just this afternoon. I'm really fine, so
you can stop worrying, okay? But I thank you for your concern. The” “frostbite”
was greatly exaggerated in the press. Just a couple of patches on the” tips of
three” fingers of my left hand. The” blackout was really nothing much more”
than a fainting spell “brought on by emotional overload”, Weizak says. Yes, he
came down himself and insisted on driving me to the hospital in Portland. Just
watching him in action is nearly worth the price of admission. He bullied them
into giving him a consultation room and an EEG machine and a technician to run
it. He says he can find no new brain damage or signs of progressive brain
damage. He wants to do a whole series of tests, some of them sound utterly
inquisitorial—'Renounce, heretic, or we'll give you another pneumo-brainscan!”
(Ha-ha, and are you still sniffin” that wicked cocaine”, darlin”?) Anyway, I
turned down the kind offer to be pumped and prodded some more. Dad is rather
pissed at me about turning the tests down, keeps trying to draw a parallel
between my refusal to have them and my mother's refusal to take her
hypertension medicine. It's very hard to make him see” that, if Weizak did find
something, the odds would be” nine-to-one against him being able to do anything
about it.
Yes, I saw the
Newsweek article. That picture of me is from the press conference, only
cropped. Don't look like anyone you'd like to meet in a dark alley, do I?
Ha-ha! Holy Gee (as your buddy Anne Strafford is so fond of saying), but I wish
they hadn't run that story. The packages, cards, and letters have started
coming again. l don't open any of them anymore unless I recognize the return
address, just mark them “Return to Sender”. They are too pitiful, too full of
hope and hate and belief and unbelief, and somehow they all remind me of the
way my Mom was.
Well, I don't
mean to sound so gloomy, it ain't all that bad. But I don't want to be a
practicing psychic, I don't want to go on tour or appear on TV (some yahoo from
NBC got our phone number, who knows how, and wanted to know if I'd consider
“doing the Carson show”. Great idea, huh? Don Rickles could insult some people,
some” starlet could show her jugs, and I could make a few predictions. All
brought to you by General Foods.). I don't want to do any of that S~H~I~T. What
l am really looking forward to is getting back to Cleaves Mills and sinking
into the utter obscurity of the H. S. English teacher. And save the psychic
flashes for football pep rallies.
Guess that's all
for this time. Hope you and Walt and Denny had yourself a merry little”
Christmas and are looking forward eagerly (from what you said I'm sure” Walt
is, at the very least) to the Brave Bicentennial Election Year now stretching
before us. Glad to hear your spouse has been picked to run for the state senate
seat there, but cross your fingers, Sarey—'76 doesn't exactly look like” a
banner year for elephant-lovers. Send your thanks for that one” across to San
Clemente.
My dad sends best
and wants me to tell you thanks for the picture of Denny, who really impressed
him. l send my best, also. Thanks for writing, and for your misplaced concern
(misplaced, but very welcome). I'm fine”, and looking forward to getting back
in harness.
Love” and good
wishes, Johnny
P. S. For the”
last time kiddo get off that cocaine”.
J.
December 29, 1975
Dear Johnny,
I think this is
the” hardest, bitterest letter I've had to write in my sixteen years of school
administration—not only because you're a good friend but because” you're a
damned good teacher. There is no way to gild the lily on this, so guess I won't
even try.
There was a
special meeting of the school board last evening (at the behest of two members
I won't name, but they were on the board when you were” teaching here” and I
think you can probably guess the names), and they voted 5–2 to ask that your
contract be withdrawn. The” reason: you're too controversial to be effective as
a teacher. I came very close” to tendering my own resignation; I was that
disgusted. If it wasn't for Maureen and the kids, I think I would have. This
abortion isn't even on a par with tossing Rabbit, Run or Catcher in the Rye out
of the” classroom. This is worse”. It stinks.
I told them that,
but I might as well have been talking in Esperanto or igpay atm lay. All they
can see is that your picture was in Newsweek and the New York Times and that
the Castle” Rock story was on the national network news broadcasts. Too
controversial! Five” old men in trusses, the kind of men who are more
interested in hair length than in textbooks, more” involved in finding out who
might smoke pot on the” faculty than in finding out how to get some”
twentieth-century equipment for the Sci Wing.
l have written a
strong letter of protest to the” board-at-large, and with a little arm-twisting
I believe I can get Irving Finegold to cosign it with me”. But I'd also be”
less than truthful if I told you there was a hope in he'll of getting those
five old men to change their minds.
My honest advice”
to you is to get yourself a lawyer, Johnny. You signed that blueback in good
faith, and I believe you can squeeze them for every last cent of your salary,
whether you ever step into a Cleaves Mills class-room or not. And call me when
you feel like” talking.
With all my
heart, I'm sorry.
Your friend,
Dave” Pelsen
16.
Johnny stood
beside the mailbox with Dave's letter in his hand, looking down at it
unbelievingly. It was the last day of “975, clear and bitingly cold. His breath
came out of his nostrils in fine white” jets of smoke.
“Shit,” he
whispered. “Oh man, oh skit.”
Numbly, still not
assimilating it totally, he” leaned down to see what else” the mailman had
brought him. As usual, the box was crammed full It had just been luck that
Dave's letter had been sticking out the end.
There was a
white, fluttering slip of paper telling him to call at the” post office” for the”
packages, the” inevitable package's. My husband deserted me in 1969, here” is a
pair of his socks, tell me” where he is so I can get child-support out of the”
bastard. My baby choked to death last year, here” is his rattle, please write
and tell me if he is happy with the angels. l didn't have” him baptized
because” his father did not approve” and now my heart is breaking. The endless
litany.
What a talent God
has given you, Johnny.
The reason:
You're” too controversial to be” effective” as a teacher.
In a sudden
vicious spasm he began to rake letters and manila envelopes out of the box,
dropping some in the snow. The inevitable headache began to form around his
temples like two dark clouds that would slowly draw together, enveloping him in
pain. Sudden tears began to slip down his cheeks, and in the deep, stiff cold,
they froze to glittering tracks almost immediately.
He bent and began
to pick up the letters he had dropped; he saw one, doubled and trebled through
the prisms of his tears, addressed in heavy dark pencil to
JOHN SMITH SIKIK
SEER.
Sikik seer,
that's me. His hands began to tremble wildly and he dropped everything,
including Dave's letter. It fluttered down like a leaf and landed print side up
among the other letters, all the other letters. Through his helpless tears he
could see the letterhead, and the motto below the torch:
TO TEACH, TO
LEARN, TO KNOW, TO SERVE.
“Serve my ass,
you cheap bastards,” Johnny said. He fell on his knees and began to gather up
the letters, sweeping them together with his mittens. His fingers ached dully,
a reminder of the frostbite, a reminder of Frank Dodd riding a dead toilet seat
into eternity, blood in his all-American blond hair. I CONFESS.
He swept the
letters up and heard himself muttering over and over, like a defective record:
“Killing me, you people are killing me, let me alone, can't you see you're
killing me?”
He made himself
stop. This was no way to behave. Life would go on. One way or another, life
would most certainly go on.
Johnny started
back to the house, wondering what he could do now. Perhaps something would come
along. At any rate, he had fulfilled his mother's prophecy. If God had had a
mission for him, then he had done it. No matter now that it had been a kamikaze
mission, He had done it.
He was quits.
PART TWO
The Laughing
Tiger
CHAPTER SEVENTEEN
1.
The boy read
slowly, following the words with his finger, his long brown football-player's
legs stretched out on the chaise by the pool in the bright clear light of June.
“Of course young
Danny Ju... Juniper... young Danny Juniper was dead, and I... ... suppose that
there were few in the world who would say he had not de duh. -. dee...” Oh,
shit, I don't know.”
“Few in the world
who would say he had not deserved his death,"” Johnny Smith said. “Only a
slightly fancier way of saying that most would agree that Danny's death was a
good thing.”
Chuck was looking
at him, and the familiar mix of emotions was crossing his usually pleasant
face: amusement, resentment, embarrassment, and a trace of sullenness. Then he
sighed and looked down at the Max Brand Western again.
“Deserved his
death. But it was my great trah... truhjud... “
“Tragedy,” Johnny
supplied.
“But it was my
great tragedy that he had died just as he was about to redeem some of his
e-e-evil work by one great service to the world.
“Of course that
.. ... .. that... ... sih
Chuck closed the
book, looked up at Johnny, and smiled brilliantly.
“Let's quit for
the day, Johnny, what do you say?” Chuck's smile was his most winning, the one that
had probably tumbled cheerleaders into bed all over New Hampshire. “Doesn't
that pool look good? You bet it does. The sweat is running right off your
skinny, malnourished little bod.”
Johnny had to
admit—at least to himself—that the pool did look good. The first couple of
weeks of the Bicentennial Summer of “76 had been uncommonly hot and sticky”.
From behind them, around on the other side of the big, gracious white house,
came the soporific drone of the riding lawnmower as Ngo Phat, the Vietnamese groundsman,
mowed what Chuck called the front forty. It was a sound that made you want to
drink two glasses of cold lemonade and then nod off to sleep.
“No derogatory
comments about my skinny bod,” he said. “Besides, we just started the chapter.”
“Sure, but we
read two before it. “Wheedling.
Johnny sighed.
Usually he could keep Chuck at it, but not this afternoon. And today the kid
had fought his way gamely through the way John Sherburne had set up his net of
guards around the Amity jail and the way the evil Red Hawk had broken through
and killed Danny Juniper.
“Yeah, well, just
finish this page, then,” he said. “That word you're stuck on's “sickened”. No
teeth in that one, Chuck.”
“Good man!” The
grin widened. “And no questions, right?”
“Well... maybe
just a few.”
Chuck scowled,
but it was a puton; he was getting off easy and knew it. He opened the
paperback with the picture of the gunslinger shouldering his way through a set
of saloon batwings again and began to read in his slow, halting voice... a
voice so different from his normal speaking voice that it could have belonged
to a different young man altogether.
“Of course that
suh .. sickened me at” once. But it was... was nothing to what waited for me at
the bedside of poor Tom Keyn.. . Kenyon.
“'He had been shot
through the body and he was fast drying when I... “
“Dying,” Johnny
said quietly. “Context, Chuck. Read for context.
“Fast drying,”
Chuck said, and giggled. Then he resumed “... and he was fast dying when I
ar-ar when I arrived. "”
Johnny felt a
sadness for Chuck steal over him as he watched the boy, hunched over the
paperback copy of Fire” Brain, a good oat opera that should have read like the
wind—and instead, here was Chuck, following Max Brand's simple point-to-point
prose with a laboriously moving finger. His father, Roger Chatsworth, owned
Chatsworth Mills and Weaving, a very big deal indeed in southern New Hampshire.
He owned this sixteen-room house in Durham, and there were five people on the
staff, including Ngo Phat, who went down to Portsmouth once a week to take
United States citizenship classes. Chatsworth drove a restored 1957 Cadillac
convertible. His wife, a sweet, clear-eyed woman of forty-two, drove a
Mercedes. Chuck had a Corvette. The family fortune was in the neighborhood of
five million dollars.
And Chuck, at
seventeen, was what God had really meant when he breathed life into the clay,
Johnny often thought. He was a physically lovely human being. He stood six-two
and weighed a good muscular one hundred and ninety pounds. His face was perhaps
not quite interesting enough to be truly handsome, but it was acneand
pimple-free and set off by a pair of striking green eyes which had caused
Johnny to think that the only other person he knew with really green eyes was
Sarah Hazlett. At his high school, Chuck was the apotheosis of the BMOC, almost
ridiculously so. He was captain of the baseball and football teams, president
of the junior class during the school year just ended, and president-elect of
the student council this coming fall. And most amazing of all, none of it had
gone to his head. In the words of Herb Smith, who had been down once to check
out Johnny's new digs, Chuck was “a regular guy”. Herb had no higher accolade
in his vocabulary. In addition, he was someday going to be an exceedingly rich
regular guy.
And here he sat,
bent grimly over his book like a machine gunner at a lonely outpost, shooting
the words down one by one as they came at him. He had taken Max Brand's
exciting, fast-moving story of drifting John “Fire Brain” Sherburne and his
confrontation with the outlaw Comanche Red Hawk and had turned it into
something that sounded every bit as exciting as a trade advertisement for
semiconductors or radio components.
But Chuck wasn't
stupid. His math grades were good, his retentive memory was excellent, and he
was manually adept. His problem was that he had great difficulty storing
printed words. His oral vocabulary was fine, and he could grasp the theory of
phonics but apparently not it—practice; and he would sometimes reel a sentence
off flawlessly and then come up totally blank when you asked him to rephrase
it. His father had been afraid that Chuck was dyslexic, but Johnny didn't think
so—he had never met a dyslexic child that he was aware of, although many
parents seized on the words to explain or excuse the reading problems of their
children. Chuck's problem seemed more general—a loose, across-the-board reading
phobia.
It was a problem
that had become more and more apparent over the last five years of Chuck's
schooling, but his parents had only begun to take it seriously—as Chuck
had—when his sports eligibility became endangered. And that was not the worst
of it. This winter would be Chuck's last good chance to take the Scholastic
Achievement Tests, if he expected to start college in the fall of 1977. The
maths were not much of a problem, but the rest of the exam... well... if he
could have the questions read aloud to him, he would do an average-to-good job.
Five hundreds, no sweat. But they don't let you bring a reader with you when
you take the SATs, not even if your dad is a biggie in the world of New
Hampshire business.
“But I found him
a ch... changed man. He knew what lay before him and his courage was... ...
supper superb. He asked for nothing; he regretted nothing. All the terror and
the nerv... nervousness which had puss... possett... possessed him so long as
he was cuh cuh... culafronted... confronted by an unknown fate... “
Johnny had seen
the ad for a tutor in the Maine” Time's and had applied without too much hope.
He had moved down to Kittery in mid-February, needing more than anything else
to get away from Pownal, from the boxful of mail each day, the reporters who
had begun to find their way to the house in ever-increasing numbers, the
nervous women with the wounded eyes who had just “dropped by” because “they
just happened to be in the neighborhood” (one of those who had just dropped by
because she just happened to be in the neighborhood had a Maryland license
plate; another was driving a tired old Ford with Arizona tags). Their hands,
stretching out to touch him...
In Kittery he had
discovered for the first time that an anonymous name like
John-no-middle-initial-Smith had its advantages. His third day in town he had
applied for a job as a shortorder cook, putting down his experience in the UMO
commons and one summer cooking at a boys” camp in the Rangely Lakes as
experience. The diner's owner, a tough-as-nails widow named Ruby Pelletier, had
looked over his application and said, “You're a teensy bit overeducated for slinging
hash. You know that, don't you, slugger?”
“That's right,”
Johnny said. “I went and educated my-self right out of the job market.”
Ruby Pelletier
put her hands on her scrawny hips, threw her head back, and bellowed laughter.
“You think you can keep your shit together at two in the morning when twelve CB
cowboys pull in all at once and order scrambled eggs, bacon, sausage, french
toast, and flap-jacks?”
“I guess maybe,”
Johnny said.
“I guess maybe
you don't know what the eff I'm talking about just yet,” Ruby said, “but I'll
give you a go, college boy. Go get yourself a physical so we're square with the
board of health and bring me back a clean bill. I'll put you right on.”
He had done that,
and after a harum-scarum first two weeks (which included a painful rash of
blisters on his right hand from dropping a french-fry basket into a well of
boiling fat a little too fast), he had been riding the job instead of the other
way around. When he saw Chatsworth's ad, he had sent his resume to the box
number. In the course of the resume he had listed his special ed credentials,
which included a one-semester seminar in learning disabilities and reading
problems.
In late April, as
he was finishing his second month at the diner, he had gotten a letter from
Roger Chatsworth, asking him to appear for an interview on May 5. He made the
necessary arrangements to take the day off, and at 2: loon a lovely midspring
afternoon he had been sitting in Chatsworth's study, a tall, ice-choked glass
of Pepsi-Cola in one hand, listening to Stuart talk about his son's reading
problems.
“That sound like
dyslexia to you?” Stuart asked.
“No. It sounds
like a general reading phobia.”
Chatsworth had
winced a little. “Jackson's Syndrome?” Johnny had been impressed—as he was no doubt
supposed to be. Michael Carey Jackson was a reading-and-grammar specialist from
the University of Southern California who had caused something of a stir nine
years ago with a book called The Unlearning Reader. The book described a loose
basket of reading problems that had since become known as Jackson's Syndrome.
The book was a good one if you could get past the dense academic jargon. The
fact that Chatsworth apparently had done so told Johnny a good deal about the
man's commitment to solving his son's problem.
“Something like
it,” Johnny agreed. “But you understand I haven't even met your son yet, or
listened to him read.”
“He's got course
work to make up from last year. American Writers, a nine-week history block,
and civics, of all things. He flunked his final exam there because he couldn't
read the beastly thing. Have you got a New Hampshire teacher's certificate?”
“No,” Johnny
said, “but getting one is no problem”
“And how would
you handle the situation?”
Johnny outlined
the way he would deal with it. A lot of oral reading on Chuck's part, leaning
heavily on high-impact materials such as fantasy, science fiction, Westerns,
and boy-meets-car juvenile novels. Constant questioning on what had just been
read. And a relaxation technique described in Jackson's book. “High achievers
often suffer the most,” Johnny said. “They try too hard and reinforce the
block. It's a kind of mental stutter that...
“Jackson says
that?”. Chatsworth interposed sharply.
Johnny smiled.
“No, I say that,” he said
“Okay. Go on.”
“Sometimes, if
the student can totally blank his mind right after reading and not feel the
pressure to recite back right away, the circuits seem to dear themselves. When
that begins to happen, the student begins to rethink his line of attack. It's a
positive thinking kind of thing...”
Chatsworth's eyes
had gleamed. Johnny had just touched on the linchpin of his own personal
philosophy -probably the linchpin for the beliefs of most self-made men.
“Nothing succeeds like success,” he said.
“Well, yes.
Something like that.”
“How long would
it take you to get a New Hampshire certificate?”
“No longer than
it takes them to process my application. Two weeks, maybe.”
“Then you could
start on the twentieth?”
Johnny blinked.
“You mean I'm hired?”
“If you want the
job, you're hired. You can stay in the guest house, it'll keep the goddam
relatives at bay this summer, not to mention Chuck's friends—and I want him to
really buckle down. I'll pay you six hundred dollars a month, not a king's
ransom, but if Chuck gets along, I'll pay you a substantial bonus.
Substantial.”
Chatsworth
removed his glasses and rubbed a hand across his face. “I love my boy, Mr.
Smith. I only want the best for him. Help us out a little if you can.”
“I'll try.”
Chatsworth put
his glasses back on and picked up Johnny's resume again. “You haven't taught
for a helluva long time. Didn't agree with you?”
Here” it comes,
Johnny thought.
“It agreed,” he
said, “but I was in an accident.”
Chatsworth's eyes
had gone to the scars on Johnny's neck where the atrophied tendons had been
partially repaired. “Car crash?”
“Yes.”
“Bad one?”
“Yes.”
“You seem fine
now,” Chatsworth said. He picked up the resume, slammed it into a drawer and,
amazingly, that had been the end of the questions. So after five years Johnny
was teaching again, although his student load was only one.
2.
“As for me, who
had i... indirectly br .. ~. brog... brought his death upon him, he took my
hand with a weak grip and smiled his for... forgiveness up to me. It was a hard
moment, and I went away feeling that I had done more harm in the world than I
could ever ma make up to it.”,
Chuck snapped the
book closed. “There. Last one. in the pool's a green banana.”
“Hold it a
minute, Chuck.”
“Ahhhhhhh.. .
“Chuck sat down again, heavily, his face composing itself into what Johnny
already thought of as his now the questions expression. Long-suffering good
humor predominated, but beneath it he could sometimes see another Chuck:
sullen, worried, and scared. Plenty scared. Because it was a reader's world,
the unlettered of America were dinosaurs lumbering down a blind alley, and
Chuck was smart enough to know it. And he was plenty afraid of what might
happen to him when he got back to school this fall.
“Just a couple of
questions, Chuck.”
“Why bother? You
know I won't be able to answer them.”
“Oh yes. This
time you'll be able to answer them all.”
“I can never
understand what I read, you ought to know that by now. “Chuck looked morose and
unhappy. “I don't even know what you stick around for, unless it's the chow.”
“You'll be able
to answer these questions because they're not about the book.”
Chuck glanced up.
“Not about the book? Then why ask em? I thought...”
“Just humour me,
okay?”
Johnny's heart
was pounding hard, and he was not totally surprised to find that he was scared.
He had been planning this for a long time, waiting for just the right
confluence of circumstances. This was as close as he was ever going to get.
Mrs. Chatsworth was not hovering around anxiously, making Chuck that much more
nervous. None of his buddies were splashing around in the pool, making him feel
self-conscious about reading aloud like a backward fourth grader. And most
important, his father, the man Chuck wanted to please above all others in the
world, was not here. He was in Boston at a New England Environmental Commission
meeting on water pollution.
From Edward
Stanney's An Overview of Learning Disabilities:
“The subject,
Rupert J., was sitting in the” third row of a movie theater. He was closest to
the screen by more than six rows, and was the only one in a position to observe
that a small fire had started in the accumulated litter on the” floor. Ru pert
J. stood up and cried “F-F-F-F-F -” while the people” behind him shouted for
him to sit down and be quiet
.
“How did that
make you feel?” l asked Rupert J
“I could never
explain in a thousand years how it made me feel,” he answered. “J was scared,
but even more than being scared, 7 was frustrated. I felt inadequate, not fit
to be a member of the human race”. The stuttering always made me feel that way,
but now I felt impotent, too.”
“'Was there”
anything else?”
“Yes, I felt
jealousy, because” someone” else would see” the” fire and you know -'"Get
the glory of reporting it?”
“Yes, that's
right. I saw the fire starting, I was the only one. And all I could say was
F-F-F-F like a stupid broken record. Not fit to be a member of the human race”
describes it best.”
“'And how did you
break the block?”
“The” day before
had been my mother's birthday. l got her half a dozen roses at the florist's.
And I stood there with all of them yelling at me and l thought: I am going to
open my mouth and scream ROSES! lust as loud as I can. I got that word all
ready.”
“'Then what did
you do?”
“'I opened my
mouth and screamed FIRE! at the top of my lungs. "”
It had been eight
years since Johnny had read that case history in the introduction to Stanney's
text, but he had never forgotten it. He had always thought that the key word in
Rupert J. “s recollection of what had happened was impotent. If you feel that
sexual intercourse is the most important thing on earth at this point in time,
your risk of corning up with a limp penis increases ten or a hundredfold. And
if you feel that reading is the most important thing on earth...
“What's your
middle name, Chuck?” he asked casually. “Murphy,” Chuck said with a little
grin. “How's that for bad? My mother's maiden name. You tell Jack or Al that,
and I'll be forced to do gross damage to your skinny body.”
“No-fear,” Johnny
said. “When's your birthday?”
“September 8.”
Johnny began to
throw the questions faster, not giving Chuck a chance to think—but they weren't
questions you had to think about.
“What's your
girl's name?”
“Beth. You know
Beth, Johnny...
“What's her
middle name?”
Chuck grinned.
“Alma. Pretty horrible, right?”
“What's your
paternal grandfather's name?”
“Richard.”
“Who do you like
in the American League East this year?”
“Yankees. In a
walk.”
“Who do you like
for president?”
“I'd like to see
Jerry Brown get it.”
“You planning to
trade that Vette?”
“Not this year.
Maybe next.”
“Your mom's
idea?”
“You bet. She
says it outraces her peace of mind.”
“How did Red Hawk
get past the guards and kill Danny Jupiter?”
“Sherburne didn't
pay enough attention to that trapdoor leading into the jail attic,” Chuck said
promptly. without thinking, and Johnny felt a sudden burst of triumph that hit
him like a knock of straight bourbon. It had worked. He had gotten Chuck
talking about roses, and he had responded with a good, healthy yell of fire!
Chuck was looking
at him in almost total surprise.
“Red Hawk got
into the attic through the skylight. Kicked open the trapdoor. Shot Danny
Jupiter. Shot Tom Kenyon, too.”
“That's right,
Chuck.”
“I remembered,”
he muttered, and then looked up at Johnny, eyes widening, a grin starting at
the corners of his mouth. “You tricked me into remembering!”
“I just took you
by the hand and led you around the side of whatever has been in your way all
this time,” Johnny said. “But whatever it is, it's still there, Chuck. Don't
kid yourself. Who was the girl Sherburne fell for?”
“It was... “His
eyes clouded a little, and he shook his head reluctantly. “I don't remember.
“He struck his thigh with sudden viciousness. “I can't remember anything! I'm
so fucking stupid!”
“Can you remember
ever having been told how your dad and mom met?”
Chuck looked up
at him and smiled a little. There was an angry red place on his thigh where he
had struck himself. “Sure. She was working for Avis down in Charleston, South
Carolina. She rented my dad a car with a fiat tire. “Chuck laughed. “She still
claims she only married him because number two tries harder.
“And who was that
girl Sherburne got interested in?”
“Jenny Langhorne.
Big-time trouble for him. She's Gresham's girl. A redhead. Like Beth. She...
“He broke off, staring at Johnny as if he had just produced a rabbit from the
breast pocket of his shirt. “You did it again!”
“No. You did it.
It's a simple trick of misdirection. Why do you say Jenny Langhorne is big-time
trouble for John Sherburne?”
“Well, because
Gresham's the big wheel there in that town...”
“What town?”
Chuck opened his
mouth, but nothing came out. Suddenly he cut his eyes away from Johnny's face
and looked at the pool. Then he smiled and looked back. “Amity. The same as in
the flick Jaws.”
“Good! How did
you come up with the name?”
Chuck grinned.
“This makes no sense at all, but I started thinking about trying out for the
swimming team, and there it was. What a trick. What a great trick.”
“Okay. That's
enough for today, I think. “Johnny felt tired, sweaty, and very, very good.
“You just made a breakthrough, in case you didn't notice. Let's swim:
Last one in's a
green banana.”
“Johnny?”
“What?”
“Will that always
work?”
“If you make a
habit of it, it will,” Johnny said. “And every time you go around that block
instead of trying to bust through the middle of it, you're going to make it a
little smaller. I think you'll begin to see an improvement in your word-to-word
reading before long, also. I know a couple of other little tricks. He fell
silent. What he had just given Chuck was less the truth than a king of hypnotic
suggestion.
“Thanks, Chuck
said. The mask of long-suffering good humor was gone, replaced by naked gratitude.
“If you get me over this, I'll... well, I guess I'd get down and kiss your feet
if you wanted me to. Sometimes I get so scared, I feel like I'm letting my dad
down...”
“Chuck, don't you
know that's part of the problem?”
“It is?”
“Yeah. You're...
you're overswinging. Overthrowing. Overeverything. And it may not be just a
psychological block, you know. There are people who believe that some reading
problems, Jackson's Syndrome, reading phobias, all of that, may be some kind
of... mental birthmark. A fouled circuit, a faulty relay, a d... “He shut his
mouth with a snap.
“A what?” Chuck
asked.
“A dead zone,”
Johnny said slowly. “Whatever. Names don't matter. Results do. The misdirection
trick really isn't a trick at all. It's educating a fallow part of your brain
to do the work of that small faulty section. For you, that means getting into
an oral-based train of thought every time you hit a snag. You're actually
changing the location in your brain from which your thought is coming. It's
learning to switch-hit.”
“But can I do it?
You think I can do it?”
“I know you can,”
Johnny said.
“All right. Then
I will. “Chuck dived low and flat into the pool and came up, shaking water out
of his long hair in a fine spray of droplets. “Come on in! It's fine!”
“I will,” Johnny
said, but for the moment he was content just to stand on the pool's tile facing
and watch Chuck swim powerfully toward the pool's deep end to savor this
success. There had been no good feeling like this when he had suddenly known
Eileen Magown's kitchen curtains were taking fire, no good feeling like this
when he had uncovered the name of Frank Dodd. If God had given him a talent, it
was teaching, not knowing things he had no business knowing. This was the sort
of thing he had been made for, and when he had been teaching at Cleaves Mills
back in 1970, he had known it. More important, the kids had known it and
responded to it, as Chuck had done just now.
“You gonna stand
there like a dummy?” Chuck asked. Johnny dived into the pool.
CHAPTER EIGHTEEN
1.
Warren Richardson
came out of his small office building at quarter to five as he always did. He
walked around to the parking lot and hoisted his two-hundred-pound bulk behind
the wheel of his Chevy Caprice and started the engine. All according to routine.
What was not according to routine was the face that appeared suddenly in the
rear-view mirror an olive-skinned, stubbled face framed by long hair and set
off by eyes every bit as green as those of Sarah Hazlett or Chuck Chatsworth.
Warren Richardson had not been so badly scared since he was a kid, and his
heart took a great, unsteady leap in his chest.
“Howdy,” said
Sonny Elliman, leaning over the seat.
“Who... “was all
Richardson managed, uttering the word in a terrified hiss of breath. His heart was
pounding so hard that dark specks danced and pulsed before his eyes in rhythm
with its beat. He was afraid he might have a heart attack.
“Easy,” the man
who had been hiding in his back seat said. “Go easy, man. Lighten up.”
And Warren
Richardson felt an absurd emotion. It was gratitude. The man who had scared him
wasn't going to scare him anymore. He must be a nice man, he must be—
“Who are you?” he
managed this time.
“A friend,” Sonny
said.
Richardson
started to turn and fingers as hard as pincers bit into the sides of his flabby
neck. The pain was excruciating. Richardson drew breath in a convulsive,
heaving whine.
“You don't need
to turn around, man. You can see me as well as you need to see me in your
rear-view. Can you dig that?”
“Yes,” Richardson
gasped. “Yes yes yes just let me go I”
The pincers began
to ease up, and again he felt that irrational sense of gratitude. But he no
longer doubted that the man in the back seat was dangerous, or that he was in
this car on purpose although he couldn't think why anyone would -And then he
could think why someone would, at least why someone might, it wasn't the sort
of thing you'd expect any ordinary candidate for office to do, but Greg
Stillson wasn't ordinary, Greg Stillson was a crazy man, and—
Very softly, Warren
Richardson began to blubber.
“Got to talk to
you, man,” Sonny said. His voice was kind and regretful, but in the rear-view
mirror his eyes glittered green. amusement. “Got to talk to you like a Dutch
uncle.”
“It's Stillson,
isn't it? It's—.
The pincers were
suddenly back, the man's fingers were buried in his neck, and Richardson
uttered a high-pitched shriek.
“No names,” the
terrible man in the back seat told him in that same kind-yet-regretful voice.
“You draw your own conclusions, Mr. Richardson, but keep the names to yourself.
I've got one thumb just over your carotid artery and my fingers are over by
your jugular, and I can turn you into a human turnip, if I want to.”
“What do you
want?” Richardson asked. He did not exactly moan, but it was a near thing; he
had never felt more like moaning in his life. He could not believe that this
was happening in the parking lot behind his real estate office in Capital City.
New Hampshire. on a bright summer's day. He could see the clock set into the
red brick of the town hall tower. It said ten minutes to five. At home, Norma
would be putting the pork chops, nicely coated with Shake “n Bake, into the
oven to broil. Sean would be watching Sesame Street on TV. And there was a man
behind him threatening to cut off the flow of blood to his brain and turn him
into an idiot. No, it wasn't real; it was like a nightmare. The sort of
nightmare that makes you moan in your sleep.
“I don't want
anything,” Sonny Elliman said. “It's all a matter of what you want.”
“I don't understand
what you're talking about. “But he was terribly afraid that he did.
“That story in
the New Hampshire Journal about funny real estate deals,” Sonny said. “You
surely did have a lot to say, Mr. Richardson, didn't you? Especially about
certain people.”
“I...”
“That stuff about
the Capital Mail, for instance. Hinting around about kickbacks and payoffs and
one hand washing the other. All that horseshit. “The fingers tightened on
Richardson's neck again, and this time he did moan. But he hadn't been identified
in the story, he had just been “an informed source”. How had they known? How
had Greg Stillson known?
The man behind
him began to speak rapidly into Warren Richardson's ear now, his breath warm
and ticklish.
“You could get
certain people into trouble talking horseshit like that, Mr. Richardson, you
know it? People running for public office, let's say. Running for office, it's
like playing bridge, you dig it? You're vulnerable. People can sling mud and it
sticks, especially these days. Now, there's no trouble yet. I'm happy to tell
you that, because if there was trouble, you might be sitting here picking your
teeth out of your nose instead of having a nice little talk with me.”
In spite of his
pounding heart, in spite of his fear, Richardson said: “This... this person...
young man, you're crazy if you think you can protect him. He's played it as
fast and loose as a snakeoil salesman in a southern town. Sooner or later...”
A thumb slammed
into his ear, grinding. The pain was immense, unbelievable. Richardson's head
slammed into his window and he cried out. Blindly, he groped for the horn ring.
“You blow that
horn, I'll kill you,” the voice whispered.
Richardson let
his hands drop. The thumb eased up.
“You ought to use
Q-tips in there, man,” the voice said. “I got wax all over my thumb. Pretty
gross.”
Warren Richardson
began to cry weakly. He was powerless to stop himself. Tears coursed down his
fat cheeks. “Please don't hurt me anymore,” he said. “Please don't. Please.
“It's like I
said,” Sonny told him. “It's all a matter of what you want. Your job isn't to
worry what someone else might say about... ... these certain people. Your job
is to watch what comes out of your own mouth. Your job is to think before you
talk the next time that guy from the Journal comes around. You might think
about how easy it is to find out who “an informed source” is. Or you might
think about what a bummer it would be if your house burned down. Or you might
think about how you'd pay for plastic surgery if someone threw some battery
acid in your wife's face.”
The man behind
Richardson was panting now. He sounded like an animal in a jungle.
“Or you might
think, you know, dig it, how easy it would be for someone to come along and
pick up your son on his way home from kindergarten.
“Don't you say
that!” Richardson cried hoarsely. “Don't you say that, you slimy bastard!”
“All I'm saying
is that you want to think about what you want,” Sonny said. “An election, it's
an all-American thing, you know? Especially in a Bicentennial year. Everyone
should have a good time. No one has a good time if numb fucks like you start
telling a lot of lies. Numb jealous fucks like you.”
The hand went
away altogether. The rear door opened. Oh thank God, thank God.
“You just want to
think,” Sonny Elliman repeated. “Now do we have an understanding?”
“Yes,” Richardson
whispered. “But if you think Gr. a certain person can be elected using these
tactics, you're badly mistaken.”
“No,” Sonny said.
“You're the one who's mistaken. Because everyone's having a good time. Make
sure that you're not left out.”
Richardson didn't
answer. He sat rigid behind the steering wheel, his neck throbbing, staring at
the clock on the Town Office Building as if it were the only sane thing left in
his life. It was now almost five of five. The pork chops would be in by now.
The man in the
back seat said one more thing and then he was gone, striding away rapidly, his
long hair swinging against the collar of his shirt, not looking back. He went
around the corner of the building and out of sight.
The last thing he
had said to Warren Richardson was:
“Q-Tips.”
Richardson began
to shake all over and it was a long time before he could drive. His first clear
feeling was anger—terrible anger. The impulse that came with it was to drive
directly to the Capital City police department (housed in the building below
the dock) and report what had happened—the threats on his wife and son, the
physical abuse—and on whose behalf it had been done.
You might think
about how you'd pay for plastic surgery... or how easy it would be for someone
to come” along and pick up your son...
But why? Why take
the chance? What he had said to that thug was just the plain, unvarnished
truth. Everyone in southern New Hampshire real estate knew that Stillson had
been running a shell game, reaping short-term profits that would land him in
jail, not sooner or later, but sooner or even sooner. His campaign was an
exercise in idiocy. And now strong-arm tactics! No one could get away with that
for long in America—and especially not in New England.
But let someone
else blow the whistle.
Someone with less
to lose.
Warren Richardson
started his car and went home to his pork chops and said nothing at all.
Someone else would surely put a stop to it.
CHAPTER NINETEEN
1.
On a day not long
after Chuck's first breakthrough, Johnny Smith stood in the bathroom of the
guest house, running his Norelco over his cheeks. Looking at himself closeup in
a mirror always gave him a weird feeling these days, as if he were looking at
an older brother instead of himself. Deep horizontal lines had grooved
themselves across his forehead. Two more bracketed his mouth. Strangest of all,
there was that streak of white, and the rest of his hair was beginning to go
gray. It seemed to have started almost overnight.
He snapped off
the razor and went out into the combination kitchen-living room. Lap of luxury,
he thought, and smiled a little. Smiling was starting to feel natural again. He
turned on the TV, got a Pepsi out of the fridge, and settled down to watch the
news. Roger Chatsworth was due back later in the evening, and tomorrow Johnny
would have the distinct pleasure of telling him that his son was beginning to
make real progress.
Johnny had been
up to see his own father every two weeks or so. He was pleased with Johnny's
new job and listened with keen interest as Johnny told him about the
Chatsworths, the house in the pleasant college town of Durham, and Chuck's
problems. Johnny, in turn, listened as his father told him about the gratis
work he was doing at Charlene MacKenzie's house in neighboring New Gloucester.
“Her husband was
a helluva doctor but not much of a handyman,” Herb said. Charlene and Vera had
been friends before Vera's deepening involvement in the stranger offshoots of
fundamentalism. That had separated them. Her husband, a GP, had died of a heart
attack in 1973. “Place was practically falling down around that woman's ears,”
Herb said. “Least I could do. I go up on Saturdays and she gives me a dinner
before I come back home. I have to tell the truth, Johnny, she cooks better
than you do.”
“Looks better,
too,” Johnny said blandly.
“Sure, she's a
fine-looking woman, but it's nothing like that, Johnny. Your mother not even in
her grave a year...
But Johnny
suspected that maybe it was something like that, and secretly couldn't have
been more pleased. He didn't fancy the idea of his father growing old alone.
On the
television, Walter Cronkite was serving up the evening's political news. Now,
with the primary season over and the conventions only weeks away, it appeared
that Jimmy Carter had the Democratic nomination sewed up. It was Ford who was
in a scrap for his political life with Ronald Reagan, the ex-governor of
California and ex-host of “GE Theater”. It was close enough to have the
reporters counting individual delegates, and in one of her infrequent letters
Sarah Hazlett had written: “Walt's got his fingers (and toes!) crossed that
Ford gets in. As a candidate for state senate up here, he's already thinking
about coattails. And he says that, in Maine at least, Reagan hasn't any.”
While he was
shortorder cooking in Kittery, Johnny had gotten into the habit of going down
to Dover or Portsmouth or any number of smaller towns in New Hampshire a couple
of times a week. All of the candidates for president were in and out, and it
was a unique opportunity to see those who were running closeup and without the
nearly regal trappings bf authority that might later surround any one of them.
It became something of a hobby, although of necessity a short-lived one; when
New Hampshire's first-in-the-nation primary was over, the candidates would move
on to Florida without a glance back. And of course a few of their number would
bury their political ambitions somewhere between Portsmouth and Keene. Never a
political creature before -except during the Vietnam era—Johnny became an avid
politician-watcher in the healing aftermath of the Castle Rock business—and his
own particular talent, affliction, whatever it was, played a part in that, too.
He shook hands
with Morris Udall and Henry Jackson. Fred Harris clapped him on the back.
Ronald Reagan gave him a quick and practiced politico's double-pump and said,
“Get out to the polls and help us if you can. “Johnny had nodded agreeably
enough, seeing no point in disabusing Mr. Reagan of his notion that he was a
bona fide New Hampshire voter.
He had chatted
with Sarge Shriver just inside the main entrance to the monstrous Newington
Mall for nearly fifteen minutes. Shriver, his hair freshly cut and smelling of
after-shave and perhaps desperation, was accompanied by a single aide with his
pockets stuffed full of leaflets, and a Secret Service man who kept scratching
furtively at his acne. Shriver had seemed inordinately pleased to be
recognized. A minute or two before Johnny said goodbye, a candidate in search
of some local office had approached Shriver and asked him to sign his
nominating papers. Shriver had smiled gently.
Johnny had sensed
things about all of them, but little of a specific nature. It was as if they
had made the act of touching such a ritual that their true selves were buried
beneath a layer of tough, clear lucite. Although he saw most of them—with the
exception of President Ford -Johnny had felt only once that sudden,
electrifying snap of knowledge that he associated with Eileen Magown -and, in
an entirely different way, with Frank Dodd.
It was a quarter
of seven in the morning. Johnny had driven down to Manchester in his old
Plymouth. He had worked from ten the evening before until six this morning. He
was tired, but the quiet winter dawn had been too good to sleep through. And he
liked Manchester, Manchester with its narrow streets and timeworn brick
buildings, the gothic textile mills strung along the river like mid-Victorian
beads. He had not been consciously politician-hunting that morning; he thought
he would cruise the streets for a while, until they began to get crowded, until
the cold and silent spell of February was broken, then go back to Kittery and
catch some sacktime.
He turned a
corner and there had been three nondescript sedans pulled up in front of a shoe
factory in a no-parking zone. Standing by the gate in the cyclone fencing was
Jimmy Carter, shaking hands with the men and women going on shift. They were
carrying lunch buckets or paper sacks, breathing out white clouds, bundled into
heavy coats, their faces still asleep. Carter had a word for each of them. His
grin, then not so publicized as it became later, was tireless and fresh. His
nose was red with the cold.
Johnny parked
half a block down and walked toward the factory gate, his shoes crunching and
squeaking on the packed snow. The Secret Service agent with Carter sized him up
quickly and then dismissed him or seemed to.
“I'll vote for
anyone who's interested in cutting taxes,” a man in an old ski parka was
saying. The parka had a constellation of what looked like battery-acid burns in
one sleeve. “The goddam taxes are killing me, I kid you not.”
“Well, we're
gonna see about that,” Carter said. “Lookin over the tax situation is gonna be
one of our first priori-ties when I get into the White House. “There was a
serene self-confidence in his voice that struck Johnny and made him a little
uneasy.
Carter's eyes,
bright and almost amazingly blue, shifted to Johnny. “Hi there,” he said.
“Hello, Mr.
Carter,” Johnny said. “I don't work here. I was driving by and saw you.”
“Well I'm glad
you stopped. I'm running for President.”
“I know.”
Carter put his
hand out. Johnny shook it.
Carter began: “I
hope you'll... “And broke off.
The flash came, a
sudden, powerful zap that was like sticking his finger in an electric socket.
Carter's eyes sharpened. He and Johnny looked at each other for what seemed a
very long time.
The Secret
Service guy didn't like it. He moved toward Carter, and suddenly he was
unbuttoning his coat. Some-where behind them, a million miles behind them, the
shoe factory's seven o'clock whistle blew its single note into the crisp blue
morning.
Johnny let go of
Carter's hand, but still the two of them looked at each other.
“What the hell
was that?” Carter asked, very softly.
“You've probably
got someplace to go, don't you?” the Secret Service guy said suddenly. He put a
hand on Johnny's shoulder. It was a very big hand. “Sure you do.”
“It's all right,”
Carter said.
“You're going to
be president,” Johnny said.
The agent's hand
was still on Johnny's shoulder, more lightly now but still there, and he was
getting something from him, too. The Secret Service guy
(eyes)
didn't like his
eyes. He thought they were
(assassin's eyes,
psycho's eyes)
cold and strange,
and if this guy put so much as one hand in his coat pocket. if he even looked
as if he might be going in that direction, he was going to put him on the
sidewalk. Behind the Secret Service guy's second-to-second evaluation of the
situation there ran a simple, maddening litany of thought:
(laurel maryland
laurel maryland laurel maryland laurel)
“Yes,” Carter
said.
“It's going to be
closer than anyone thinks... closer than you think, but you'll win. He'll beat
himself. Poland. Poland will beat him.”
Carter only
looked at him. half-smiling.
“You've got a
daughter. She's going to go to a public school in Washington. She's going to go
to... “But it was in the dead zone. “I think... it's a school named after a
freed slave.”
“Fellow, I want
you to move on,” the agent said.
Carter looked at
him and the agent subsided.
“It's been a
pleasure meeting you,” Carter said. “A little disconcerting, but a pleasure.”
Suddenly, Johnny
was himself again. It had passed. He was aware that his ears were cold and that
he had to go to the bathroom. “Have a good morning,” he said lamely.
“Yes. You too,
now.”
He had gone back
to his car, aware of the Secret Service guy's eyes still on him. He drove away,
bemused. Shortly after, Carter had put away the competition in New Hampshire
and went on to Florida.
2.
Walter Cronkite
finished with the politicians and went on to the civil war in Lebanon. Johnny
got up and freshened his glass of Pepsi. He tipped the glass at the TV. Your
good health, Walt. To the three Ds—death, destruction, and destiny. Where would
we be without them.
There was a light
tap at the door. “Come in,” Johnny called, expecting Chuck, probably with an
invitation to the drive-in over in Somersworth. But it wasn't Chuck. It was
Chuck's father.
“Hi, Johnny,” he
said. He was wearing wash4aded jeans and an old cotton sports shirt, the tails
out. “May I come in?”
“Sure. I thought
you weren't due back until late.”
“Well, Shelley
gave me a call. “Shelley was his wife. Roger came in and shut the door. “Chuck
came to see her. Burst into tears, just like a little kid. He told her you were
doing it, Johnny. He said he thought he was going to be all right.”
Johnny put his
glass down. “We've got a ways to go,” he said.
“Chuck met me at
the airport. I haven't seen him looking like he did since he was... what? Ten?
Eleven? When I gave him the . 22 he'd been waiting for for five years. He read
me a story out of the newspaper. The improvement is... almost eerie. I came
over to thank you.”
“Thank Chuck,”
Johnny said. “He's an adaptable boy.
A lot of what's
happening to him is positive reinforcement. He's psyched himself into believing
he can do it and now he's tripping on it. That's the best way I can put it.”
Roger sat down.
“He says you're teaching him to switch-hit.”
Johnny smiled.
“Yeah, I guess so.”
“Is he going to
be able to take the SATs?”
“I don't know.
And I'd hate to see him gamble and lose. The SATs are a heavy pressure situation.
If he gets in that lecture hall with an answer sheet in front of him and an IBM
pencil in his hand and then freezes up, it's going to be a real setback for
him. Have you thought about a good prep school for a year? A place like
Pittsfield Academy?”
“We've kicked the
idea around, but frankly I always thought of it as just postponing the
inevitable.”
“That's one of
the things that's been giving Chuck trouble. This feeling that he's in a
make-or-break situation.”
“I've never
pressured Chuck.”
“Not on purpose,
I know that. So does he. On the other hand, you're a rich, successful man who
graduated from college sum ma cum laude. I think Chuck feels a little bit like
he's batting after Hank Aaron.”
“There's nothing
I can do about that, Johnny.”
“I think a year
at a prep school, away from home, after his senior year might put things in
perspective for him. And he wants to go to work in one of your mills next
summer. If he were my kid and if they were my mills, I'd let him.”
“Chuck wants to
do that? How come he never told me?”
“Because he
didn't want you to think he was ass-kissing,” Johnny said.
“He told you
that?”
“Yes. He wants to
do it because he thinks the practical experience will be helpful to him later
on. The kid wants to follow in your footsteps, Mr. Chatsworth. You've left some
big ones behind you. That's what a lot of the reading block has been about.
He's having buck fever.”
In a sense, he
had lied. Chuck had hinted around these things, and even mentioned some of them
obliquely, but he had not been as frank as Johnny had led Roger Chats-worth to
believe. Not verbally, at least. But Johnny had touched him from time to time,
and he had gotten signals that way. He had looked through the pictures Chuck
kept in his wallet and knew how Chuck felt about his dad. There were things he
could never tell this pleasant but rather distant man sitting across from him.
Chuck idolized the ground his father walked on. Beneath his easy-come easy-go
exterior (an exterior that was very similar to Roger's), the boy was eaten up
by the secret conviction that he could never measure up. His father had built a
ten percent interest in a failing woolen mill into a New England textile
empire. He believed that the issue of his father's love hung on his own ability
to move similar mountains. To play sports. To get into a good college. To read.
“How sure are you
about all of this?” Roger asked.
“I'm pretty sure.
But I'd appreciate it if you never mentioned to Chuck that we talked this way.
They're his secrets I'm telling. “And that's truer than you'll ever know.
“All right. And
Chuck and his mother and I will talk over the prep school idea. In the
meantime, this is yours. He took out a plain white business envelope from his
back pocket and passed it to Johnny.
“What is it?”
“Open it and
see.”
Johnny opened it.
Inside the envelope was a cashier's check for five hundred dollars.
“Oh, hey...! I
can't take this.”
“You can, and you
will. I promised you a bonus if you could perform, and I keep my promises.
There'll be an-other when you leave.”
“Really, Mr.
Chatsworth, I just...”
“Shh. I'll tell
you something, Johnny. “He leaned forward. He was smiling a peculiar little
smile, and Johnny suddenly felt he could see beneath the pleasant exterior to
the man who had made all of this happen—the house, the grounds, the pool, the
mills. And, of course, his son's reading phobia, which could probably be
classified a hysterical neurosis.
“It's been my
experience that ninety-five percent of the people who walk the earth are simply
inert, Johnny. One percent are saints, and one percent are assholes. The other
three percent are the people who do what they say they can do. I'm in that
three percent, and so are you. You earned that money. I've got people in the
mills that take home eleven thousand dollars a year for doing little more than
playing with their dicks. But I'm not bitching. I'm a man of the world, and all
that means is I under-stand what powers the world. The fuel mix is one part
high-octane to nine parts pure bull-shit. You're no bullshitter. So you put
that money in your wallet and next time try to value yourself a little higher.
“All right,”
Johnny said. “I can put it to good use, I won't lie to you about that.
“Doctor bills?”
Johnny looked up
at Roger Chatsworth, his eyes narrowed.
“I know all about
you,” Roger said. “Did you think I wouldn't check back on the guy I hired to
tutor my son?”
“You know
about...”
“You're supposed
to be a psychic of some kind. You helped to solve a murder case in Maine. At
least, that's what the papers say. You had a teaching job lined up for last
January, but they dropped you like a hot potato when your name got in the
papers.”
“You knew? For
how long?”
“I knew before
you moved in.”
“And you still
hired me?”
“I wanted a
tutor, didn't I? You looked like you might be able to pull it off. I think I
showed excellent judgment in engaging your services.”
“Well, thanks,”
Johnny said. His voice was hoarse.
“I told you you
didn't have to say that.”
As they talked,
Walter Cronkite had finished up with the real news of the day and had gone on
to the man bites dog stories that sometimes turn up near the end of a newscast.
He was saying,... . voters in western New Hampshire have an independent running
in the third district this year.
“Well, the cash
will come in handy,” Johnny said. “That's . —”
“Shh. I want to
hear this.”
Chatsworth was
leaning forward, hands dangling between his knees, a pleasant smile of
expectation on his face. Johnny turned to look at the TV.
...Stillson,”
Cronkite said. “This forty-three-year-old insurance and real estate agent is
surely running one of the most eccentric races of Campaign “76, but both the
third-district Republican candidate, Harrison Fisher, and his Democratic
opponent, David Bowes, are running scared, because the polls have Greg Stillson
running comfortably ahead. George Herman has the story.”
“Who's Stillson?”
Johnny asked.
Chatsworth
laughed. “Oh, you gotta see this guy, Johnny. He's as crazy as a rat in a
drainpipe. But I do believe the sober-sided electorate of the third district is
going to send him to Washington this November. Unless he actually falls down
and starts frothing at the mouth. And I wouldn't completely rule that out.”
Now the TV showed
a picture of a handsome young man in a white open-throated shirt. He was speaking
to a small crowd from a bunting-hung platform in a supermarket parking lot. The
young man was exhorting the crowd. The crowd looked less than thrilled. George
Herman voiced over: “This is David Bowes, the Democratic candidate—sacrificial
offering, some would say—for the third-district seat in New Hampshire. Bowes
expected an uphill fight because New Hampshire's third district has never gone
Democratic, not even in the great LBJ blitz of 1964. But he expected his
competition to come from this man.”
Now the TV showed
a man of about sixty-five. He was speaking to a plushy fund-raising dinner. The
crowd had that plump, righteous, and slightly constipated look that seems the
exclusive province of businessmen who belong to the GOP. The speaker bore a
remarkable resemblance to Edward Gurney of Florida, although he did not have
Gurney's slim, tough build.
“This is Harrison
Fisher,” Herman said. “The voters of the third district have been sending him
to Washington every two years since 1960. He is a powerful figure in the house,
sitting on five committees and chairing the House Committee on Parks and
Waterways. It had been expected that he would beat young David Bowes handily.
But neither Fisher nor Bowes counted on a wild card in the deck. This wild
card.
The picture
switched.
“Holy God!”
Johnny said.
Beside him,
Chatsworth roared laughter and slapped his thighs. “Can you believe that guy?”
No lackadaisical
supermarket parking-lot crowd here. No comfy fund raiser in the Granite State
Room of the Portsmouth Hilton, either. Greg Stillson was standing on a platform
outside in Ridgeway, his home town. Be-hind him there loomed the statue of a
Union soldier with his rifle in his hand and his kepi tilted down over his
eyes. The street was blocked off and crowded with wildly cheering people,
predominantly young people. Stillson was wearing faded jeans and a two-pocket
Army fatigue shirt with the words GIVE PEACE A CHANCE embroidered on one pocket
and MOM'S APPLE PIE on the other. There was a hi-impact construction worker's helmet
cocked at an arrogant, rakish angle on his head, and plastered to the front of
it was a green American flag ecology sticker. Beside him was a stainless steel
cart of some kind. From the twin loudspeakers came the sound of John Denver
singing “Thank God I'm a Country Boy.”
“What's that
cart?” Johnny asked.
“You'll see,”
Roger said, still grinning hugely.
Herman said: “The
wild card is Gregory Ammas Stillson, forty-three, ex-salesman for the Truthway
Bible Company of America, ex-housepainter, and, in Oklahoma, where he grew up,
one-time rainmaker.”
“Rainmaker,” said
Johnny, bemused.
“Oh, that's one
of his planks,” Roger said. “If he's elected, we'll have rain whenever we need
it.”
George Herman
went on: Stillson's platform is... well, refreshing.”
John Denver
finished singing with a yell that brought answering cheers from the crowd. Then
Stillson started talking, his voice booming at peak amplification. His PA
system at least was sophisticated; there was hardly any distortion. His voice
made Johnny vaguely uneasy. The man had the high, hard, pumping delivery of a
revival preacher. You could see a fine spray of spittle from his lips as he
talked.
“What are we
gonna do in Washington? Why do we want to go to Washington?” Stillson roared.
“What's our platform? Our platform got five boards, my friends n neighbors,
five old boards! And what are they? I'll tell you up front! First board: THROW
THE BUMS OUT!”
A tremendous roar
of approval ripped out of the crowd. Someone threw double handfuls of confetti
into the air and someone else yelled, “Yaaaah-HOO!” Stillson leaned over his
podium.
“You wanna know
why I'm wearing this helmet, friends n neighbors? I'll tell you why. I'm wearin
it because when you send me up to Washington, I'm gonna go through them like you-know-what
through a canebrake! Gonna go through em just like this!”
And before
Johnny's wondering eyes, Stillson put his head down and began to charge up and
down the podium stage like a bull, uttering a high, yipping Rebel yell as he
did so. Roger Chatsworth simply dissolved in his chair, laughing helplessly.
The crowd went wild. Stillson charged back to the podium, took off his
construction helmet, and spun it into the crowd. A minor riot over possession
of it immediately ensued.
“Second board!”
Stillson yelled into the mike. “We're gonna throw out anyone in the government,
from the highest to the lowest, who is spending time in bed with some gal who
ain't his wife! If they wanna sleep around, they ain't gonna do it on the
public tit!”
“What did he
say?” Johnny asked, blinking.
“Oh, he's just
getting warmed up,” Roger said. He wiped his streaming eyes and went off into
another gale of laughter. Johnny wished it seemed that funny to him.
“Third board!”
Stillson roared. “We're gonna send all the pollution right into outer space!
Gonna put it in Hefty bags! Gonna put it in Glad bags! Gonna send it to Mars,
to Jupiter, and the rings of Saturn! We're gonna have clean air and we're gonna
have clean water and we're gonna have it in SIX MONTHS!”
The crowd was in
paroxysms of joy. Johnny saw many people in the crowd who were almost killing
themselves laughing, as Roger Chatsworth was presently doing.
“Fourth board!
We're gonna have all the gas and oil we need! We're gonna stop playing games
with these Arabs and get down to brass tacks! Ain't gonna be no old people in
New Hampshire turned into Popsicles this coming winter like there was last
winter!”
This brought a
solid roar of approval. The winter before an old woman in Portsmouth had been
found frozen to death in her third-floor apartment, apparently following a
turn-off by the gas company for nonpayment.
“We got the
muscle, friends n neighbors, we can do it! Anybody out there think we can't do
it?”
“NO!” The crowd
bellowed back.
“Last board,”
Stillson said, and approached the metal cart. He threw back the hinged lid and
a cloud of steam puffed out. “HOT DOGS!!”
He began to grab
double handfuls of hot dogs from the cart, which Johnny now recognized as a
portable steam table. He threw them into the crowd and went back for more. Hot
dogs flew everywhere. “Hot dogs for every man, woman, and child in America! And
when you put Greg Stillson in the House of Representatives, you gonna say HOT
DOG! SOMEONE GIVES A RIP AT LAST!”
The picture
changed. The podium was being dismantled by a crew of long-haired young men who
looked like rock band roadies. Three more of them were cleaning up the litter
the crowd had left behind. George Herman resumed: “Democratic candidate David
Bowes calls Still-son a practical joker who is trying to throw a monkey-wrench
into the workings of the democratic process. Harrison Fisher is stronger in his
criticism. He calls Stillson a cynical carnival pitchman who is playing the
whole idea of the free election as a burlesque-house joke. In speeches, he refers
to independent candidate Stilison as the only member of the American Hot Dog
party. But the fact is this: the latest CBS poll in New Hampshire's third
district showed David Bowes with twenty percent of the vote, Harrison Fisher
with twenty-six—and maverick Greg Stillson with a whopping forty-two percent.
Of course election day is still quite a way down the road, and things may
change. But for now, Greg Stillson has captured the hearts—if not the minds—of
New Hampshire's third-district voters.”
The TV showed a
shot of Herman from the waist up. Both hands had been out of sight. Now he
raised one of them. and in it was a hot dog. He took a big bite.
“This is George
Herman, CBS News, in Ridgeway, New Hampshire.”
Walter Cronkite
came back on in the CBS newsroom, chuckling. “Hot dogs,” he said, and chuckled
again. “And that's the way it is—. -,
Johnny got up and
snapped off the set. “I just can't believe that,” he said. “That guy's really a
candidate? It's not a joke?”
“Whether it's a
joke or not is a matter of personal interpretation,” Roger said, grinning, “but
he really is running. I'm a Republican myself, born and bred, but I must admit
I get a kick out of that guy Stillson. You know he hired half a dozen
ex-motorcycle outlaws as bodyguards?
Real iron horsemen.
Not Hell's Angels or anything like that, but I guess they were pretty rough
customers. He seems to have reformed them.”
Motorcycle freaks
as security. Johnny didn't like the sound of that very much. The motorcycle
freaks had been in charge of security when the Rolling Stones gave their free
concert at Altamont Speedway in California. It hadn't worked out so well.
“People put up
with a... a motorcycle goon squad?”
“No, it really
isn't like that. They're quite cleancut. And Stillson has a helluva reputation
around Ridgeway for reforming kids in trouble.
Johnny grunted
doubtfully.
“You saw him,”
Roger said, gesturing at the TV set. “The man is a clown. He goes charging
around the speaking platform, like that at every rally. Throws his helmet into
the crowd—I'd guess he's gone through a hundred of them by now—and gives out
hot dogs. He's a clown, so what? Maybe people need a little comic relief from
time to time. We're runningout of oil, the inflation is slowly but surely
getting out of control, the average guy's tax load has never been heavier, and
we're apparently getting ready to elect a fuzzy-minded Georgia cracker
president of the United States. So people want a giggle or two. Even more, they
want to thumb their noses at a political establishment that doesn't seem able
to solve anything. Stillson's harmless.”
“He's in orbit,”
Johnny said, and they both laughed.
“We have plenty
of crazy politicians around,” Roger said. “In New Hampshire we've got Stillson,
who wants to hot dog his way into the House of Representatives, so what? Out in
California they've got Hayakawa. Or take our own governor, Meldrim Thomson.
Last year he wanted to arm the New Hampshire National Guard with tactical
nuclear weapons. I'd call that big-time crazy.
“Are you saying
it's okay for those people in the third district to elect the village fool to
represent them in Washington?”
“You don't get
it,” Chatsworth said patiently. “Take a voter's-eye-view, Johnny. Those
third-district people are mostly all blue-collars and shopkeepers. The most
rural parts of the district are just starting to develop some recreational
potential. Those people look at David Bowes and they see a hungry young kid
who's trying to get elected on the basis of some slick talk and a passing
resemblance to Dustin Hoffman. They're supposed to think he's a man of the
people because he wears blue jeans.
“Then take
Fisher. My man, at least nominally. I've organized fund raisers for him and the
other Republican candidates around this part of New Hampshire. He's been on the
Hill so long he probably thinks the Capitol dome would split in two pieces if
he wasn't around to give it moral support. He's never had an original thought
in his life, he never went against the party line in his life. There's no
stigma attached to his name because he's too stupid to be very crooked,
although he'll probably wind up with some mud on him from this Koreagate thing.
His speeches have all the excitement of the copy of the National Plumbers
Wholesale Catalogue. People don't know all those things, but they can sense
them sometimes. The idea that Harrison Fisher is doing anything for his
constituency is just plain ridiculous.”
“So the answer is
to elect a loony?”
Chatsworth smiled
indulgently. “Sometimes these loonies turn out doing a pretty good job. Look at
Bella Abzug. There's a damn fine set of brains under those crazy hats. But even
if Stillson turns out to be as crazy in Washington as he is down in Ridgeway,
he's only renting the seat for two years. They'll turn him out in “78 and put
in someone who understands the lesson.”
“The lesson?”
Roger stood up.
“Don't fuck the people over for too long,” he said. “That's the lesson. Adam
Clayton Powell found out. Agnew and Nixon did, too. Just... don't fuck the
people for too long. “He glanced at his watch. “Come on over to the big house
and have a drink, Johnny.
Shelley and I are
going out later on, but we've got time for a short one.”
Johnny smiled and
got up. “Okay,” he said. “You twisted my arm.
CHAPTER TWENTY
1.
In mid-August,
Johnny found himself alone at the Chatsworth estate except for Ngo Phat, who
had his own quarters over the garage. The Chatsworth family had closed up the
house and had gone to Montreal for three weeks of r&r before the new school
year and the fall rush at the mills began.
Roger had left
Johnny the keys to his wife's Mercedes and he motored up to his dad's house in
Pownal, feeling like a potentate. His father's negotiations with Charlene
MacKenzie had entered the critical stage, and Herb was no longer bothering to
protest that his interest in her was only to make sure that the house didn't
fall down on top of her. In fact, he was in full courting plumage and made
Johnny a little nervous. After three days of it Johnny went back to the
Chatsworth house, caught up on his reading and his correspondence, and soaked
up the quiet.
He was sitting on
a rubber chair float in the middle of the pool, drinking a Seven-Up and reading
the New York Times Book Review, when Ngo came over to the pool's apron, took
off his zori, and dipped his feet into the water.
“Ahhhh,” he said.
“Much better. “He smiled at Johnny. “Quiet, huh?”
“Very quiet,”
Johnny agreed. “How goes the citizenship class, Ngo?”
“Very nice
going,” Ngo said. “We are having a field trip on Saturday. First one. Very
exciting. The whole class will be tripping.”
“Going,” Johnny
said, smiling at an image of Ngo Phat's whole citizenship class freaking on LSD
or psilpcybin.
“Pardon?” He
raised his eyebrows politely.
“Your whole class
will he going.”
“Yes, thanks. We
are going to the political speech and rally in Trimbull. We are all thinking
how lucky it is to be taking the citizenship class in an election year. It is
most instructive.”
“Yes, I'll bet it
is. Who are you going to see?”
“Greg Stirrs...
“He stopped and pronounced it again, very carefully. “Greg Stillson, who is
running independently for a seat in the U. S. House of Representatives.”
“I've heard of
him,” Johnny said. “Have you discussed him in class at all, Ngo?”
“Yes, we have had
some conversation of this man. Born in 1933. A man of many jobs. He came to New
Hampshire in 1964. Our instructor has told us that now he is here long enough
so people do not see him as a carpetfogger.”
“Bagger,” Johnny
said.
Ngo looked at him
with blank politeness.
“The term is
carpetbagger.”
“Yes, thanks.”
“Do you find
Stillson a bit odd?”
“In America
perhaps he is odd,” Ngo said. “In Vietnam there were many like him. People who
are... “He sat thinking, swishing his small and delicate feet in the blue-green
water of the pool. Then he looked up at Johnny again.
“I do not have
the English for what I wish to say. There is a game the people of my land play,
it is called the Laughing Tiger. It is old and much loved, like your baseball.
One child is dressing up as the tiger, you see. He puts on a skin. And the
other children tries to catch him as he runs and dances. The child in the skin
laughs, but he is also growling and biting, because that is the game. In my
country, before the Communists, many of the village leaders played the Laughing
Tiger. I think this Still-son knows that game, too.”
Johnny looked
over at Ngo. disturbed.
Ngo did not seem
disturbed at all. He smiled. “So we will all go and see for ourselves. After,
we are having the picnic foods. I myself am making two pies. I think it will be
nice.”
“It sounds
great.”
“It will be very
great,” Ngo said, getting up. “Afterward, in class, we will talk over all we
saw in Trimbull. Maybe we will be writing the compositions. It is much easier
to write the compositions, because one can look up the exact word. Le mot
juste.
“Yes, sometimes
writing can be easier. But I never had a high school comp class that would
believe it.”
Ngo smiled. “How
does it go with Chuck?”
“He's doing quite
well.”
“Yes, he is happy
now. Not just pretending. He is a good boy. “He stood up. “Take a rest, Johnny.
I'm going to take a nap.”
“All right.”
He watched Ngo
walk away, small, slim, and lithe in blue jeans and a faded chambray work
shirt.
The child in the
skin laughs, but he is also growling and biting, because that is the game... I
think this Stillson knows that game, too.
That thread of
disquiet again.
The pool chair
bobbed gently up and down. The sun beat pleasantly on him. He opened his Book
Review again, but the article he had been reading no longer engaged him. He put
it down and paddled the little rubber float to the edge of the pool and got
out. Trimbull was less than thirty miles away. Maybe he would just hop into
Mrs. Chatsworth's Mercedes and drive down this Saturday. See Greg Stillson in
person. Enjoy the show. Maybe... maybe shake his hand.
No. No!
But why not?
After all, he had more or less made politicians his hobby this election year.
What could possibly be so upsetting about going to see one more?
But he was upset,
no question about that. His heart was knocking harder and more rapidly than it
should have been, and he managed to drop his magazine into the pool. He fished
it out with a curse before it was saturated.
Somehow, thinking
about Greg Stilison made him think about Frank Dodd.
Utterly
ridiculous. He couldn't have any feeling at all about Stillson one way or the
other from having just seen him on TV.
Stay away.
Well, maybe he
would and maybe he wouldn't. May-be he would go down to Boston this Saturday
instead. See a film.
But a strange,
heavy feeling of fright had settled on him by the time he got back to the guest
house and changed his clothes. In a way the feeling was like an old friend—the
sort of old friend you secretly hate. Yes, he would go down to Boston on Saturday.
That would be better.
Although he
relived that day over and over in the months afterward, Johnny could never
remember exactly how or why it was that he ended up in Trimbull after all. He had
set out in another direction, planning to go down to Boston and take in the Red
Sox at Fenway Park, then maybe go over to Cambridge and nose through the
book-shops. If there was enough cash left over (he had sent four hundred
dollars of Chatsworth's bonus to his father, who in turn sent it on to Eastern
Maine Medical—a gesture tantamount to a spit in the ocean) he planned to go to
the Orson Welles Cinema and see that reggae movie, The Harder They Come. A good
day's program, and a fine day to implement it; that August 19 had dawned hot
and dear and sweet, the distillation of the perfect New England summer's day.
He had let
himself into the kitchen of the big house and made three hefty ham-and-cheese
sandwiches for lunch, put them in an old-fashioned wicker picnic basket he
found in the pantry, and after a little soul-searching, had topped off his haul
with a sixpack of Tuborg Beer. At that point he had been feeling fine,
absolutely first-rate. No thought of either Greg Stillson or his homemade
bodyguard corps of iron horsemen had so much as crossed his mind.
He put the picnic
basket on the floor of the Mercedes and drove southeast toward 1–95. All clear
enough up to that point. But then other things had begun to creep in. Thoughts
of his mother on her deathbed first. His mother's face, twisted into a frozen
snarl, the hand on the counterpane hooked into a claw, her voice sounding as if
it were coming through a big mouthful of cotton wadding.
Didn't I tell
you? Didn't I say it was so?
Johnny turned the
radio up louder. Good rock “n” roll poured out of the Mercedes's stereo
speakers. He had been asleep for four-and-a-half years but rock “n” roll had
remained alive and well, thank you very much. Johnny sang along.
He has a job for
you. Don't run from him, Johnny.
The radio
couldn't drown out his dead mother's voice. His dead mother was going to have
her say. Even from beyond the grave she was going to have her say.
Don't hide away
in a cave or make him have to send a big fish to swallow you.
But he had been
swallowed by a big fish. Its name was not leviathan but coma. He had spent
four-and-a-half years in that particular fish's black belly. and that was
enough.
The entrance ramp
to the turnpike came up—and then slipped behind him. He had been so lost in his
thoughts that he had missed his turn. The old ghosts just wouldn't give up and
let him alone. Well, he would turn around and go back as soon as he found a
good place.
Not the potter
but the potter's clay, Johnny.
“Oh, come on,” he
muttered. He had to get this crap off his mind, that was all. His mother had
been a religious crazy, not a very kind way of putting it, but true all the
same. Heaven out in the constellation Orion, angels driving flying saucers,
kingdoms under the earth. In her way she had been at least as crazy as Greg
Stillson was in his.
Oh for Christ's
sake, don't get off on that guy.
“And when you
send Greg Stillson to the House of Representatives, you gonna say HOT DOG!
SOMEONE GIVES A RIP AT LAST!”
He came to New
Hampshire Route 63. A left turn would take him to Concord, Berlin, Ridder's
Mill, Trimbull. Johnny made the turn without even thinking about it. His
thoughts were elsewhere.
Roger Chatsworth,
no babe in the woods, had laughed over Greg Stillson as if he were this year's
answer to George Carlin and Chevy Chase all rolled up into one. He's a clown,
Johnny.
And if that was
all Stillson was, then there was no problem, was there? A charming eccentric, a
piece of blank paper on which the electorate could write its message: You other
guys are so wasted that we decided to elect this fool for two years instead.
That was probably all Stillson was, after all. Just a harmless crazy, there was
no need at all to associate him with the patterned, destructive madness of
Frank Dodd. And yet... somehow he did.
The road branched
ahead. Left branch to Berlin and Ridder's Mill, right branch to Trimbull and
Concord. Johnny turned right.
But it wouldn't
hurt to just shake his hand, would it?
Maybe not. One
more politician for his collection. Some people collected stamps, some coins,
but Johnny Smith collects handshakes and —
—and admit it.
You've been looking for a wild card in the deck all along.
The thought shook
him so badly that he almost pulled over to the side of the road. He caught a
glimpse of himself in the rear-view mirror and it wasn't the contented,
everything-is-resting-easy face he had gotten up with that morning. Now it was
the press conference face, and the face of the man who had crawled through the
snow of the Castle Rock town common on his hands and knees. The skin was too
white, the eyes circled with bruised-looking brown rings, the lines etched too
deep.
No. It isn't
true.
But it was. Now
that it was out, it couldn't be denied. In the first twenty-three years of his
life he had shaken hands with exactly one politician; that was when Ed Muskie
had come to talk to his high school government class in 1966. In the last seven
months he had shaken hands with over a dozen big names. Arid hadn't the thought
flashed across the back of his mind as each one stuck out his hand What's this
guy all about? What's he going to tell me?
Hadn't he been
looking, all along, for the political equivalent of Frank Dodd?
Yes. It was true.
But the fact was,
none of them except Carter had told him much of anything, and the feelings that
he had gotten from Carter were not particularly alarming. Shaking hands with
Carter had not given him that sinking feeling he had gotten just from watching
Greg Stillson on TV. He felt as if Stillson might have taken the game of the
Laughing Tiger a step further: inside the beast-skin, a man, yes.
But inside the
man-skin, a beast.
2.
Whatever the
progression had been, Johnny found himself eating his picnic lunch in the Trimbull
town park instead of the Fenway bleachers, He had arrived shortly after noon
and had seen a sign on the community notice board announcing the rally at three
P. M.
He drifted over
to the park, expecting to have the place pretty much to himself so long before
the rally was scheduled to begin, but others were already spreading blankets,
unlimbering Frisbees, or settling down to their own lunches.
Up front, a
number of men were at work on the bandstand. Two of them were decorating the
waist-high railings with bunting. Another was on a ladder, hanging colorful
crepe streamers from the bandstand's circular eave. Others were setting up the
sound system, and as Johnny had guessed when he watched the CBS newsclip, it
was no four-hundred-dollar podium PA set. The speakers were Altec-Lansings, and
they were being carefully placed to give surround-sound.
The advance men
(but the image that persisted was that of roadies setting up for an Eagles or
Geils band concert) went about their work with businesslike precision. The
whole thing had a practiced, professional quality to it that jarred with
Stillson's image of the amiable Wild Man of Borneo.
The crowd mostly
spanned about twenty years, from midteens to mid-thirties. They were having a
good time. Babies toddled around clutching melting Dairy Queens and Slush
Puppies. Women chatted together and laughed. Men drank beer from styrofoam
cups. A few dogs bounced around, grabbing what there was to be grabbed, and the
sun shone benignly down on everyone.
“Test,” one of the
men on the bandstand said laconically into the two mikes. “Test-one,
test-two... “One of the speakers in the park uttered a loud feedback whine, and
the guy on the podium motioned that he wanted it moved backward.
This isn't the
way you set up for a political speech and rally, Johnny thought. They're
setting up for a love-feast or a group grope.
“Test-one,
test-two .. . test, test, test.”
They were
strapping the big speakers to the trees, Johnny saw. Not nailing them but
strapping them. Stillson was an ecology booster, and someone had told his
advance men not to hurt so much as one tree in one town park. The operation
gave him the feeling of having been honed down to the smallest detail. This was
no grab-it-and-run-with-it deal.
Two yellow school
buses pulled into the turnaround left of the small (and already full) parking
lot. The doors folded open and men and women got out, talking animatedly to one
another. They were in sharp contrast to those already in the park because they
were dressed in their best—men in suits or sports coats, ladies in crisp
skirt-and-blouse
combinations or smart dresses. They were gazing around with expressions of
nearly childlike wonder and anticipation, and Johnny grinned. Ngo's citizenship
class had arrived.
He walked over to
them. Ngo was standing with a tall man in a corduroy suit and two women, both
Chinese.
“Hi, Ngo,” Johnny
said.
Ngo grinned
broadly. “Johnny!” he said. “Good to see you, man! It is being a great day for
the state of New Hampshire, right?”
“I guess so,”
Johnny said.
Ngo introduced
his companions. The man in the corduroy suit was Polish. The two women were
sisters from Taiwan. One of the women told Johnny that she was much hoping for
shaking hands with the candidate after the program and then, shyly, she showed Johnny
the autograph book in her handbag.
“I am so glad to
be here in America,” she said. “But it is strange, is it not, Mr. Smith?”
Johnny, who
thought the whole thing was strange, agreed.
The citizenship
class's two instructors were calling the group together. “I'll see you later,
Johnny,” Ngo said. “I've got to be tripping.”
“Going,” Johnny
said.
“Yes, thanks.”
“Have a fine
time, Ngo.”
“Oh, yes, I am
sure I will. “And Ngo's eyes seemed to glint with a secret amusement. “I am
sure it will be most entertaining, Johnny.”
The group, about
forty in all, went over to the south side of the park to have their picnic
lunch. Johnny went back to his own place and made himself eat one of his
sandwiches. It tasted like a combination of paper and library paste.
A thick feeling
of tension had begun to creep into his body.
3.
By two-thirty the
park was completely full; people were jammed together nearly shoulder to
shoulder. The town police, augmented by a small contingent of State Police, had
closed off the streets leading to the Trimbull town park. The resemblance to a
rock concert was stronger than ever. Bluegrass music poured from the speakers,
cheery and fast. Fat white clouds drifted across the innocent blue sky.
Suddenly, people
started getting to their feet and craning their necks. It was a ripple effect
passing through the crowd. Johnny got up too, wondering if Stillson was going
to be early. Now he could hear the steady roar of motorcycle engines, the beat
swelling to fill the summer afternoon as they grew closer. Johnny got an eyeful
of sun-arrows reflecting off chrome, and a few moments later about ten cycles
swung into the turnaround where the citizenship buses were parked. There was no
car with them. Johnny guessed they were an advance guard.
His feeling of
disquiet deepened. The riders were neat enough, dressed for the most part in
clean, faded jeans and white shirts, but the bikes themselves, mostly Harleys
and BSAs, had been customized almost beyond recognition: ape-hanger handlebars,
raked chromium manifolds, and strange fairings abounded.
Their owners
killed the engines, swung off, and moved away toward the bandstand in single
file. Only one of them looked back. His eyes moved without haste over the big
crowd; even from some distance away Johnny could see that the man's irises were
a brilliant bottle green. He seemed to be counting the house. He glanced left,
at four or five town cops leaning against the chain-link backstop of the Little
League ballfield. He waved. One of the cops leaned over and spit. The act had a
feeling of ceremony to it, and Johnny's disquiet deepened further. The man with
the green eyes sauntered to the bandstand.
Above the
disquiet, which now lay like an emotional floor to his other feelings, Johnny
felt predominantly a wild mix of horror and hilarity. He had a dreamlike sense
of having somehow entered one of those paintings where steam engines are coming
out of brick fireplaces or clockfaces are lying limply over tree limbs. The
cyclists looked like extras in an American-International bike movie who had all
decided to Get Clean For Gene. Their fresh, faded jeans were snugged down over
square-toed engineer boots, and on more than one pair Johnny could see chromed
chains strapped down over the insteps. The chrome twinkled savagely in the sun.
Their expressions were nearly all the same: a sort of vacuous good humor that
seemed directed at the crowd. But beneath it there might have been simple
contempt for the young mill workers, the summer students who had come over from
UNH in Durham, and the factory workers who” were standing to give them a round
of applause. Each of them wore a pair of political buttons. One of them showed
a construction worker's yellow hard hat with a green ecology sticker on the
front. The other bore the motto STILLSON'S GOT “EM IN A FULL-NELSON.
And sticking out
of every right hip pocket was a sawed-off pool cue.
Johnny turned to
the man next to him, who was with his wife and small child. “Are those things
legal?” he asked.
“Who the hell
cares,” the young guy responded. laughing. “They're just for show, anyway. “He
was still applauding. “Go-get-em-Greg!” he yelled.
The motorcycle
honor guard deployed themselves around the bandstand in a circle and stood at
parade rest.
The applause
tapered off, but conversation went on at a louder level. The crowd's mass mouth
had received the meal's appetizer and had found it good.
Brownshirts,
Johnny thought, sitting down. Brown-shirts is all they are.
Well, so what?
Maybe that was even good. Americans had a rather low tolerance for the fascist
approach—even rock-ribbed righties like Reagan didn't go for that stuff;
nothing but a pure fact no matter how many tantrums the New Left might want to
throw or how many songs Joan Baez wrote. Eight years before, the fascist
tactics of the Chicago police had helped lose the election for Hubert Humphrey.
Johnny didn't care how clean-cut these fellows were; if they were in the employ
of a man running for the House of Representatives, then Stillson couldn't be
more than a few paces from overstepping himself. If it wasn't quite so weird,
it really would be funny.
All the same, he
wished he hadn't come.
4.
Just before three
o'clock, the thud of a big bass drum impressed itself on the air, felt through
the feet before actually heard by the ears. Other instruments gradually began
to surround it, and all of them resolved into a marching band playing a Sousa
tune. Small-town election hoopla, all of a summer's day.
The crowd came to
its feet again and craned in the direction of the music. Soon the band came in
sight—first a baton-twirler in a short skirt, high-stepping in white kidskin
boots with pompons on them, then two majorettes, then two pimply boys with
grimly set faces carrying a banner that proclaimed this was THE TRIMBULL HIGH
SCHOOL MARCHING BAND and you had by. God better not forget it. Then the band
itself, resplendent and sweaty in blinding white uniforms and brass buttons.
The crowd cleared
a path for them, and then broke into a wave of applause as they began to march in
place. Behind them was a white Ford van, and standing spread-legged on the
roof, face sunburned and split into a mammoth grin under his cocked-back
construction hat, was the candidate himself. He raised a battery-powered
bullhorn and shouted into it with leather-lunged enthusiasm: “HI, Y'ALL!”
“Hi, Greg!” The
crowd gave it right back.
Greg, Johnny
thought a little hysterically. We're on first-name terms with the guy.
Stillson leaped
down from the roof of the van, managing to make it look easy. He was dressed as
Johnny had seen him on the news, jeans and a khaki shirt. He began to work the
crowd on his way to the bandstand, shaking hands, touching other hands
outstretched over the heads of those in the first ranks. The crowd lurched and
swayed deliriously toward him, and Johnny felt an answering lurch in his own
guts.
I'm not going to
touch him. No way.
But in front of
him the crowd suddenly parted a little and he stepped into the gap and suddenly
found himself in the front row. He was close enough to the tuba player in the
Trimbull High School Marching Band to have reached out and rapped his knuckles
on the bell of his horn, had he wanted to.
Stillson moved
quickly through the ranks of the band to shake hands on the other side, and
Johnny lost complete sight of him except for the bobbing yellow helmet. He felt
relief. That was all right, then. No harm, no foul. Like the pharisee in that
famous story, he was going to pass by on the other side. Good. Wonderful. And
when he made the podium, Johnny was going to gather up his stuff and steal away
into the afternoon. Enough was enough.
The bikies had
moved up on both sides of the path through the crowd to keep it from collapsing
in on the candidate and drowning him in people. All the chunks of pool cue were
still in the back pockets, but their owners looked tense and alert” for
trouble. Johnny didn't know exactly what sort of trouble they expected—a
Brownie Delight thrown in the candidate's face, maybe—but for the first time
the bikies looked really interested.
Then something
did happen, but Johnny was unable to tell exactly what it had been. A female
hand reached for the bobbing yellow hard hat, maybe just to touch it for good
luck, and one of Stillson's fellows moved in quickly. There was a yell of
dismay and the woman's hand disappeared quickly. But it was all on the other
side of the marching band.
The din from the
crowd was enormous, and he thought again of the rock concerts he had been to.
This was what it would be like if Paul McCartney or Elvis Presley decided to
shake hands with the crowd.
They were
screaming his name, chanting it: “GREG... GREG... GREG...”
The young guy who
had billeted his family next to Johnny was holding his son up over his head so
the kid could see. A young man with a large, puckered burn scar on one side of
his face was waving a sign that read:
LIVE FREE OR DIE,
HERE'S GREG IN YER EYE!
An achingly
beautiful girl of maybe eighteen was waving a chunk of watermelon, and pink
juice was running down her tanned arm. It was all mass confusion. Excitement
was humming through the crowd like a series of high-voltage electrical cables.
And suddenly
there was Greg Stillson, darting back through the band, back to Johnny's side
of the crowd. He didn't pause, but still found time to give the tuba player a
hearty clap on the back.
Later, Johnny
mulled it over and tried to tell himself that there really hadn't been any
chance or time to melt back into the crowd; he tried to tell himself that the
crowd had practically heaved him into Stilison's arms. He tried to tell himself
that Stillson had done everything but abduct his hand. None of it was true.
There was time, because a fat woman in absurd, yellow damdiggers threw her arms
around Stillson's neck and gave him a hearty kiss. which Stillson returned with
a laugh and a “You bet I'll remember you, hon. “The fat woman screamed
laughter.
Johnny felt the
familiar compact coldness come over him, the trance feeling. The sensation that
nothing mattered except to know. He even smiled a little, but it wasn't his
smile. He put his hand out, and Stilison seized it in both of his and began to
pump it up and down.
“Hey, man, hope
you're gonna support us in...”
Then Stillson
broke off. The way Eileen Magown had. The way Dr. James (just like the soul
singer) Brown had. The way Roger Dussault had. His eyes went wide, and then
they filled with—fright? No. It was terror in Still-son's eyes.
The moment was
endless. Objective time was replaced by something else, a perfect cameo of time
as they stared into each other's eyes. For Johnny it was like being in that
dull chrome corridor again, only this time Stilison was with him and they were
sharing... sharing
(everything)
For Johnny it had
never been this strong, never. Everything came at him at once, crammed together
and screaming like some terrible black freight train highballing through a
narrow tunnel, a speeding engine with a single glaring headlamp mounted up
front, and the headlamp was knowing everything, and its light impaled Johnny
Smith like a bug on a pin. There was nowhere to run and perfect knowledge ran
him down, plastered him as flat as a sheet of paper while that night-running
train raced over him.
He felt like
screaming, but had no taste for it, no voice for it.
The one image he
never escaped
(as the blue
filter began to creep in)
was Greg Stillson
taking the oath of office. It was being administered by an old man with the
humble, frightened eyes of a fieldmouse trapped by a terribly proficient,
battlescarred
(tiger)
barnyard tomcat.
One of Stillson's hands clapped over a Bible, one upraised. It was years in the
future because Stillson had lost most of his hair. The old man was speaking,
Stillson was following. Stillson was saying
(the blue filter
is deepening, covering things, blotting them out bit by bit, merciful blue
filter, Stillson's face is behind the blue... and the yellow -. —the yellow
like tiger-stripes)
he would do it
“So help him God. “His face was solemn, grim, even, but a great hot joy clapped
in his chest and roared in his brain. Because the man with the scared
fieldmouse eyes was the Chief Justice of the United States Supreme Court and
(oh dear God the
filter the filter the blue filter the yellow stripes)
now all of it
began to disappear slowly behind that blue filter—except it wasn't a filter; it
was something real. It was
(in the future in
the dead zone)
something in the
future. His? Stillson's? Johnny didn't know.
There was the
sense of flying—flying through the blue—above scenes of utter desolation that
could not quite be seen. And cutting through this came the disembodied voice of
Greg Stillson, the voice of a cut-rate God or a comic-opera engine of the dead:
“I'M GONNA GO THROUGH THEM LIKE BUCKWHEAT THROUGH A GOOSE! GONNA GO THROUGH
THEM LIKE SHIT THROUGH A CANEBRAKE!”
“The tiger,”
Johnny muttered thickly. “The tiger's behind the blue. Behind the yellow.”
Then all of it,
pictures, images, and words, broke up in the swelling, soft roar of oblivion.
He seemed to smell some sweet, coppery scent, like burning high-tension wires. For
a moment that inner eye seemed to open even wider, searching; the blue and
yellow that had obscured everything seemed about to solidify into... into
something, and from somewhere inside, distant and full of terror, he heard a
woman shriek: “Give him to me, you bastard!”
Then it was gone.
How long did we
stand together like that? he would ask himself later. His guess was maybe five
seconds. Then Stillson was pulling his hand away, ripping it away, staring at
Johnny with his mouth open, the color draining away from beneath the deep tan
of the summertime campaigner. Johnny could see the fillings in the man's back
teeth.
His expression
was one of revolted horror.
Good! Johnny
wanted to scream. Good! Shake yourself to pieces! Total yourself! Destruct!
Implode! Disintegrate! Do the world a favor!
Two of the
motorcycle guys we're rushing forward and now the sawedoff pool cues were out
and Johnny felt a stupid kind of terror because they were going to hit him, hit
him over the head with their cues, they were going to make believe Johnny
Smith's head was the eight ball and they were going to blast it right into the
side pocket, right back into the blackness of coma and he would never come out
of it this time, he would never be able to tell anyone what he had seen or
change anything.
That sense of
destruction—God! It had been everything!
He tried to
backpedal. People scattered, pressed back, yelled with fear (or perhaps with
excitement). Stillson was turning toward his bodyguards, already regaining his
composure, shaking his head, restraining them.
Johnny never saw
what happened next. He swayed on his feet, head lowered, blinking slowly like a
drunk at the bitter end of a week-long binge. Then the soft, swelling roar of
oblivion overwhelmed him and Johnny let it; he gladly let it. He blacked out.
CHAPTER
TWENTY-ONE
1.
“No,” the
Trimbull chief of police said in answer to Johnny's question, “you're not
charged with anything. You're not under detention. And you don't have to answer
any questions. We'd just be very grateful if you would.”
“Very grateful,”
the man in the conservative business suit echoed. His name was Edgar Lancte. He
was with the Boston office of the Federal Bureau of Investigation. He thought
that Johnny Smith looked like a very sick man. There was a puffed bruise above
his left eyebrow that was rapidly turning purple. When he blacked out, Johnny
had come down very hard—either on the shoe of a marching-bandsman or on the
squared-off toe of a motorcycle boot. Lancte mentally favored the latter
possibility. And possibly the motorcycle boot had been in motion at the instant
of contact.
Smith was too
pale, and his hands trembled badly as he drank the paper cup of water that
Chief Bass had given him. One eyelid was ticking nervously. He looked like the
classic would-be assassin, although the most deadly thing in his personal
effects had been a nailclipper. Still, Lancte would keep that impression in
mind, because he was what he was.
“What can I tell
you?” Johnny asked. He had awakened on a cot in an unlocked cell. He'd had a
blinding headache. It was draining away now, leaving him feeling strangely
hollow inside. He felt a little as if his legitimate innards had been scooped
out and replaced with Reddi Wip. There was a high, constant sound in his
ears—not precisely a ringing; more like a high, steady hum. It was nine P. M.
The Stillson entourage had long since swept out of town. All the hot dogs had
been eaten.
“You can tell us
exactly what happened back there,” Bass said.
“It was hot. I
guess I got overexcited and fainted.”
“You an invalid
or something?” Lancte asked casually.
Johnny looked at
him steadily. “Don't play games with me, Mr. Lancte. If you know who I am, then
say so.”
“I know,” Lancte
said. “Maybe you are psychic.”
“Nothing psychic
about guessing an FBI agent might be up to a few games,” Johnny said.
“You're a Maine
boy, Johnny. Born and bred. What's a Maine boy doing down in New Hampshire?”
“Tutoring.”
“The Chatsworth
boy?”
“For the second
time: if you know, why ask? Unless you suspect me of something.”
Lancte lit a
Vantage Green. “Rich family.”
“Yes. They are.”
“You a Stillson
fan, are you, Johnny?” Bass asked. Johnny didn't like fellows who used his
first name on first acquaintance, and both of these fellows were doing it” It
made him nervous.
“Are you?” he
asked,
Bass made an
obscene blowing sound. “About five years ago we had a day-long folk-rock
concert in Trimbull. Out on Hake Jamieson's land. Town council had their
doubts, but they went ahead because the kids have got to have something. We thought
we were going to have maybe two hundred local kids in Hake's east pasture
listening to music. Instead we got sixteen hundred, all of em smoking pot and
drinking hard stuff straight out from the neck of the bottle. They made a hell
of a mess and the council got mad and said there'd never be another one and
they turned around all hurt arid wet-eyed and said, “Whassa matter? No one got
hurt, did they?” It was supposed to be okay to make a helluva mess because no
one got hurt. I feel the same way about this guy Stilison. I remember once...
“You don't have
any sort of grudge against Stillson, do you, Johnny?” Lancte asked. “Nothing
personal between you and him?” He smiled a fatherly,
you-can-get-it-off-your-chest-if-you-want-to smile.
“I didn't even
know who he was until six weeks ago.”
“Yes, well, but
that really doesn't answer my question, does it?”
Johnny sat silent
for a little while. “He disturbs me,” he said finally.
“That doesn't
really answer my question, either.”
“Yes, I think it
does.”
“You're not being
as helpful as we'd like,” Lancte said regretfully.
Johnny glanced
over at Bass. “Does anybody who faints in your town at a public gathering get
the FBI treatment, Chief Bass?”
Bass looked
uncomfortable. “Well... no. Course not.”
“You were shaking
hands with Stillson when you keeled over,” Lancte said. “You looked sick.
Stillson himself looked scared green. You're a very lucky young man, Johnny.
Lucky his goodbuddies there didn't turn your head into a votive urn. They
thought you'd pulled a piece on him.”
Johnny was
looking at Lancte with dawning surprise. He looked at Bass, then back to the
FBI man. “You were there,” he said. “Bass didn't call you up on the phone. You
were there. At the rally.”
Lancte crushed
out his cigarette. “Yes. I was.”
“Why is the FBI
interested in Stillson?” Johnny nearly barked the question.
“Let's talk about
you, Johnny. What's your...
“No, let's talk
about Stillson. Let's talk about his good-buddies, as you call them. Is it
legal for them to carry” around sawed-off pool cues?”
“It is,” Bass
said. Lancte threw him a warning look, but Bass either didn't see it or ignored
it. “Cues, baseball bats, golf clubs. No law against any of them.”
“I heard someone
say those guys used to be iron riders. Bike gang members.”
“Some of them used
to be with a New Jersey club, some used to be with a New York club, that's...”
“Chief Bass,”
Lancte interrupted, “I hardly think this is the time...
“I can't see the
harm of telling him,” Bass said. “They're bums, rotten apples, hairbags. Some
of them ganged together in the Hamptons back four or five years ago, when they
had the bad riots. A few of them were affiliated with a bike club called the
Devil's Dozen that disbanded in 1972. Stillson's ramrod is a guy named Sonny
Elliman. He used to be the president of the Devil's Dozen. He's been busted
half a dozen times but never convicted of anything.”
“You're wrong
about that, Chief,” Lancte said, lighting a fresh cigarette. “He was cited in
Washington State in 1973 for making an illegal left turn against traffic. He
signed the waiver and paid a twenty-five dollar fine.”
Johnny got up and
went slowly across the room to the water cooler, where he drew himself a fresh
cup of water. Lancte watched him go with interest.
“So you just
fainted, right?” Lancte said.
“No,” Johnny
said, not turning around. “I was going to shoot him with a bazooka. Then, at
the critical moment, all my bionic circuits blew.”
Lancte sighed.
Bass said,
“You're free to go any time.”
“Thank you.
“But I'll tell you
just the same way Mr. Lancte here would tell you. In the future, I'd stay away
from Stillson rallies, if I were you. If you want to keep a whole skin, that
is. Things have a way of happening to people Greg Stillson doesn't like...
“Is that so?”
Johnny asked. He drank his water.
“Those are
matters outside your bailiwick, Chief Bass,” Lancte said. His eyes were like
hazy steel and he was looking at Bass very hard.
“All right,” Bass
said mildly.
“I don't see any
harm in telling you that there have been other rally incidents,” Lancte said.
“In Ridgeway a young pregnant woman was beaten so badly she miscarried. This
was just after the Stillson rally there that CBS filmed. She said she couldn't
ID her assailant, but we feel it may have been one of Stillson's bikies. A
month ago a kid, he was fourteen, got himself a fractured skull. He had a
little plastic squirtgun. He couldn't ID his assailant, either. But the
squirtgun makes us believe it may have been a security overreaction.”
How nicely put,
Johnny thought.
“You couldn't
find anyone who saw it happen?”
“Nobody who would
talk. “Lancte smiled humorlessly and tapped the ash off his cigarette. “He's
the people's choice.”
Johnny thought of
the young guy holding his son up so that the boy could see Greg Stillson. Who
the hell cares? They're just for show, anyway.
“So he's got his
own pet FBI agent.”
Lancte shrugged
and smiled disarmingly. “Well, what can I say? Except, FYI, it's no tit
assignment, Johnny. Sometimes I get scared. The guy generates one hell of a lot
of magnetism. If he pointed me out from the podium and told the crowd at one of
those rallies who I was, I think they'd run me up the nearest lamppost.
Johnny thought of
the crowd that afternoon, and of the pretty girl hysterically waving her chunk
of watermelon. “I think you might be right,” he said.
“So if there's
something you know that might help me... “Lancte leaned forward. The disarming
smile had become slightly predatory. “Maybe you even had a psychic flash about
him. Maybe that's what messed you up.”
“Maybe I did,”
Johnny said, unsmiling.
“Well?”
For one wild
moment Johnny considered telling them everything. Then he rejected it. “I saw
him on TV. I had nothing in particular to do today, so I thought I'd come over
here and check him out in person. I bet I wasn't the only out-of-towner who did
that.”
“You sure
wasn't,” Bass said vehemently.
“And that's all?”
Lancte asked.
“That's all,”
Johnny said, and then hesitated. “Except I think he's going to win his
election.”
“We're sure he
is,” Lancte said. “Unless we can get something on him. In the meantime, I'm in
complete agreement with Chief Bass. Stay away from Stillson rallies.”
“Don't worry.
“Johnny crumpled up his paper cup and threw it away. “It's been nice talking to
you two gentle men, but I've got a long drive back to Durham.”
“Going back to
Maine soon, Johnny?” Lancte asked casually.
“Don't know. “He
looked from Lancte, slim and impeccable, tapping out a fresh cigarette on the
blank face of his digital watch, to Bass, a big, tired man with a basset hound's
face. “Do either of you think he'll run for higher office? If he gets this seat
in the House of Representatives?”
“Jesus wept,”
Bass muttered, and rolled his eyes.
“These guys come
and go,” Lancte said. His eyes, so brown they were nearly black, had never
stopped studying Johnny. “They're like one of those rare radioactive elements
that are so unstable that they don't last long. Guys like Stillson have no
permanent political base, just a temporary coalition that holds together for a
little while and then falls apart. Did you see that crowd today? College kids
and mill hands yelling for the same guy? That's not politics, that's something
on the order of hula hoops or coonskin caps or Beatle wigs. He'll get his term
in the House and he'll free4unch until 1978 and that'll be it. Count on it.”
But Johnny
wondered.
2.
The next day, the
left side of Johnny's forehead had become very colorful. Dark purple—almost
black—above the eyebrow shaded to red and then to a morbidly gay yellow at the temple
and hairline. His eyelid had puffed slightly, giving him a leering sort of
expression, like the second banana in a burlesque review.
He did twenty
laps in the pool and then sprawled in one of the deck chairs, panting. He felt
terrible. He had gotten less than four hours” sleep the night before, and all
of what he had gotten had been dream-haunted.
“Hi, Johnny...
how you doing, man?”
He turned around.
It was Ngo, smiling gently. He was dressed in his work clothes and wearing
gardening gloves. Behind him was a child's red wagon filled with small pine
trees, their roots wrapped in burlap. Recalling what Ngo called the pines, he
said: “I see you're planting more weeds.”
Ngo wrinkled his
nose. “Sorry, yes. Mr. Chatsworth is loving them. I tell him, but they are junk
trees. Every-where there are these trees in New England. His face goes like
this... “Now Ngo's whole face wrinkled and he looked like a caricature. of some
late show monster.. .. and he says to me, “Just plant them. "”
Johnny laughed.
That was Roger Chatsworth, all right.
He liked things
done his way. “How did you enjoy the rally?”
Ngo smiled
gently. “Very instructive,” he said. There was no way to read his eyes. He
might not have noticed the sunrise on the side of Johnny's face. “Yes, very
instructive, we are all enjoying ourselves.”
“Good.”
“And you?”
“Not so much,”
Johnny said, and touched the bruise lightly with his fingertips. It was very
tender.
“Yes, too bad,
you should put a beefsteak on it,” Ngo said, still smiling gently.
What did you think
about him, Ngo? What did your class think? Your Polish friend? Or Ruth Chen and
her sister?”
“Going back we
did not talk about it, at our instructors” request. Think about what you have
seen, they say. Next Tuesday we will write in class, I think. Yes, I am
thinking very much that we will. A class composition.”
“What will you
say in your composition?”
Ngo looked at the
blue summer sky. He and the sky smiled at each other. He was a small man with
the first threads of gray in his hair. Johnny knew almost nothing about him;
didn't know if he had been married, had fathered children, if he had fled
before the Vietcong, if he had been from Saigon or from one of the rural
provinces. He had no idea what Ngo's political leanings were.
“We talked of the
game of the Laughing Tiger,” Ngo said. “Do you remember?”
“Yes,” Johnny
said.
“I will tell you
of a real tiger. When I was a boy there was a tiger who went bad near my
village. He was being le manger d'homme, eater of men, you understand, except
he was not that, he was an eater of boys and girls and old women because this
was during the war and there were no men to eat. Not the war you know of, but
the Second World War. He had gotten the taste for human meat, this tiger. Who
was there to kill such an awful creature in a humble village where the youngest
man is being sixty and with only one arm, and the oldest boy is myself, only
seven years of age? And one day this tiger was found in a pit that had been
baited with the body of a dead woman. It is a terrible thing to bait a trap
with a human being made in the image of God, I will say in my composition, but
it is more terrible to do nothing while a bad tiger carries away small
children. And I will say in my composition that this bad tiger was still alive
when we found it. It was having a stake pushed through its body but it was
still alive. We beat it to death with hoes and sticks. Old men and women and
children, some children so excited and frightened they are wetting themselves
in their pants. The tiger fell in the pit and we beat it to death with our hoes
because the men of the village had gone to fight the Japanese. I am thinking
that this Stillson is like that bad tiger with its taste for human meat. I
think a trap should be made for him, and I think he should be falling into it.
And if he still lives, I think he should be beaten to death.”
He smiled gently
at Johnny in the clear summer sunshine.
“Do you really
believe that?” Johnny asked.
“Oh, yes,” Ngo
said. He spoke lightly, as if it were a matter of no consequence. “What my
teacher will say when I am handing in such a composition, I don't know. “He
shrugged his shoulders. “Probably he will say, “Ngo, you are not ready for the
American Way.” But I will say the truth of what I feel. What did you think,
Johnny?” His eyes moved to the bruise, then moved away.
“I think he's
dangerous,” Johnny said. “I... I know lie's dangerous.”
“Do you?” Ngo
remarked. “Yes, I believe you do know it. Your fellow New Hampshires, they see
him as an engaging clown. They set him the way many of this world are seeing
this black man, Idi Amin Dada. But you do not.
“No,” Johnny
said. “But to suggest he should be killed ..
“Politically
killed,” Ngo said, smiling. “I am only suggesting he should be politically
killed.”
“And if he can't be
politically killed?”
Ngo smiled at
Johnny. He unfolded his index finger, cocked his thumb, and then snapped it
down. “Bam,” he said softly. “Bam, bam, ham.”
“No,” Johnny
said, surprised at the hoarseness in his own voice. “That's never an answer.
Never”
“No? I thought it
was an answer you Americans used quite often. “Ngo picked up the handle of the
red wagon. “I must be planting these weeds, Johnny. So long, man.
Johnny watched
him go, a small man in suntans and moccasins, pulling a wagonload of baby pines.
He disappeared around the corner of the house.
No. Killing only
sows more dragon's teeth. I believe that. I believe it with all my heart.
3.
On the first
Tuesday in November, which happened to be the second day in the month, Johnny
Smith sat slumped in the easy chair of his combined kitchen-living room and
watched the election returns. Chancellor and Brinkley were featuring a large
electronic map that showed the results of the presidential race in a color-code
as each state came in. Now, at nearly midnight, the race between Ford and
Carter looked very cl6se. But Carter would win; Johnny had no doubt of it.
Greg Stillson had
also won.
His victory had
been extensively covered on the local newsbreaks, but the national reporters
had also taken some note of it, comparing his victory to that of James Longley,
Maine's independent governor, two years before.
Chancellor said,
“Late polls showing that the Republican candidate and incumbent Harrison Fisher
was closing the gap were apparently in error; NBC predicts that Stilison, who
campaigned in a construction worker's hard hat and on a platform that included
the proposal that all pollution be sent into outer space, ended up with
forty-six percent of the vote, to Fisher's thirty-one percent. In a district
where the Democrats have always been poor relations, David Bowes could only
poll twenty-three per-cent of the vote.”
“And so,”
Brinkley said, “it's hot dog time down in New Hampshire .. . for the next two
years, at least. “He and Chancellor grinned. A commercial came on. Johnny
didn't grin. He was thinking of tigers.
The time between
the Trimbull rally and election night had been busy for Johnny. His work with
Chuck had continued, and Chuck continued to improve at a slow but steady pace.
He had taken two summer courses, passed them both, and retained his sports
eligibility. Now, with the football season just ending, it looked very much as
if he would be named to the Gannett newspaper chain's All New England team. The
careful, almost ritualistic visits from the college scouts had already begun,
but they would have to wait another year; the decision had already been made
between Chuck and his father that he would spend a year at Stovington Prep, a
good private school in Vermont. Johnny thought Stovington would probably be
delirious at the news. The Vermont school regularly fielded great soccer teams
and dismal football teams. They would probably give him a full scholarship and
a gold key to the girl's dorm in the bargain. Johnny felt that it had been the
right decision. After it had been reached and the pressure on Chuck to take the
SATs right away had eased off, his progress had taken another big jump.
In late
September. Johnny had gone up to Pownal for the weekend and after an entire
Friday night of watching his father fidget and laugh uproariously at jokes on
TV that weren't particularly funny, he had asked Herb what the trouble was.
“No trouble,”
Herb said, smiling nervously and rubbing his hands together like an accountant
who has discovered that the company he just invested his life savings with is
bankrupt. “No trouble at all, what makes you think that, son?”
“Well, what's on
your mind, then?”
Herb stopped
smiling, but he kept rubbing his hands together. “I don't really know how to
tell you, Johnny. I mean...
“Is it Charlene?”
“Well, yes. It
is.”
“You popped the
question.”
Herb looked at
Johnny humbly. “How do you feel about coming into a stepmother at the age of
twenty-nine, John?”
Johnny grinned.
“I feel fine about it. Congratulations, Dad.”
Herb” smiled,
relieved. “Well, thanks. I was a little scared to tell you, I don't mind
admitting it. I know what you said when we talked about it before, but people
sometimes feel one way when something's maybe and another way when it's gonna
be. I loved your mom, Johnny. And I guess I always will.”
“I know that,
dad.”
“But I'm alone
and Charlene's alone and... well, I guess we can put each other to good use.”
Johnny went over
to his father and kissed him. “All the best. I know you'll have it.”
“You're a good son,
Johnny. “Herb took his handkerchief out of his back pocket and swiped at his
eyes with it. “We thought we'd lost you. I did, anyway. Vera never lost hope.
She always believed. Johnny, I...”
“Don't, Daddy.
It's over.
“I have to,” he
said. “It's been in my gut like a stone for a year and a half now. I prayed for
you to die, Johnny. My own son, and I prayed for God to take you. “He wiped his
tears again and put his handkerchief away. “Turned out God knew a smidge more
than I did. Johnny... would you stand up with me? At my wedding?”
Johnny felt
something inside that was almost but not quite like sorrow. “That would be my
pleasure,” he said.
“Thanks. I'm glad
I've... that I've said everything that's on my mind. I feel better than I have
in a long, long time.”
“Have you set a
date?”
“As a matter of
fact, we have. How does January 2 sound to you?”
“Sounds good,”
Johnny said. “You can count on me.”
“We're going to
put both places on the market, I guess,” Herb” said. “We've got our eye on a
farm in Biddeford. Nice place. Twenty acres. Half of it woodlot. A new start.”
“Yes. A new
start, that's good.”
“You wouldn't
have any objections to us selling the home place?” Herb asked anxiously.
“A little tug,”
Johnny said. “That's all.”
“Yeah, that's
what I feel. A little tug. “He smiled. “Somewhere around the heart, that's
where mine is. What about you?”
“About the same,”
Johnny said.
“How's it going
down there for you?”
“Good.”
“Your boy's
getting along?”
“Amazin well,”
Johnny said, using one of his father's pet expressions and grinning.
“How long do you
think you'll be there?”
“Working with
Chuck? I guess I'll stick with it through the school year, if they want me.
Working one-on one has been a new kind of experience. I like it. And this has
been a really good job. Atypically good, I'd say.”
“What are you
going to do after?”
Johnny shook his
head. “I don't know yet. But I know one thing.”
“What's that?”
“I'm going out
for a bottle of champagne. We're going to get bombed.”
His father had
stood up on that September evening and clapped him on the back. “Make it two,”
he said.
He still got the
occasional letter from Sarah Hazlett. She and Walt were expecting their second
child in April. Johnny wrote back his congratulations and his good wishes for
Walt's canvass. And he thought sometimes about his afternoon with Sarah, the
long, slow afternoon.
It wasn't a
memory he allowed himself to take out too often; he was afraid that constant
exposure to the sunlight of recollection might cause it to wash out and fade,
like the reddish-tinted proofs they used to give you of your graduation
portraits.
He had gone out a
few times this fall, once with the older and newly divorced sister of the girl
Chuck was seeing, but nothing had developed from any of those dates.
Most of his spare
time that fall he had spent in the company of Gregory Ammas Stillson.
He had become a
Stillsonphile. He kept three looseleaf notebooks in his bureau under his socks
and underwear and T-shirts. They were filled with notes, speculations, and
Xerox copies of news items.
Doing this had
made him uneasy. At night, as he wrote around the pasted-up clippings with a
fine-line Pilot pen, he sometimes felt like Arthur Bremmer or the Moore woman
who had tried to shoot Jerry Ford. He knew that if Edgar Lancte, Fearless Minion
of the Effa Bee Eye, could see him doing this, his phone, living room, and
bathroom would be tapped in a jiffy. There would be an Acme Furniture van
parked across the street, only instead of being full of furniture it would be
loaded with cameras and mikes and God knew what else.
He kept telling
himself that he wasn't Bremmer, that Stilison wasn't an obsession, but that got
harder to believe after the long afternoons at the UNH library, searching
through old newspapers and magazines and feeding dimes into the photocopier. It
got harder to believe on the nights he burned the midnight oil, writing out his
thoughts and trying to make valid connections. It grew well-nigh impossible to
believe on those graveyard-ditch three A. M. “s when he woke up sweating from
the recurring nightmare.
The nightmare was
nearly always the same, a naked replay of his handshake with Stillson at the
Trimbull rally. The sudden blackness. The feeling of being in a tunnel filled
with the glare of the onrushing headlight, a head-light bolted to some black
engine of doom. The old man with the humble, frightened eyes administering an
unthinkable oath of office. The nuances of feeling, coming and going like tight
puffs of smoke. And a series of brief images, strung together in a flapping row
like the plastic pennants over a used-car dealer's lot. His mind whispered to
him that these images were all related, that they told a picture-story of a
titanic approaching doom, perhaps even the Armageddon of which Vera Smith had
been so endlessly confident.
But what were the
images? What were they exactly? They were hazy, impossible to see except in
vague outline, because there was always that puzzling blue filter between, the
blue filter that was sometimes cut by those yellow markings like tiger stripes.
The only clear
image in these dream-replays came near the end: the screams of the dying, the
smell of the dead. And a single tiger padding through miles of twisted metal,
fused glass, and scorched earth. This tiger was always laughing, and it seemed
to be carrying something in its mouth—something blue and yellow and dripping
blood.
There had been
times in the fall when he thought that dream would send him mad. Ridiculous
dream; the possibility it seemed to point to was impossible, after all. Best to
drive it totally out of his mind.
But because he
couldn't, he researched Gregory Still-son and tried to tell himself it was only
a harmless hobby and not a dangerous obsession.
Stillson had been
born in Tulsa. His father had been an oil-field roughneck who drifted from job
to job, working more often than some of his colleagues because of his
tremendous size. His mother might once have been pretty, although there was
only a hint of that in the two pictures that Johnny had been able to unearth.
If she had been, the times and the man she had been married to had dimmed her
prettiness quickly. The pictures showed little more than another dustbowl face,
a southeast United States depression woman who was wearing a faded print dress
and holding a baby—Greg—in her scrawny arms, and squinting into the sun.
His father had
been a domineering man who didn't think much of his son. As a child, Greg had
been pallid and sickly. There was no evidence that his father had abused the
boy either mentally or physically, but there was the suggestion that at the
very least, Greg Stillson had lived in a disapproving shadow for the first nine
years of his life. The one picture Johnny had of the father and son t6gether
was a happy one, however; it showed them together in the oil fields, the
father's arm slung around the son's neck in a careless gesture of comradeship.
But it gave Johnny a little chill all the same. Harry” Stilison was dressed in
working clothes, twill pants and a double-breasted khaki shirt, and his hard
hat was cocked jauntily back on his head.
Greg had begun
school in Tulsa, then had been switched to Oklahoma City when he was ten. The
previous summer his father had been killed in an oil-derrick flameout. Mary Lou
Stillson had gone to Okie City with her boy because it was where her mother
lived, and where the war work was. It was 1942, and good times had come around
again.
Greg's grades had
been good until high school, and then he began to get into a series of scrapes.
Truancy, fighting, hustling snooker downtown, maybe hustling stolen goods
uptown, although that had never been proved. In 1949, when he had been a
high-school junior, he had pulled a two-day suspension for putting a
cherry'-bomb fire-cracker in a locker-room toilet.
In all of these
confrontations with authority, Mary Lou Stillson took her son's part. The good
times—at least for the likes of the Stillsons—had ended with the war work in
1945, and Mrs. Stillson seemed to think of it as a case of her and her boy
against the rest of the world. Her mother had died, leaving her the small frame
house and nothing else. She hustled drinks in a roughneck bar for a while, then
waited table in an all-light beanery. And when her boy got in trouble, she went
to bat for him, never checking (apparently) to see if his hands were dirty or
clean.
The pale sickly
boy that his father had nicknamed Runt was gone by 1949. As Greg Stillson's
adolescence progressed, his father's physical legacy came out. The boy shot up
six inches and put on seventy pounds between thirteen and seventeen. He did not
play organized school sports but somehow managed to acquire a Charles Atlas
bodybuilding gym and then a set of weights. The Runt became a bad guy to mess
with.
Johnny guessed he
must have come close to dropping out of school on dozens of occasions. He had
probably avoided a bust out of sheer dumb luck. If only he had taken at least
one serious bust, Johnny thought often. It would have ended all these stupid
worries, because a convicted felon can't aspire to high public office.
Stillson had graduated—near
the bottom of his class, it was true—in June. 1951. Grades notwithstanding,
there was nothing wrong with his brains. His eye was on the main chance. He had
a glib tongue and a winning manner. He worked briefly that summer as a gas
jockey. Then, in August of that year, Greg Stillson had gotten Jesus at a
tent-revival in Wildwood Green. He quit his job at the 76 station and went into
business as a rainmaker “through the power of Jesus Christ our Lord”.
Coincidentally or
otherwise, that had been one of the driest summers in Oklahoma since the days
of the dust bowl. The crops were already a dead loss, and the livestock would
soon follow if the shallowing wells went dry. Greg had been invited to a
meeting of the local ranchers association. Johnny had found a great many
stories about what had followed; it was one of the high points of Stillson's
career. None of these Stories completely jibed, and Johnny could understand
why. It had all the attributes of an American myth, not much different from
some of the stories about Davy Crockett, Pecos Bill, Paul Bunyan. That
something had happened was undeniable. But the strict truth of it was already
beyond reach.
One thing seemed
sure. That meeting of the ranchers” association must have been one of the
strangest ever held. The ranchers had invited over two dozen rainmakers from
various parts of the southeast and southwest. About half of them were Negroes.
Two were Indians—a half-breed Pawnee and a full-blooded Apache. There was a
peyote-chewing Mexican. Greg was one of about nine white fellows, and the only
home-town boy.
The ranchers
heard the proposals of the rainmakers and dowsers one by one. They gradually
and naturally divided themselves into two groups: those who would take half of
their fee up front (nonrefundable) and those who wanted their entire fee up
front (nonrefundable).
When Greg
Stillson's turn came, he stood up, hooked his thumbs into the belt loops of his
jeans, and was supposed to have said: “I guess you fellows know I got in the
way of being able to make it rain after I gave my heart to Jesus. Before that I
was deep in sin and the ways of sin. Now one of the main ways of sin is the way
we've seen tonight, and you spell that kind of sinning mostly with dollar
signs.”
The ranchers were
interested. Even at nineteen Stillson had been something of a comic
spellbinder. And he had made them an offer they couldn't refuse. Because he was
a born-again Christian and because he knew that the love of money was the root
of all evil, he would make it rain and afterward they could pay him whatever
they thought the job had been worth.
He was hired by
acclamation, and two days later he was down on his knees in the back of a
flatbed farm truck, cruising slowly along the highways and byways of central
Oklahoma, dressed in a black coat and a preacher's low-crowned hat, praying for
rain through a pair of loudspeakers hooked up to a Delco tractor battery.
People turned out by the thousands to get a look at him.
The end of the
story was predictable but satisfying. The skies grew cloudy during the
afternoon of Greg's second day on the job, and the next morning the rains came.
The rains came for three days and two nights, flash floods killed four people.
whole houses with chickens perched on the roof peaks were washed down the
Greenwood River, the wells were filled, the livestock was saved, and The
Oklahoma Ranchers” and Cattlemen's Association decided it probably would have
happened anyway. They passed the hat for Greg at their next meeting and the
young rainmaker was given the princely sum of seventeen dollars.
Greg was not put
out of countenance. He used the seventeen dollars to place an ad in the
Oklahoma City Herald. The ad pointed out that about the same sort of thing had
happened to a certain rat-catcher in the town of Hamlin. Being a Christian, the
ad went on, Greg Stillson was not in the way of taking children, and he surely
knew he had no legal recourse against a group as large and powerful as the
Oklahoma Ranchers” and Cattlemen's Association. But fair was fair, wasn't it?
He had his elderly mother to support, and she was in failing health. The ad
suggested that he had prayed his ass off for a bunch of rich, ungrateful snobs,
the same sort of men that had tractored poor folks like the Joads off their
land in the thirties. The ad suggested that he had saved tens of thousands of
dollars” worth of livestock and had got seventeen dollars in return. Because he
was a good Christian, this sort of ingratitude didn't bother him, but maybe it
ought to give the good citizens of the county some pause. Right-thinking people
could send contributions to Box 471. care of the Herald.
Johnny wondered
how much Greg Stillson had actually received as a result of that ad. Reports
varied. But that fall, Greg had been tooling around town in a brand-new
Mercury. Three years” worth of back taxes were paid on the small house left to
them by Mary Loil's mother. Mary Lou herself (who was not particularly sickly
and no older than forty-five), blossomed out in a new raccoon coat. Stillson
had apparently discovered one of the great hidden muscles of principle which
move the earth: if those who receive will not pay. those who have not often
will, for no good reason at all. It may be the same principle that assures the
politicians there will always be enough young men to feed the war machine.
The ranchers
discovered they had stuck their collection hand into a hornets” nest. When
members came in town, crowds often gathered and jeered at them. They were
denounced from pulpits all across the county. They found it suddenly difficult
to sell the beef the rain had saved without shipping it a considerable
distance.
In November of
that memorable year, two young men with brass knucks on their hands and
nickel-plated . 32's. in their pockets had turned up on Greg Stillson's
doorstep, apparently hired by the Ranchers” and Cattlemen's Association to
suggest—as strenuously as necessary—that Greg would find the climate more
congenial elsewhere Both of them ended up in the hospital. One of them had a
concussion. The other had lost four of his teeth was suffering a rupture. Both
had been found on corner of Greg Stillson's block, sans pants. Their brass
knucks bad been inserted in an anatomical location most commonly associated
with sitting down, and in case of one of these two young men, minor surgery was
necessary to remove the foreign objects.
The Association
cried off. At a meeting in early December, an appropriation of $700 was made
from its fund, and a check in that amount was forwarded to Stillson.
He got what he wanted.
In 1953 he and
his mother moved to Nebraska. The rainmaking business had gone bad, and there
were some who said the pool-hall hustling had also gone bad. Whatever the
reason for moving, they turned up in Omaha where Greg opened a house-painting
business that bust two years later. He did better as a salesman for TruthWay
Bible Company of America. He crisscrossed the cornbelt, taking dinner with
hundreds of hard working, God-fearing farm families, telling the story his
conversion and selling Bibles, plaques, luminous Jesuses, hymn books, records;
tracts, and a rabidly right-wing paperback called America the TruthWay:
Communist-Jewish
Conspiracy Against Our United States
In 1957 the aging
Mercury was replaced with a brand-new Ford ranch wagon.
In 1958 Mary Lou
Stillson died of cancer, and late that year Greg Stillson got out of the
born-again Bible business and drifted east. He spent a year in New York City
before moving upstate to Albany. His year in New York been devoted to an effort
at cracking the acting business. It was one of the few jobs (along with house
painting) that he hadn't been able to turn a buck at. But probably not from
lack of talent, Johnny thought cynically.
Albany he had
gone to work for Prudential, and he stayed in the capital city until 1965. As
an insurance salesman he was an aimless sort of success. There was no offer to
join the company at the executive level, no outbursts of Christian fervor.
During that five-year period, the brash and brassy Greg Stillson of yore seemed
to have gone into hibernation. In all of his checkered career, the woman in his
life had been his mother. He had never married, had not even dated regularly as
far as Johnny had been able to find out.
In 1965,
Prudential had offered him a position in Ridgeway, New Hampshire, and Greg had
taken it. At about the same time, his period of hibernation seemed to end. The
go-go Sixties were gathering steam. It was the era of the short skirt and do
your own thing. Greg became active in Ridgeway community affairs. He joined the
chamber of Commerce and the Rotary Club. He got state-wide coverage in 1967,
during a controversy over the parking meters downtown. For six years, various
factions had been wrangling over them. Greg suggested that if the meters be
taken out and that collection boxes be put up in their stead. Let people pay
what they want. some people had said that was the craziest idea they had ever
heard. Well, Greg responded, you might just be surprised. Yes sir. He was
persuasive. The town finally adopted the proposal on a provisional basis, and
the ensuing flood of nickels and dimes had surprised everyone but Greg. He had
discovered the principle years ago.
In 1969 he made
New Hampshire news again when he suggested, in a long and carefully worked-out
letter to the Ridgeway newspaper, that drug offenders be put to work on town
public works projects such as parks and bike paths, even weeding the grass on
the traffic islands. That's the craziest idea I ever heard, many said. Well,
Greg responded, try her out and if she don't work, chuck her. The town tried it
out. One pothead reorganized the en-tire town library from the outmoded Dewey
decimal system to the more modern Library of Congress cataloguing system, at no
charge to the town. A number of hippies busted at an hallucinogenic house party
relandscaped the town park into an area showplace, complete with duckpond and a
playground scientifically designed to maximize effective playtime and minimize
danger. As Greg pointed out, most of these drug-users got interested in all
those chemicals in college, but that was no reason why they shouldn't utilize
all the other things they had learned in college.
At the same time
Greg was revolutionizing his adopted home town's parking regulations and its
handling of drug offenders, he was writing letters to the Manchester
Union-Leader, the Boston Globe, and the New York Times, espousing hawkish
positions on the war in Vietnam, mandatory felony sentences for heroin addicts,
and a return to the death penalty, especially for heroin pushers. In his
campaign for the House of Representatives, he had claimed on several occasions
to have been against the war from 1970 on, but the man's own published
statements made that a flat lie.
In 1970, Greg
Stillson had opened his own insurance and realty company. He was a great
success. In 1973 he and three other businessmen had financed and built a
shopping mall on the outskirts of Capital City, the county seat of the district
he now represented. That was the year of the Arabian oil boycott, also the year
Greg started driving a Lincoln Continental. It was also the year he ran for
mayor of Ridgeway.
The mayor enjoyed
a two-year term, and two years before, in 1971, he had been asked by both the
Republicans and Democrats of the largish (population 8,500) New England town to
run. He had declined both of them with smiling thanks. In “78 he ran as an
independent, taking on a fairly popular Republican who was vulnerable because
of his fervent support of President Nixon, and a Democratic figurehead. He
donned his construction helmet for the first time. His campaign slogan was
Let's Build A Better Ridgeway! He won in a landslide. A year later, in New
Hampshire's sister state of Maine, the voters turned away from both the
Democrat, George Mitchell, and the Republican, James Erwin, and elected an
insurance man from Lewiston named James Longley their governor.
The lesson had
not been lost on Gregory Ammas Stillson.
4.
Around the Xerox
clippings were Johnny's notes and the questions he regularly asked himself. He
had been over his chain of reasoning so often that now, as Chancellor and
Brinkley continued to chronicle the election results, he could have spouted the
whole thing word for word.
First, Greg
Stillson shouldn't have been able to get elected. His campaign promises were,
by and large, jokes. His background was all wrong. His education was all wrong.
It stopped at the twelfth-grade level, and, until 1965, he had been little more
than a drifter. In a country where the voters have decided that the lawyers
should make the laws, Stillson's only brushes with that force had been from the
wrong side. He wasn't married. And his personal history was decidedly freaky.
Second, the press
had left him almost completely—and very puzzlingly—alone. In an election year
when Wilbur Mills had admitted to a mistress, when Wayne Hays had been
dislodged from his barnacle-encrusted House seat because of his, when even
those in the houses of the mighty had not been immune from the rough-and-ready
frisking of the press, the reporters should have had a field day with Stillson.
His colorful, controversial personality seemed to stir only amused admiration
from the national press, and he seemed to make no one except maybe Johnny
Smith—nervous. His bodyguards had been Harley-Davidson beach-hoppers only a few
years ago, and people had a way of getting hurt at Stillson rallies, but no
investigative reporter had done an indepth study of that. At a campaign rally
in Capital City—at that same mall Stillson had had a hand in developing—an
eight. yearold girl had suffered a broken arm and a dislocated neck; her mother
swore hysterically that one of those “motorcycle maniacs” had pushed her from
the stage when the girl tried to climb up on the podium and get the Great Man's
signature for her autograph book. Yet there had only been a squib in the
paper—Girl Hurt at Stillson Rally—quickly forgotten.
Stillson had made
a financial disclosure that Johnny thought too good to be true. In 1975
Stillson had paid $11,000 in Federal taxes on an income of $36,000—no state
income tax at all, of course; New Hampshire didn't have one. He claimed all of
his income came from his insurance and real estate agency, plus a small
pittance that was his salary as mayor. There was no mention of the lucrative
Capital City mall. No explanation of the fact that Stillson lived in a house
with an assessed value of $86,000, a house he owned free and clear. In a season
when the president of the United States was being dunned over what amounted to
greens fees, Stillson's weird financial disclosure statement raised zero eye
brows.
Then there was
his record as mayor. His performance on the job was a lot better than his
campaign performances would have led anyone to expect. He was a shrewd and
canny man with a rough but accurate grasp of human, corporate, and political
psychology. He had wound up his term in 1975 with a fiscal surplus for the
first time in ten years, much to the delight of the taxpayers. He pointed with
justifiable pride to his parking program and what he called his Hippie Work-Study
Program. Ridgeway had also been one of the first towns in the whole country to
organize a Bicentennial Committee. A company that made filing cabinets had
located in Ridgeway, and in recessionary times, the unemployment rate locally
was an enviable 3. 2 percent. All very admirable.
It was some of
the other things that had happened while Stillson was mayor that made Johnny
feel scared.
Funds for the
town library had been cut from $11,500 to $8,000, and then, in the last year of
Stilison's term, to $6,500. At the same time, the municipal police
appropriation had risen by forty percent. Three new police cruisers had been
added to the town motor pool, and a collection of riot equipment Two new
officers had also been added, and the town council had agreed, at Stillson's
urging, to institute a 50/50 policy on purchasing officers” personal sidearms.
As a result, several of the cops in this sleepy New England town had gone out
and bought . 357 Magnums, the gun immortalized by Dirty Harry Callahan. Also
during Stillson's term as mayor, the teen rec center had been closed, a
supposedly voluntary but police-enforced ten o'clock curfew for people under
sixteen had been instituted, and welfare had been cut by thirty-five percent.
Yes, there were
lots of things about Greg Stillson that scared Johnny.
The domineering
father and laxly approving mother. The political rallies that felt more like
rock concerts. The man's way with a crowd, his bodyguards -Ever since Sinclair
Lewis people had been crying woe and doom and beware of the fascist state in
America, and it just didn't happen. Well, there had been Huey Long down there
in Louisiana, but Huey Long had —
Had been
assassinated.
Johnny closed his
eyes and saw Ngo cocking his finger. Bam, bam, bam. Tiger, tiger, burning
bright, in the forests of the night. What fearful hand or eye -But you don't
sow dragon's teeth. Not unless you want to get right down there with Frank Dodd
in his hooded vinyl raincoat. With the Oswalds and the Sirhans and the
Bremmers. Crazies of the world, unite. Keep your paranoid notebooks up-to-date
and thumb them over at midnight and when things start to reach a head inside
you, send away the coupon for the mail-order gun. Johnny Smith, meet Squeaky
Fromme, Nice to meet you, Johnny, everything you've got in that notebook makes
perfect sense to me. Want you to meet my spiritual master. Johnny, meet
Charlie. Charlie, this is Johnny. When you finish with Stillson, we're going to
get off together and off the rest of the pigs so we can save the redwoods.
His head was
swirling. The inevitable headache was coming on. It always led to this. Greg
Stilison always led him to this. It was time to go to sleep and please God, no
dreams.
Still: The
Question.
He had written it
in one of the notebooks and kept coming back to it. He had written it in neat
letters and then had drawn a triple circle around it, as if to keep it in. The
Question was this: If you could jump into a time machine and go back to 1932,
would you kill Hitler?
Johnny looked at
his watch. Quarter of one. It was November 3 now, and the Bicentennial election
was a part of history. Ohio was still undecided, but Carter was leading. No
contest, baby. The hurly burly's done, the election's lost and won. Jerry Ford
could hang up his jock, at least until 1980.
Johnny went to
the window and looked out. The big house was dark, but there was a light
burning in Ngo's apartment over the garage. Ngo, who would shortly be an
American citizen, was still watching the great American quadrennial ritual: Old
Bums Exit There, New Bums Enter Here. Maybe Gordon Strachan hadn't given the
Watergate Committee such a bad answer at that Johnny went to bed. After a long
time he slept.
And dreamed of
the laughing tiger.
CHAPTER
TWENTY-TWO
1.
Herb Smith took
Charlene MacKenzie as his second wife on the afternoon of January 2, 1977, just
as planned. The ceremony took place in the Congregational Church at Southwest
Bend. The bride's father, an eighty-year-old gentleman who was almost blind,
gave her away. Johnny stood up with his dad and produced the ring flawlessly at
the proper moment. It was a lovely occasion.
Sarah Hazlett
attended with her husband and their son, who was leaving his babyhood behind
now. Sarah was pregnant and radiant, a picture of happiness and fulfilment.
Looking at her, Johnny was surprised by a stab of bitter jealousy like an
unexpected attack of gas. After a few moments it went away, and Johnny went
over and spoke to them at the reception following the wedding.
It was the first
time he had met Sarah's husband. He was a tall, good-looking man with a
pencil-line moustache and prematurely graying hair. His canvass for the Maine
state senate had been successful, and he held forth on what the national
elections had really meant, and the difficulties of working with an independent
governor, while Denny pulled at the leg of his trousers and demanded more
drink, Daddy, more drink, more-drink!
Sarah said
little, but Johnny felt her brilliant eyes on him—an uncomfortable sensation,
but somehow not unpleasant. A little sad, maybe.
The liquor at the
reception flowed freely, and Johnny went two drinks beyond his usual two drink
stopping point—the shock of seeing Sarah again, maybe, this time with her
family, or maybe only the realization, written on Charlene's radiant face, that
Vera Smith really was gone, and for all time. So when he approached Hector
MacKenzie, father of the bride, some fifteen minutes after the Hazletts had
left, he had a pleasant buzz on.
The old man was
sitting in the corner by the demolished remains of the wedding cake, his
arthritis-gnarled hands folded over his cane. He was wearing dark glasses. One
bow had been mended with black electrician's tape. Beside him there stood two
empty bottles of beer and another that was half-full. He peered closely at Johnny.
“Herb's boy,
ain't you?”
“Yes, sir.
A longer
scrutiny. Then Hector MacKenzie said, “Boy, you don't look well.”
“Too many late
nights, I guess.”
“Look like you
need a tonic. Something to build you up.”
“You were in
World War I, weren't you?” Johnny asked. A number of medals, including a Croix
de Guerre, were pinned to the old man's blue serge suit coat.
“Indeed I was,”
MacKenzie said, brightening. “Served under Black Jack Pershing. AEF, 1917 and
18. We went through the mud and the crud. The wind blew and the shit flew.
Belleau Wood, my boy. Belleau Wood. It's just a name in the history books now.
But I was there. I saw men die there. The wind blew and the shit flew and up
from the trenches came the whole damn crew.
“And Charlene
said that your boy... her brother.,.”
“Buddy. Yep.
Would have been your stepuncle, boy. Did we love that boy? I guess we did, His
name was Joe, but everyone called him Buddy almost from the day he was born.
Charlie's mother started to die the day the telegram came.”
“Killed in the
war, wasn't he?”
“Yes, he was,”
the old man said slowly. “St. Lo, 1944. Not that far from Belleau Wood, not the
way we measure things over here, anyway. They ended Buddy's life with a bullet.
The Nazis.”
“I'm working on
an essay,” Johnny said, feeling a certain drunken cunning at having brought the
conversation around to his real object at last, “I'm hoping to sell it to the
Atlantic or maybe Harper's.,.”
“Writer, are
you?” The dark glasses glinted up at Johnny with renewed interest.
“Well, I'm trying,”
Johnny said. Already he was beginning to regret his glibness. Yes, I'm a
writer, I write in my notebooks, after the dark of night has fallen. “Anyway,
the essay's going to be about Hitler,”
“Hitler? What
about Hitler?”
“Well...
suppose... just suppose you could hop into a time machine and go back to the
year 1932. In Germany. And suppose you came across Hitler. Would you kill him
or let him live?”
The old man's
blank black glasses tilted slowly up to Johnny's face, And now Johnny didn't
feel drunk or glib or clever at all. Everything seemed to depend on what this
old man had to say.
“Is it a joke,
boy?”
“No. No joke.”
One of Hector
MacKenzie's hands left the head of his cane. It went to the pocket of his suit
pants and fumbled there for what seemed an eternity. At last it came out again.
It was holding a bone-handled pocket knife that had been rubbed as smooth and
mellow as old ivory over the course of years. The other hand came into play,
folding the knife's one blade out with all the incredible delicacy of
arthritis. It glimmered with bland wickedness under the light of the
Congregational parish hall: a knife that had traveled to France in 1917 with a
boy, a boy who had been part of a boy-army ready and willing to stop the dirty
hun from bayoneting babies and raping nuns, ready to show the Frenchies a thing
or two in the bargain; and the boys had been machine-gunned, the boys had
gotten dysentery and the killer flu, the boys had inhaled mustard gas and
phosgene gas, the boys had come out of Belleau Wood looking like haunted
scarecrows who had seen the face of Lord Satan himself. And it had all turned
out to be for nothing; it turned out that it all had to be done over again,
Somewhere music was playing. People were laughing. People were dancing. A flashbar
popped warm light. Somewhere far away. Johnny stared at the naked blade,
transfixed, hypnotized by the play of the light over its honed edge.
“See this?”
MacKenzie asked softly.
“Yes,” Johnny
breathed.
“I'd seat this in
his black, lying, murderer's heart,” MacKenzie said. “I'd put her in as far as
she'd go... and then I'd twist her. “He twisted the knife slowly in his hand,
first clock, then counterclock. He smiled, showing baby-smooth gums and one
leaning yellow tooth.
“But first,” he
said, “I'd coat the blade with rat poison.”
2.
“Kill Hitler?”
Roger Chatsworth said, his breath coming out in little puffs. The two of them
were snowshoeing in the woods behind the Durham house. The woods were very
silent. It was early March, but this day was as smoothly and coldly silent as
deep January.
“Yes, that's
right.”
“Interesting
question,” Roger said. “Pointless, but interesting. No. I wouldn't. I think I'd
join the party instead. Try to change things from within. It might have been
possible to purge him or frame him, always granting the foreknowledge of what
was going to happen.”
Johnny thought of
the sawedoff pool cues. He thought of the brilliant green eyes of Sonny
Elliman.
“It might also be
possible to get yourself killed!” he said. “Those guys were doing more than
singing beer-hall songs back in 1933.”
“Yes, that's true
enough. “He cocked an eyebrow at Johnny. “What would you do?”
“I really don't
know,” Johnny said.
Roger dismissed
the subject. “How did your dad and his wife enjoy their honeymoon?”
Johnny grinned.
They had gone to Miami Beach, hotel-workers” strike and all. “Charlene said she
felt right at home, making her own bed. My dad says he feels like a freak,
sporting a sunburn in March. But I think they both enjoyed it.”
“And they've sold
the houses?”
“Yes, both on the
same day. Got almost what they wanted, too. Now if it wasn't for the goddam
medical bills still hanging over my head, it'd be plain sailing.”
“Johnny...
“Hmmm?”
“Nothing. Let's go
back. I've got some Chivas Regal, if you've got a taste.”
“I believe I do,”
Johnny said.
3.
They were reading
Jude the Obscure now, and Johnny had been surprised at how quickly and
naturally Chuck had taken to it (after some moaning and groaning over the first
forty pages or so). He confessed he had been reading ahead at night on his own,
and he intended to try something else by Hardy when he finished. For the first
time in his life he was reading for pleasure. And like a boy who has just been
initiated into the pleasures of sex by an older woman, he was wallowing in it.
Now the book lay
open but facedown in his lap. They were by the pool again, but it was still
drained and both he and Johnny were wearing light jackets. Overhead, mild white
clouds scudded across the sky, trying desultorily to coalesce enough to make
rain. The feel of the air was mysterious and sweet; spring was somewhere near.
It was April 16.
“Is this one of
those trick questions?” Chuck asked.
“Nope.”
“Well, would they
catch me?”
“Pardon?” That
was a question none of the others had asked.
“If I killed him.
Would they catch me? Hang me from a lamppost? Make me do the funky chicken six
inches off the ground?”
“Well; I don't
know,” Johnny said slowly. “Yes, I suppose they would catch you.”
“I don't get to
escape in my time machine to a gloriously changed world, huh? Back to good old
1977?”
“No, I don't
think so.”
“Well, it
wouldn't matter. I'd kill him anyway.”
“Just like that?”
“Sure. “Chuck
smiled a little. “I'd rig myself up with one of those hollow teeth filled with
quick-acting poison or a razor blade in my shirt collar or something like that.
So if I did get caught they couldn't do anything too gross to me. But I'd do
it. If I didn't, I'd be afraid all those millions of people he ended up killing
would haunt me to my grave.”
“To your grave,”
Johnny said a little sickly.
“Are you okay,
Johnny?”
Johnny made
himself return Chuck's smile. “Fine. I guess my heart just missed a beat or
something.”
Chuck went on
with Jude under the milky cloudy sky.
4.
May.
The smell of cut
grass was back for yet another return engagement—also those long-running
favorites, honey. suckle, dust, and roses. In New England spring really only
comes for one priceless week and then the deejays drag out the Beach Boys
golden oldies, the buzz of the cruising Honda is heard throughout the land, and
summer comes down with a hot thud.
On one of the
last evenings of that priceless spring week, Johnny sat in the guest house, looking
out into the night. The spring dark was soft and deep. Chuck was off at the
senior prom with his current girl friend, a more intellectual type than the
last half-dozen. She reads, Chuck had confided to Johnny, one man of the world
to another.
Ngo was gone. He
had gotten his citizenship papers in late March, had applied for a job as head
groundskeeper at a North Carolina resort hotel in April had gone down for an
interview three weeks ago, and had been hired on the spot. Before he left, he
had come to see Johnny.
“You worry too
much about tigers that are not there, I think,” he said. “The tiger has stripes
that will fade into the background so he will not be seen. This makes the
worried man see tigers everywhere.”
“There's a
tiger,” Johnny had answered.
“Yes,” Ngo
agreed. “Somewhere. In the meantime, you grow thin.”
Johnny got up,
went to the fridge, and poured himself a Pepsi. He went outside with it to the
little deck. He sat down and sipped his drink and thought how lucky everyone
was that time travel was a complete impossibility. The moon came up, an orange
eye above the pines, and beat a bloody path across the swimming pool. The first
frogs croaked and thumped. After a little while Johnny went inside and poured a
hefty dollop of Ron Rico into his Pepsi. He went back outside and sat down
again, drinking and watching as the moon rose higher in the sky, changing
slowly from orange to mystic, silent silver.
CHAPTER
TWENTY-THREE
1.
On June the 23rd,
1977, Chuck graduated from high school. Johnny, dressed in his best suit, sat
in the hot auditorium with Roger and Shelley Chatsworth and watched as he
graduated forty-third in his class. Shelley cried.
Afterward, there
was a lawn party at the Chatsworth home. The day was hot and humid.
Thunderheads with purple bellies had formed in the west; they dragged slowly
back and forth across the horizon, but seemed to come no closer. Chuck, flushed
with three screwdrivers, came over with his girl friend, Patty Strachan, to
show Johnny his graduation present from his parents—a new Pulsar watch.
“I told them I
wanted that R2D2 robot, but this was the best they could do,” Chuck said, and
Johnny laughed.
They talked a
while longer and then Chuck said with almost rough abruptness: “I want to thank
you, Johnny. If it hadn't been for you, I wouldn't be graduating today at all.”
“No, that isn't
true,” Johnny said. He was a little alarmed to see that Chuck was on the verge
of tears. “Class always tells, man.
“That's what I
keep telling him,” Chuck's girl said. Behind her glasses, a cool and elegant
beauty was waiting to come out.
“Maybe,” Chuck
said. “Maybe it does. But I think I know which side my diploma is buttered on.
Thanks a hell of a lot. “He put his arms around Johnny and gave him a hug.
It came
suddenly—a hard, bright bolt of image that made Johnny straighten up and dap
his hand against the side of his head as if Chuck had struck him instead of
hugging him. The image sank into his mind like a picture done by electroplate.
“No,” he said.
“No way. You two stay right away from there.”
Chuck drew back
uneasily. He had felt something. Something cold and dark and incomprehensible.
Suddenly he didn't want to touch Johnny; at that moment he never wanted to
touch Johnny again. It was as if he had found out what it would be like to lie
in his own coffin and watch the lid nailed down.
“Johnny,” he
said, and then faltered. “What's what's
Roger had been on
his way over with drinks, and now he paused, puzzled. Johnny was looking over
Chuck's shoulder, at the distant thunderheads. His eyes were vague and hazy.
He said: “You
want to stay away from that place. There are no lightning rods.”
“Johnny... “Chuck
looked at his father, frightened. “It's like he's having some kind of... fit,
or something.”
“Lightning,”
Johnny proclaimed in a carrying voice. People turned their heads to look at
him. He spread his hands. “Flash fire. The insulation in the walls. The
doors... jammed. Burning people smell like hot pork.”
“What's he
talking about?” Chuck's girl cried, and conversation trickled to a halt. Now
everyone was looking at Johnny, as they balanced plates of food and glasses.
Roger stepped
over. “John! Johnny I What's wrong? Wake up!” He snapped his fingers in front
of Johnny's vague eyes. Thunder muttered in the west, the voice of giants over
gin rummy. perhaps. “What's wrong?”
Johnny's voice
was clear and moderately loud, carrying to each of the fifty-some people who
were there—businessmen and their wives, professors and their wives, Durham's upper
middle class. “Keep your son home tonight or he's going to burn to death with
the rest of them. There is going to be a fire, a terrible fire. Keep him away
from Cathy's. It's going to be struck by lightning and it will burn flat before
the first fire engine can arrive. The insulation will burn. They will find
charred bodies six and seven deep in the exits and there will be no way to
identify them except by their dental work. It... it...,
Patty Strachan
screamed then, her hand going to her mouth, her plastic glass tumbling to the
lawn, the ice cubes spilling out onto the grass and gleaming there like
diamonds of improbable size. She stood swaying for a moment and then she
fainted. going down in a pastel billow of party dress, and her mother ran
forward, crying at Johnny as she passed: “What's wrong with you? What in God's
name is wrong with you?”
Chuck stared at
Johnny. His face was paper-white.
Johnny's eyes
began to clear. He looked around at the staring knots of people. “I'm sorry,”
he muttered.
Patty's mother
was on her knees, holding her daughter's head in her arms and patting her
cheeks lightly. The girl began to stir and moan.
“Johnny?” Chuck
whispered, and then, without waiting for an answer, went to his girl.
It was very still
on the Chatsworth back lawn. Everyone was looking at him. They were looking at
him because it had happened again. They were looking at him the way the nurses
had. And the reporters. They were crows strung out on a telephone line. They
were holding their drinks and their plates of potato salad and looking at him
as if he were a bug, a freak. They were looking at him as if he had suddenly
opened his pants and exposed himself to them.
He wanted to run,
he wanted to hide. He wanted to puke.
“Johnny,” Roger
said, putting an arm around him. “Come on in the house. You need to get off
your feet for...
Thunder rumbled,
far off.
“What's Cathy's?”
Johnny said harshly, resisting the pressure of Roger's arm over his shoulders.
“It isn't someone's house, because there were exit signs. What is it? Where is
it?”
“Can't you get
him out of here?” Patty's mother nearly screamed. “He's upsetting her all over
again!”
“Come on,
Johnny.”
“But...”
“Come on.”
He allowed
himself to be led away toward the guest house. The sound of their shoes on the
gravel drive was very loud. There seemed to be no other sound. They got as far
as the pool, and then the whispering began behind them.
“Where's
Cathy's?” Johnny asked again.
“How come you
don't know?” Roger asked. “You seemed to know everything else. You scared poor
Patty Strachan into a faint.”
“I can't see it.
It's in the dead zone. What is it?”
“Let's get you
upstairs first.”
“I'm not sick!”
“Under strain,
then,” Roger said. He spoke softly and soothingly, the way people speak to the
hopelessly mad. The sound of his voice made Johnny afraid. And the headache
started to come. He willed it back savagely. They went up the stairs to the
guest house.
2.
“Feel any
better?” Roger asked.
“What's Cathy's?”
“It's a very
fancy steakhouse and lounge in Somersworth. Graduation parties at Cathy's are
something of a tradition. God knows why. Sure you don't want these aspirin?”
“No. Don't let
him go, Roger. It's going to be hit by lightning. It's going to burn flat.”
“Johnny,” Roger Chatsworth
said, slowly and very kindly, “you can't know a thing like that.”
Johnny drank ice
water a small sip at a time and set the glass back down with a hand that shook
slightly. “You said you checked into my background. I thought...”
“Yes, I did. But you're
drawing a mistaken conclusion. I knew you were supposed to be a psychic or
something, but I didn't want a psychic. I wanted a tutor. You've done a fine
job as a tutor. My personal belief is that there isn't any difference between
good psychics and bad ones, because I don't believe in any of that business.
It's as simple as that. I don't believe it.”
“That makes me a
liar, then.”
“Not at all,”
Roger said in that same kind, low voice. “I have a foreman at the mill in
Sussex who won't light three on a match, but that doesn't make him a bad
foreman. I have friends who are devoutly religious, and although I don't go to
church myself, they're still my friends. Your belief that you can see into the
future or sight things at a distance never entered into my judgment of whether
or not to hire... ... that isn't quite true. It never entered into it once I'd
decided that it wouldn't interfere with your ability to do a good job with
Chuck. It hasn't. But I no more believe that Cathy's is going to burn down
tonight than I believe the moon is green cheese.”
“I'm not a liar,
just crazy,” Johnny said. In a dull sort of way, it was interesting. Roger
Dussault and many of the people who wrote Johnny letters had accused him of
trickery, but Chatsworth was the first to accuse him of having a Jeanne d'Arc
complex.
“Not that,
either,” Roger said. “You're a young man who was involved in a terrible
accident and who has fought his way back against terrible odds at what has
probably been a terrible price. That isn't a thing I'd ever flap my jaw about
freely, Johnny, but if any of those people out there on the lawn—including
Patty's mother—want to jump to a lot of stupid conclusions they'll be invited
to shut their mouths about things they don't understand.”
“Cathy's,” Johnny
said suddenly. “How did I know the name, then? And how did I know it wasn't
someone's house?”
“From Chuck. He's
talked about the party a lot this week.”
“Not to me.”
Roger shrugged.
“Maybe he said something to Shelley or me while you were in earshot. Your
subconscious happened to pick it up and file it away...
“That's right,”
Johnny said bitterly. “Anything we don't understand, anything that doesn't fit
into our scheme of the way things are, we'll just file it under S for
subconscious, right? The twentieth-century god. How many times have you done
that when something ran counter to your pragmatic view of the world, Roger?”
Roger's eyes
might have flickered a little—or it might have been imagination.
“You associated
lightning with the thunderstorm that's coming,” he said. “Don't you see that?
It's perfectly sim . -.
“Listen,” Johnny
said. “I'm telling you this as simply as I can. That place is going to be
struck by lightning. It's going to burn down. Keep Chuck home.”
Ah, God, the
headache was coming for him. Coming like a tiger. He put his hand to his
forehead and rubbed it unsteadily.
“Johnny, you've
been pushing much too hard.”
“Keep him home,”
Johnny repeated.
“It's his
decision, and I wouldn't presume to make it for him. He's free, white, and
eighteen.”
There was a tap
at the door. “Johnny?”
“Come in,” Johnny
said, and Chuck himself came in. He looked worried.
“How are you?”
Chuck asked.
“I'm all right,”
Johnny said. “I've got a headache, that's all. Chuck... please stay away from
that place tonight. I'm asking you as a friend. Whether you think like your dad
or not. Please.”
“No problem,
man,” Chuck said cheerfully, and whumped down on the sofa. He hooked a hassock
over with one foot. “Couldn't drag Patty within a mile of that place with a
twenty-foot towin chain. You put a scare into her.”
“I'm sorry,”
Johnny said. He felt sick and chilly with relief. “I'm sorry but I'm glad.”
“You had some
kind of a flash, didn't you?” Chuck looked at Johnny, then at his father, and
then slowly back to Johnny. “I felt it. It was bad.”
“Sometimes people
do. I understand it's sort of nasty.”
“Well, I wouldn't
want it to happen again,” Chuck said. “But hey... that place isn't really going
to burn down, is it?”
“Yes,” Johnny
said. “You want to just keep away.”
“But... “He looked
at his father, troubled. “The senior class reserved the whole damn place. The
school encourages that, you know. It's safer than twenty or thirty different
parties and a lot of people drinking on the back roads: There's apt to be...
“Chuck fell silent for a moment and then began to look frightened. “There's apt
to be two hundred couples there,” he said. “Dad...”
“I don't think he
believes any of this,” Johnny said.
Roger stood up
and smiled. “Well, let's take a ride over to Somersworth and talk to the
manager of the place,” he said. “It was a dull lawn party, anyway. And if you
two still feel the same coming back, we can have everyone over here tonight.”
He glanced at
Johnny.
“Only condition
being that you have to stay sober and help chaperon, fellow.”
“I'll be glad
to,” Johnny said. “But why, if you don't believe it?”
“For your peace
of mind,” Roger said, “and for Chuck's And so that, when nothing happens
tonight, I can say I told you so and then just laaaugh my ass off.”
“Well, whatever,
thanks. “He was trembling worse than ever now that the relief had come, but his
headache had retreated to a dull throb.
“One thing up
front, though,” Roger said. “I don't think we stand a snowball's chance in hell
of getting the owner to cancel on your unsubstantiated word, Johnny. This is
probably one of his big business nights each year.”
Chuck said,
“Well, we could work something out...”
“Like what?”
“Well, we could
tell him a... ... spin some kind of yarn...
“Lie, you mean?
No, I won't do that. Don't ask me, Chuck.”
Chuck nodded.
“All right.”
“We better get
going,” Roger said briskly. “It's quarter of five. We'll take the Mercedes over
to Somersworth.”
3.
Bruce Carrick,
the owner-manager, was tending bar when the three of them came in at
five-forty. Johnny's heart sank a little when he read the sign posted outside
the lounge doors: PRIVATE PARTY THIS EVENING ONLY 7 PM TO CLOSING SEE YOU
TOMORROW.
Carrick was not
exactly being run into the ground. He was serving a few workmen who were
drinking beer and watching the early news, and three couples who were having
cocktails. He listened to Johnny's story with a face that grew ever more
incredulous. When he had finished, Carrick said: “You say Smith's your name?”
“Yes, that's
right.”
“Mr. Smith, come
on over to this window with me.”
He led Johnny to
the lobby window, by the cloakroom door.
“Look out there,
Mr. Smith, and tell me what you see.
Johnny looked
out, knowing what he would see. Route 9 ran west, now drying from a light
afternoon sprinkle. Above, the sky was perfectly clear. The thunderheads had
passed.
“Not much. At
least, not now. But...
“But nothing.
“Bruce Carrick said. “You know what I think? You want to know frankly? I think
you're a nut. Why you picked me for this royal screwing I don't know or care.
But if you got a second, sonny, I'll tell you the facts of life. The senior
class has paid me six hundred and fifty bucks for this bash. They've hired a
pretty good rock “n roll band, Oak, from up in Maine. The food's out there in
the freezer, all ready to go into the microwave. The salads are on ice. Drinks
are extra, and most of these kids are over eighteen and can drink all they
want... and tonight they will, who can blame them, you only graduate from a
high school once. I'll take in two thousand dollars in the lounge tonight, no
sweat. I got two extra barmen coming in. I got six waitresses and a hostess. If
I should cancel this thing now, I lose the whole night. plus I got to pay back
the six-fifty I already took for the meal. I don't even get my regular dinner
crowd because that sign's been there all week. Do you get the picture?”
“Are there
lightning rods on this place?” Johnny asked.
Carrick threw his
hands up. “I tell this guy the facts of life and he wants to discuss lightning rods!
Yeah, I got lightning rods! A guy came in here, before I added on, must be five
years ago now. He gave me a song-and-dance about improving my insurance rates.
So I bought the goddam lightning rods! Are you happy? Jesus Christ!” He looked
at Roger and Chuck. “What are you two guys doing? Why are you letting this
asshole run around loose? Get out, why don't you? I got a business to run.
“Johnny... “Chuck
began.
“Never mind,”
Roger said. “Let's go. Thank you for your time, Mr. Carrick, and for your polite
and sympathetic attention.”
“Thanks for
nothing,” Carrick said. “Bunch of nuts!” He strode back toward the lounge.
The three of them
went out. Chuck looked doubtfully at the flawless sky. Johnny started toward
the car, looking only at his feet, feeling stupid and defeated. His headache
thudded sickly against his temples. Roger was standing with his hands in his
back pockets, looking up at the long, low roof of the building.
“What are you
looking at, Dad?” Chuck asked.
“There are no
lightning rods up there,” Roger Chatsworth said thoughtfully. “No lightning
rods at all.”
4.
The three of them
sat in the living room of the big house, Chuck by the telephone. He looked
doubtfully at his father. “Most of them won't want to change their plans this
late,” he said.
“They've got
plans to go out, that's all,” Roger said. “They can just as easily come here.”
Chuck shrugged
and began dialing.
They ended up
with about half the couples who had been planning to go to Cathy's that
graduation evening, and Johnny was never really sure why they came. Some
probably came simply because it sounded like a more interesting party and
because the drinks were on the house. But word traveled fast, and the parents
of a good many of the kids here had been at the lawn party that afternoon—as a
result, Johnny spent much of the evening feeling like an exhibit in a glass
case. Roger sat in the corner on a stool, drinking a vodka martini. His face
was a studied mask.
Around quarter of
eight he walked across the big bar/ playroom combination that took up
three-quarters of the basement level, bent close to Johnny and bellowed over
the roar of Elton John, “You want to go upstairs and play some cribbage?”
Johnny nodded
gratefully.
Shelley was in
the kitchen, writing letters. She looked up when they came in, and smiled. “I
thought you two masochists were going to stay down there all night. It's not
really necessary, you know.”
“I'm sorry about
all of this,” Johnny said. “I know how crazy it must seem.”
“It does seem
crazy,” Shelley said. “No reason not to be candid about that. But having them
here is really rather nice. I don't mind.”
Thunder rumbled
outside. Johnny looked around. Shelley saw it and smiled a little. Roger had
left to hunt for the cribbage board in the dining room welsh dresser.
“It's just
passing over, you know,” she said. “A little thunder and a sprinkle of rain.”
“Yes,” Johnny
said.
She signed her
letter in a comfortable sprawl, folded it, sealed it, addressed it, stamped it.
“You really experienced something, didn't you, Johnny?”
“Yes.”
“A momentary
faintness,” she said. “Possibly caused by a dietary deficiency. You're much too
thin, Johnny. It might have been a hallucination, mightn't it?”
“No, I don't
think so.”
Outside, thunder
growled again, but distantly. “I'm just as glad to have him home. I don't
believe in astrology and palmistry and clairvoyance and all of that, but... I'm
just as glad to have him home. He's our only chick... a pretty damned big chick
now, I suspect you re thinking, but it's easy to remember him riding the little
kids” merry-go-round in the town park in his short pants. Too easy, perhaps.
And it's nice to be able to share the the last rite of his boyhood with him.”
“It's nice that
you feel that way,” Johnny said. Suddenly he was frightened to find himself close
to tears. In the last six or eight months it seemed to him that his emotional
control had slipped several notches.
“You've been good
for Chuck. I don't mean just teaching him to read. In a lot of ways.”
“I like Chuck.”
“Yes,” she said
quietly. “I know you do.”
Roger came back
with the cribbage board and a transistor radio tuned to WMTQ, a classical
station that broadcast from the top of Mount Washington.
“A little
antidote for Elton John, Aerosmith, Foghat, et al,” he said. “How does a dollar
a game sound, Johnny?”
“It sounds fine.”
Roger sat down,
rubbing his hands. “Oh, you're goin home poor,” he said.
6.
They played
cribbage and the evening passed. Between each game one of them would go
downstairs and make sure no one had decided to dance on the pool table or go
out back for a little party of their own. “No one is going to impregnate anyone
else at this party if I can help it,” Roger said.
Shelley had gone
into the living room to read. Once an hour the music on the radio would stop
and the news would come on and Johnny's attention would falter a little. But
there was nothing about Cathy's in Somersworth—not at eight, nine, or ten.
After the ten
o'clock news, Roger said: “Getting ready to hedge your prediction a little,
Johnny?”
“No.”
The weather forecast
was for scattered thundershowers, clearing after midnight.
The steady bass
signature of K. C. and the Sunshine Band came up through the floor.
“Party's getting
loud,” Johnny remarked.
“The hell with
that,” Roger said, grinning. “The party's getting drunk. Spider Parmeleau is
passed out in the corner and somebody's using him for a beer coaster. Oh,
they'll have big heads in the morning, you want to believe it. I remember at my
own graduation party...”
“Here is a
bulletin from the WMTQ newsroom,” the radio said.
Johnny, who had
been shuffling, sprayed cards all over the floor.
“Relax, it's
probably just something about that kidnapping down in Florida.”
“I don't think
so,” Johnny said.
The broadcaster
said: “It appears at this moment that the worst fire in New Hampshire history
has claimed more than seventy-five young lives in the border town of
Somersworth, New Hampshire. The fire occurred at a restaurant-lounge called
Cathy's. A graduation party was in progress when the fire broke out.
Somersworth fire chief Milton Hovey told reporters they have no suspicions of
arson; they believe that the fire was almost certainly caused by a bolt of
lightning.”
Roger
Chatsworth's face was draining of all color. He sat bolt upright in his kitchen
chair, his eyes fixed on a point somewhere above Johnny's head. His hands lay
loosely on the table. From below them came the babble of conversation and
laughter, intermingled now with the sound of Bruce Springsteen.
Shelley came into
the room. She looked from her husband to Johnny and then back again. “What is
it? What's wrong?”
“Shut up,” Roger
said.
“... is still
blazing, and Hovey said that a final tally of the dead will probably not be
known until early morning. It is known that over thirty people, mostly members
of the Durham High School senior class, have been taken to hospitals in
surrounding areas to be treated for burns. Forty people, also mostly graduating
students, escaped from small bathroom windows at the rear of the lounge, but
others were apparently trapped in fatal pile-ups at the...
“Was it Cathy's?”
Shelley Chatsworth screamed. “Was it that place?”
“Yes,” Roger
said. He seemed eerily calm. “Yes, it was.”
Downstairs there
had been a momentary silence. It was followed by a running thud of footsteps coming
up the stairs. The kitchen door burst open and Chuck came in, looking for his
mother.
“Mom? What is it?
What's wrong?”
“It appears that
we may owe you for our son's life,” Roger said in that same eerily calm voice.
Johnny had never seen a face that white. Roger looked like a ghastly living
waxwork.
“It burned?”
Chuck's voice was incredulous. Behind him, others were crowding up the stairs
now, whispering in low, affrighted voices. “Are you saying it burned down?”
No one answered.
And then, suddenly, from somewhere behind him, Patty Strachan began to talk in
a high, hysterical voice. “It's his fault, that guy there! He made it happen!
He set it on fire by his mind, just like in that book Carrie. You murderer!
Killer! You...
Roger turned
toward her. “SHUT UP!” He roared.
Patty collapsed
into wild sobs.
“Burned?” Chuck
repeated. He seemed to be asking himself now, inquiring if that could possibly
be the right word.
“Roger?” Shelley
whispered. “Rog? Honey?”
There was a
growing mutter on the stairs, and in the playroom below, like a stir of leaves.
The stereo clicked off. The voices murmured.
Was Mike there?
Shannon went, didn't she? Are you sure? Yes, I was all ready to leave when
Chuck called me. My mother was there when that guy freaked out and she said she
felt like a goose was walking on her grave, she asked me to come here instead.
Was Casey there? Was Ray there? Was Maureen Ontello there? Oh my God, was she?
Was...
Roger stood up
slowly and turned around. “I suggest,” he said, “that we find the soberest
people here to drive and that we all go down to the hospital. They'll need
blood donors.”
Johnny sat like a
stone. He found himself wondering if he would ever move again. Outside, thunder
rumbled.
And followed on
its heels like an inner clap, he heard his dying mother's voice:
Do your duty,
John.
CHAPTER
TWENTY-FOUR
August 12, 1977
Dear Johnny,
Finding you
wasn't much of a trick—I sometimes think if you have enough free cash, you can
find anyone in this country, and the cash I got. Maybe I'm risking your
resentment stating it as baldly as that, but Chuck and Shelley and I owe you
too much to tell you less than the truth. Money buys a lot, but it can't buy
off the lightning. They found twelve boys still in the men's room opening off
the restaurant, the one where the window had been nailed shut. The fire didn't
reach there but the smoke did, and all twelve of them were suffocated. I
haven't been able to get that out of my mind, because Chuck could have been one
of those boys. So I had you “tracked down”, as you put it in your letter. And
for the same reason, I can't leave you alone as you requested. At least not
until the enclosed check comes back canceled with your endorsement on the back.
You'll notice
that it's a considerably smaller check than the one you returned about a month
ago. I got in touch with the EMMC Accounts Department and paid your outstanding
hospital bills with the balance of it. You're free and clear that way, Johnny.
That I could do, and I did it—with great pleasure, I might add.
You protest you
can't take the money. I say you can and you will You will, Johnny. I traced you
to Ft. Lauderdale, and if you leave there I will trace you to the next place
you go, even if you decide on Nepal. Call me a louse who won't let go if you
want to; I see myself more as “the Hound of Heaven”. I don't want to hound you,
Johnny. I remember you telling me that day not to sacrifice my son. I almost
did. And what about the others? Eighty-one dead, thirty more terribly maimed
and burned. I think of Chuck saying maybe we could work out some kind of a
story, spin a yarn or something, and me saying with all the righteousness of
the totally stupid, “I won't do that, Chuck. Don't ask me.” Well, I could have
done something. That's what haunts me. I could have given that butcher Carrick
~3,ooo to pay off his help and shut down for the night. It would have come to
about ~37 a life. So believe me when I say I don't want to hound you; I'm
really too busy hounding myself to want to spare the time. I think I'll be
doing it for quite a few years to come. I'm paying up for refusing to believe
anything I couldn't touch with one of my five senses. And please don't believe
that paying the bills and tendering this check is just a sop to my conscience.
Money can't buy off the lightning, and it can't buy an end to bad dreams,
either. The money is for Chuck, although he knows nothing about it.
Take the check
and I'll leave you in peace. That's the deal. Send it on to UNICEF, if you
want, or give it to a home for orphan bloodhounds, or blow it all on the
ponies. I don't care. Just take it.
I'm sorry you
felt you had to leave in such a hurry, but I believe I understand. We all hope
to see you soon. Chuck leaves for Stovington Prep on September 4.
Johnny, take the
check. Please.
All regards,
Roger Chatsworth
September 1 1977
Dear Johnny,
Will you believe
that I'm not going to let this go? Please. Take the check.
Regards,
Roger
Dear Johnny,
September 10,
1977
Charlie and l
were both so glad to know where you are, and it was a relief to get a letter
from you that sounded so natural and like yourself. But there was one thing
that bothered me very much, son. I called up Sam Weizak and read him that part
of your letter about the increasing frequency of your headaches. He advises you
to see a doctor, Johnny, without delay. He is afraid that a clot may have
formed around the old scar tissue. So that worries me, and it worries Sam, too.
You've never looked really healthy since you came out of the coma, Johnny, and
when I last saw you in early June, I thought you looked very tired. Sam didn't
say, but I know what he'd really like you to do is to catch a plane out of
Phoenix and come on home and let him be the one to look at you. You certainly
can't plead poverty now!
Roger Chatsworth
has called here twice, and I tell him what I can. I think he's telling the
truth when he says it isn't conscience-money or a reward for saving his son's
life. I believe your mother would have said that the man is doing penance the
only way he knows how. Anyway, you've taken it, and I hope you don't mean it
when you say you only did it to “get him off your back”. I believe you have too
much grit in you to do anything for a reason like that.
Now this is very
hard for me to say, but l will do the best I can. Please come home, Johnny. The
publicity has died down again I can hear you saying, “Oh bullshit, it will
never die down again, not after this” and I suppose you are right in a way, but
you are also wrong. Over the phone Mr. Chatsworth said, “If you talk to him, try
to make him understand that no psychic except Nostradamus has ever been much
more than a nine-days” wonder. “I worry about you a lot, son. I worry about you
blaming yourself for the dead instead of blessing your. self for the living,
the ones you saved, the ones that were at the Chatsworths” house that night. I
worry and I miss you, too. “I miss you like the dickens,” as your grand-mother
used to say. So please come home as soon as you can.
Dad
P. S. I'm sending
the clippings about the fire and about your part in it. Charlie collected them
up. As you will see, you were correct in guessing that “everyone who was at
that lawn party will spill their guts to the papers”. I suppose these clippings
may just upset you more, and if they do, just toss them away. But Charlie's
idea was that you may look at them and say, “That wasn't as bad as I thought, I
can face that. “I hope it turns out that way.
Dad
September 29,
1977
Dear Johnny,
I got your
address from my dad. How is the great American desert. Seen any redskins
(ha-ha)? Well here I am at Stovington Prep. This place isn't so tough. I am
taking sixteen hours of credit. Advanced chemistry is my favorite although it's
really something of a tit after the course at DHS. I always had the feeling
that our teacher there, old Fearless Farnham, would really have been more happy
making doomsday weapons and blowing up the world. In English we are reading
three things by J. D. Salinger this first four weeks, Catcher in the Rye,
Franny and Zooey, and Raise High the Roof Beams, Carpenters. I like him a lot.
Our teacher told us he still lives over in N. H. but has given up writing. That
blows my mind. Why would someone just give up when they are going great guns?
Oh well. The football team here really sucks but I'm learning to like soccer.
The coach says soccer is football for smart people and football is football for
ass-holes. I can't figure out yet if he's right or just jealous.
I'm wondering if
it would be oh to give out your address to some people who were at our party
graduation night. They want to write and say thanks. One of them is Patty
Strachan's mother, you will remember her, the one that made such a pisshead of
herself when her “precious daughter” fainted at the lawn party that afternoon.
She now figures that you're an ok person. I'm not going with Patty anymore, by
the way. I'm not much on long-distance courtships at my “tender age” (ha-ha),
and Patty is going to Vassar, as you might have expected. I've met a foxy
little chick here.
Well, write when
you can, my man. My dad made it sound like you were really “bummed out” for
what reason I do not know since it seems to me that you did everything you
could to make things turn out right. He's wrong, isn't he, Johnny? You're
really not that bummed out, are you? Please write and tell me you are oh, I
worry about you. That's a laugh, isn't it, the original Alfred E. Neuman
worried about you, but I am.
When you write,
tell me why Holden Caulfield always has to have the blues so much when he isn't
even black.
Chuck
P. S. The foxy chick's
name is Stephanie Wyman, and have already turned her on to Something Wicked
This Way Comes. She also likes a punk-rock group called The Ramones, you should
hear them, they are hilarious.
C
October 17, 1977
Dear Johnny,
Okay, that's
better, you sound ok. Laughed my ass off about your job with the Phoenix Public
Works Dept. I have no sympathy at all for your sunburn after four outings as a
Stovington Tiger. Coach is right, l guess, football is football for assholes,
at least at this place. Our record is 1–3 and in the game we won I scored three
touchdowns, hyperventilated my stupid self and blacked out. Scared Steff into a
tizzy (ha-ha).
f waited to write
so I could answer your question about how the Home Folks feel about Greg
Stillson now that he is “on the job”. J was home this last weekend, and I'll
tell you all I can. Asked my dad first and he said, “Is Johnny still interested
in that guy?” I said, “He's showing his fundamental bad taste by wanting your
opinion. “Then he goes to my mother, “See, prep school is turning him into a
smartass. I thought it would.”
Well, to make a
long story short—most people are pretty surprised by how well Stillson's doing.
My dad said this: “If people of a congressman's home district had to give a
report card on how well the guy was doing after four months, Stillson would get
mostly Bs, plus an A for his work on Carter's energy bill and his own home
heating-oil ceiling bill. Also an A for effort. “Dad told me to tell you that
maybe he was wrong about Stillson being the village fool.
Other comments
from people I talked to when I was home: they like it around here that he
doesn't dress up in a business suit. Mrs. Jarvis who runs the Quik-Pik (sorry about
the spelling, man, but that's what they call it) says she thinks Stillson is
not afraid of “the big interests”. Henry Burke, who runs The Bucket—that el
scuzzo tavern downtown—says he thinks Stilison has done “a double-damn good
lob”. Most other comments are similar. They contrast what Stillson has done
with what Carter hasn't done, most of them are really disappointed in him and
are kicking themselves for having voted for him. I asked some of them if they
weren't worried that those iron horsemen were still hanging around and that
fellow Sonny Elliman was serving as one of Stillson's aides. None of them
seemed too upset. The guy who runs the Record Rock put it to be this way: “If
Tom Hayden can go straight and Eldridge Cleave can get Jesus, why can't some
bikies join the establishment? Forgive and forget.”
So there you are.
I would write more, but football practice is coming up. This weekend we are
scheduled to be trounced by the Barre Wildcats. I just hope I survive the
season. Keep well, my man.
Chuck
From the New York
Times, March 4, 1978:
FBI AGENT
MURDERED IN OKLAHOMA
Special to the
Times—Edgar Lancte, 37, a ten-year veteran of the FBI, was apparently murdered
last night in an Oklahoma City parking garage. Police say that a dynamite bomb
wired to the ignition of his car exploded when Mr. Lancte turned the key. The
gang-land-style execution was similar in style to the murder of Arizona
investigative reporter Don Bolles two years ago, but FBI chief William Webster
would not speculate on any possible connection. Mr. Webster would also neither
confirm nor deny that Mr. Lancte had been investigating shady land deals and
possible links to local politicians.
There appears to
be some mystery surrounding exactly what Mr. Lancte's current assignment was,
and one source in the Justice Department claims that Mr. Lancte was not
investigating possible land fraud at all but a national security matter.
Mr. Lancte joined
the Federal Bureau of Investigation in 1968 and...
CHAPTER
TWENTY-FIVE
1.
The notebooks in
Johnny's bureau drawer grew from four to five, and by the fall of 1978 to
seven. In the fall of 1978, between the deaths of two popes in rapid
succession, Greg Stillson had become national news.
He was reelected
to the House of Representatives in a landslide, and with the country tending
toward Proposition 13 conservativism, he had formed the America Now party. Most
startling, several members of the House had reneged on their original party
standing and had “joined up”, as Greg liked to put it. Most of them held very
similar beliefs, which Johnny had defined as superficially liberal on domestic
issues and moderate to very conservative on issues of foreign policy. There was
not a one of them who had voted on the Carter side of the Panama Canal
treaties. And when you peeled back the liberal veneer on domestic positions,
they turned out to be pretty conservative, too. The America Now party wanted
bad trouble for big-time dopers, they wanted the cities to have to sink or swim
on their own ('There is no need for a struggling dairy farmer to have to
subsidize New York City's methadone programs with his taxes,” Greg proclaimed),
they wanted a crackdown on welfare benefits to whores, pimps, bums, and people
with a felony bust on their records, they wanted sweeping tax reforms to be
paid for by sweeping social services cutbacks. All of it was an old song, but
Greg's America Now party had set it to a pleasing new tune.
Seven congressmen
swung over before the off-year elections, and two senators. Six of the
Congressmen were reelected, and both of the senators. Of the nine, eight had
been Republicans whose base had been whittled away to a pinhead. Their switch
of party and subsequent reelections, one wag had quipped, was a better trick
than the one that had followed “Lazarus, come forth!”
Some were already
saying that Greg Stillson might be a power to be reckoned with, and not that
many years down the road, either. He had not been able to send all the world's
pollution out to Jupiter and the rings of Saturn, but he had succeeded in
running at least two of the rascals out—one of them a congressman who had been
feathering his nest as the silent partner in a parking-lot kickback scheme, and
one of them a presidential aide with a penchant for gay bars. His oil-ceiling
bill had shown vision and boldness, and his careful guidance of its passage
from committee to final vote had shown a down-home country-boy shrewdness.
Nineteen-hundred eighty would be too early for Greg, and 1984 might be too
tempting to resist, but if he managed to stay cool until 1988, if he continued
to build his base and the winds of change did not shift radically enough to
blow his fledgling party away, why, anything might happen. The Republicans had
fallen to squabbling splinters, and assuming that Mondale or Jerry Brown or
even Howard Baker might follow Carter as president, who was to follow then?
Even 1992 might not be too late for him. He was a relatively young man. Yes,
1992 sounded about right...
There were
several political cartoons in Johnny's notebooks. All of them showed Stillson's
infectious slantwise grin, and in all of them he was wearing his construction
helmet. One by Oliphant showed Greg rolling a barrel of oil marked PRICE
CEILINGS straight down the middle aisle of the House, the helmet cocked back on
his head. Up front was Jimmy Carter, scratching his head and looking puzzled;
he was not looking Greg's way at all and the implication seemed to be that he
was going to get run down. The caption read: OUTTA MY WAY, JIMMY!
The helmet. The
helmet somehow bothered Johnny more than anything else. The Republicans had
their elephant, the democrats their donkey, and Greg Stillson had his
construction helmet. In Johnny's dreams it sometimes seemed that Stillson was
wearing a motorcycle helmet. And sometimes it was a coal-scuttle helmet.
2.
In a separate
notebook he kept the clippings his father had sent him concerning the fire at
Cathy's. He had gone over them again and again, although for reasons that Sam,
Roger, or even his father could not have suspected.
PSYCHIC PREDICTS
FIRE. “MY DAUGHTER WOULD HAVE DIED TOO,” TEARFUL, THANKFUL MOM PROCLAIMS (the
tearful, thankful mom in question had been Patty Strachan's). Psychic Who
Cracked Castle Rock Murders Predicts Flash Fire. ROADHOUSE DEATH-TOLL REACHES
90. FATHER SAYS JOHNNY SMITH HAS LEFT NEW ENGLAND, REFUSES TO SAY WHERE.
Pictures of him. Pictures of his father. Pictures of that long-ago wreck on
Route 6 in Cleaves Mills, back in the days when Sarah Bracknell had been his
girl. Now Sarah was a woman, the mother of two, and in his last letter Herb had
said Sarah was showing a few gray hairs. It seemed impossible to believe that
he himself was thirty-one. Impossible, but true.
Around all these
clippings were his own jottings, his painful efforts to get it straight in his
mind once and for all. None of them understood the true importance of the fire,
its implication on the much larger matter of what to do about Greg Stillson.
He had written:
“I have to do something about Stillson. I have to. I was right about Cathy's, and
I'm going to be right about this. There is absolutely no question in my mind.
He is going to become president and he is going to start a war—or cause one
through simple mismanagement of the office, which amounts to the same thing.
“The question is:
How drastic are the measures that need to be taken?
“Take Cathy's as
a test-tube case. It almost could have been sent to me as a sign, God I'm
starting to sound like my mother, but there it is. Okay, I knew there was going
to be a fire and that people were going to die. Was that sufficient to save
them? Answer: it was not sufficient to save all of them, because people only
truly believe after the fact. The ones who came to the Chatsworth house instead
of going to Cathy's were saved, but it's important to remember that R. C.
didn't have the party because he believed my prediction. He was very upfront
about that. He had the party because he thought it would help me have peace of
mind. He was... humoring me. He believed after. Patty Strachan's mother
believed after. After-after-after. By then it was too late for the dead and the
burned.
“So,
Question—Could I have changed the outcome?
“Yes. I could
have driven a car right through the front of the place. Or, I could have burned
it down myself that afternoon.
“Question 3: What
would the results of either action have been to me?
“Imprisonment,
probably. If I took the car option and then lightning struck it later that
night, I suppose I could have argued... no, it doesn't wash. Common experience
may recognize some sort of psychic ability in the human mind, but the law sure
as hell doesn't. I think now, if I had it to do over again, I would do one of
those things and never mind the consequences to me. Is it p0sssible that I
didn't completely believe my own prediction?
“The matter of
Stillson is horribly similar in all respects, except, thank God, that I have a
lot more lead time.
“So, back to
square one. I don't want Greg Stillson to become President. How can I change
that outcome?
“1. Go back to
New Hampshire and “line up”, as he puts it. Try to throw a few monkey wrenches
into the America Now party. Try to sabotage him. There's dirt enough under the
rug. Maybe I could sweep some of it out.
“2. Hire someone
else to get the dirt on him. There's enough of Roger's money left over to hire
someone good. On the other hand, I got the feeling that Lancte was pretty good.
And Lancte's dead.
“3. Wound or
cripple him. The way Arthur Bremmer crippled Wallace, the way whoever-it-was
crippled Larry Flynt.
“4. Kill him.
Assassinate him.
“Now, some of the
drawbacks. The first option isn't sure enough. I could end up doing nothing
more constructive than getting myself trounced, the way Hunter Thompson did
when he was researching his first book, that one on the Hell's Angels. Even
worse, this fellow Elliman may be familiar with what I look like, as a result
of what happened at the Trimbull rally. Isn't it more or less S. O. P. to keep
a file on people who may be dangerous to your guys? I wouldn't be surprised to
find out that Stillson had one guy on his payroll whose only job was to keep
updated files on weird people and kooks. Which definitely includes me.
“Then there's the
second option. Suppose all the dirt has already come out? If Stillson has
already formed his higher political aspirations—and all his actions seem to
point that way—he may already have cleaned up his act. And another thing: dirt
under the rug is only as dirty as the press wants to make it, and the press
likes Stillson. He cultivates them. In a novel I suppose I would turn private
detective myself and “get the goods on him”, but the sad fact is that I
wouldn't know where to begin. You could argue that my ability to “read” people,
to find things out that have been lost (to quote Sam) would give me a boost. If
I could find out something about Lancte, that would turn the trick. But isn't
it likely that Stillson delegates all that to Sonny Elliman? And I cannot even
be sure, despite my suspicions, that Edgar Lancte was still on Stillson's trail
when he was murdered. It is possible that I might hang Sonny Elliman and still
not finish Stillson.
“Overall, the
second alternative is lust not sure enough. The stakes are enormous, so much so
that I don't even dare let myself think about “the big picture” very often. It
brings on a very bitch-kitty of a headache every time.
“I have even
considered, in my wilder moments, trying to hook him on drugs the way the
character Gene Hack-man played in The French Connection II was, or driving him
batty with LSD slipped into his Dr Pepper or whatever it is he drinks. But all
of that is cop-show make-believe. Gordon Liddy shit. The problems are so great
that this “option” doesn't even bear much talking about, Maybe I could kidnap
him. After all, the guy is only a U. S. representative. I wouldn't know where
to get heroin or morphine, but I could get plenty of LSD from Larry McNaughton
right here in the good old Phoenix Public Works Department. He has pills for
every purpose. But suppose (if we're willing to suppose the foreging) that he
just enjoyed his trip(s)?
“Shooting and
crippling him? Maybe I could and maybe I couldn't. I guess under the right
circumstances, I could—like the rally in Trimbull. Suppose I did. After what
happened in Laurel, George Wallace was never really a potent political force
again. On the other hand, FDR campaigned from his wheelchair and even turned it
into an asset.
“That leaves
assassination, the Big Casino. This is the one unarguable alternative. You
can't run for president if you're a corpse.
“If I could pull
the trigger.
“And if I could,
what would the results be to me?
“As Bob Dylan
says, “Honey, do you have to ask me that?"”
There were a
great many other notes and jottings, but the only other really important one
was written out and neatly boxed: “Suppose outright murder does turnout to be
the only alternative? And suppose it turned out that I could pull the trigger?
Murder is still wrong. Murder is wrong. Murder is wrong. There may yet be an
answer. Thank God there's years of time.”
3.
But for Johnny,
there wasn't.
In early December
of 1978, shortly after another congressman, Leo Ryan of California, had been
shot to death on a jungle airstrip in the South American country of Guayana,
Johnny Smith discovered he had almost run out of time.
CHAPTER
TWENTY-SIX
1.
At 2:30 P. M. On
December 26, 1978, Bud Prescott waited on a tall and rather haggard-looking
young man with graying hair and badly bloodshot eyes. Bud was one of three clerks
working in the 4th Street Phoenix Sporting Goods Store on the day after
Christmas, and most of the business was exchanges—but this fellow was a paying
customer.
He said he wanted
to buy a good rifle, light-weight, bolt-action. Bud showed him several. The day
after Christmas was a slow one on the gun-counter; when men got guns for
Christmas, very few of them wanted to exchange them for something else.
This fellow
looked them all over carefully and finally settled on a Remington 700, . 243
caliber, a very nice gun with a light kick and a flat trajectory. He signed the
gun-book John Smith and Bud thought, If I never saw me an alias before in my
life, there's one there. “John Smith” paid cash—took the twenties right out of
a wallet that was bulging with them. Took the rifle right over the counter.
Bud, thinking to poke him a little, told him he could have his initials burned
into the stock, no extra charge. “John Smith” merely shook his head.
When “Smith” left
the store, Bud noticed that he was limping noticeably. Would never be any
problem identifying that guy again, he thought, not with that limp and those
scars running up and down his neck.
2.
At 10: 30 AM. on
December 27, a thin man who walked with a limp came into Phoenix Office Supply,
Inc., and approached Dean Clay, a salesman there. Clay said later that he
noticed what his mother had always called a “fire-spot” in one of the man's
eyes. The customer said he wanted to buy a large attache case, and eventually
picked out a handsome cowhide item, top of the line, priced at $149. 95. And
the man with the limp qualified for the cash discount by paying with new
twenties. The whole transaction, from looking to paying; took no more than ten
minutes. The fellow walked out of the store, and turned right toward the
downtown area, and Dean Clay never saw him again until he saw his picture in
the Phoenix Sun.
3.
Late that same
afternoon a tall man with graying hair approached Bonita Alvarez's window in
the Phoenix Amtrak terminal and inquired about traveling from Phoenix to New
York by train. Bonita showed him the connections. He followed them with his
finger and then carefully jotted them all down. He asked Bonnie Alvarez if she
could ticket him to depart on January 3. Bonnie danced her fingers over her
computer console and said that she could.
“Then why don't
you... “the tall man began, and then faltered. He put one hand up to his head.
“Are you all
right, sir?”
“Fireworks,” the
tall man said. She told the police later on that she was quite sure that was
what he said. Fire-works.
“Sir? Are you all
right?”
“Headache,” he
said. “Excuse me. “He tried to smile, but the effort did not improve his drawn,
young-old face much.
“Would you like
some aspirin? I have some.”
“No, thanks.
It'll pass.”
She wrote the
tickets and told him he would arrive at New York's Grand Central Station on
January 6, at midafternoon.
“How much is
that?”
She told him and
added: “Will that be cash or charge,. Mr. Smith?”
“Cash,” he said,
and pulled it right out of his wallet -a whole handful of twenties and tens.
She counted it,
gave him his change, his receipt, his tickets. “Your train leaves at 10: 30 A.
M., Mr. Smith,” she said. “Please be here and ready to entrain at 10: 10.
“All right,” he
said. “Thank you.”
Bonnie gave him the
big professional smile, but Mr. Smith was already turning away. His face was
very pale, and to Bonnie he looked like a man who was in a great deal of pain.
She was very sure
that he had said fireworks.
4.
Elton Curry was a
conductor on Amtrak's Phoenix-Salt Lake run. The tall man appeared promptly at
10:00 A. M. on January 2, and Elton helped him up the steps and into the car
because he was limping quite badly. He was carrying a rather old tartan
traveling bag with scuffmarks and fraying edges in one hand. In the other he
carried a brand-new cowhide attache case. He carried the attache case as if it
were quite heavy.
“Can I help you
with that, sir?” Elton asked, meaning the attache case, but it was the
traveling bag that the passenger handed him, along with his ticket.
“No, I'll take
that when we're underway, sir.”
“All right. Thank
you.”
A very polite
sort of fellow, Elton Curry told the FBI agents who questioned him later. And
he tipped well.
5.
January 6, 1979,
was a gray, overcast day in New York -snow threatened but did not fall. George
Clements” taxi was parked in front of the Biltmore Hotel, across from Grand
Central.
The door opened
and a fellow with graying hair got in, moving carefully and a little painfully.
He placed a traveling bag and an attache case beside him on the seat, dosed the
door, then put his head back against the seat and closed his eyes for a moment,
as if he was very, very tired.
“Where we goin,
my friend?” George asked.
His fare looked
at a slip of paper. “Port Authority Terminal,” he said.
George got going.
“You look a little white around the gills, my friend. My brother-in-law looked
like that when he was havin his gallstone attacks. You got stones?
“No.”
“My
brother-in-law, he says gallstones hurt worse than anything. Except maybe
kidney stones. You know what I told him? I told him he was full of shit. Andy,
I says, you're a great guy, I love ya, but you're full of shit. You ever had
cancer, Andy? I says. I asks him that, you know, did he ever have cancer. I
mean, everybody knows cancer's the worst. “George took a long look in his
rear-view mirror. “I'm asking y6u sincerely, my friend... are you okay?
Because, I'm telling you the truth, you look like death warmed over.”
The passenger
answered, “I'm fine. I was... thinking of another taxi ride. Several years ago.
“Oh, right,”
George said sagely, exactly as if he knew what the man was talking about. Well,
New York was full of kooks, there was no denying that. And after this brief
pause for reflection, he went on talking about his brother-in-law.
6.
“Mommy, is that
man sick?”
“Shhh.”
“Yeah, but is
he?”
“Danny, be
quiet.”
She smiled at the
man on the other side of the Greyhound's aisle, an apologetic,
kids-will-say-anything-won't-they smile, but the man appeared not to have heard.
The poor guy did look sick. Danny was only four, but he was right about that.
The man was looking listlessly out at the snow that had begun to fall shortly
after they crossed the Connecticut state line. He was much too pale, much too
thin, and there was a hideous Frankenstein scar running up out of his coat
collar to just under his jaw. It was as if someone had tried taking his head
clean off at sometime in the not-too-distant past—tried and almost succeeded.
The Greyhound was
on its way to Portsmouth, New Hampshire, and they would arrive at 9 30 tonight
if the snow didn't slow things down too much. Julie Brown and her son were
going to see Julie's mother-in-law, and as usual the old bitch would spoil
Danny rotten—and Danny didn't have far to go.
“I wanna go see
him.”
“No, Danny.”
“I wanna see if
he's sick.”
“No!”
“Yeah, but what
if he's dine, ma?” Danny's eyes positively glowed at this entrancing
possibility. “He might be dine right now!”
“Danny, shut up.”
“Hey, mister!”
Danny cried. “You dine, or anything?”
“Danny, you shut
your mouth! “Julie hissed, her cheeks burning with embarrassment.
Danny began to
cry then, not real crying but that snotty, I-can't-get-my-own-way whining that
always made her want to grab him and pinch his arms until he really had
something to cry about. At times like this, riding the bus into evening through
another cruddy snowstorm with her son whining beside her, she wished her own
mother had sterilized her several years before she had reached the age of
consent.
That was when the
man across the aisle turned his head and smiled at her—a tired, painful smile,
but rather sweet for all that. She saw that his eyes were terribly bloodshot,
as if he had been crying. She tried to smile back, but it felt false and uneasy
on her lips. That red left eye—and the scar running up his neck—made that half
of his face look sinister and unpleasant.
She hoped that
the man across the aisle wasn't going all the way to Portsmouth, but as it
turned out, he was.
She caught sight
of him in the terminal as Danny's gram swept the boy, giggling happily, into
her arms. She saw him limping toward the terminal doors, a scuffed traveling
bag in one hand, a new attache case in the other. And for just a moment, she
felt a terrible chill cross her back. It was really worse than a limp—it was
very nearly a head-long lurch. But there was something implacable about it, she
told the New Hampshire state police later. It was as if he knew exactly where
he was going and nothing was going to stop him from getting there.
Then he passed
out into the darkness and she lost sight of him.
7.
Timmesdale, New
Hampshire, is a small town west of Durham, just inside the third congressional
district. It is kept alive by the smallest of the Chatsworth Mills, which hulks
like a soot-stained brick ogre on the edge of Timmesdale Stream. Its one modest
claim to fame (according to the local Chamber of Commerce) is that it was the
first town in New Hampshire to have electric streetlights.
One evening in
early January, a young man with prematurely graying hair and a limp walked into
the Timmesdale Pub, the town's only beer joint. Dick O'Donnell, the owner, was
tending the bar. The place was almost empty because it was the middle of the
week and another norther was brewing. Two or three inches had piled up out
there already, and more was on the way.
The man with the
limp stamped off his shoes, came to the bar, and ordered a Pabst. O'Donnell
served him. The fellow had two more, making them last, watching the TV over the
bar. The color was going bad, had been for a couple of months now, and The Fonz
looked like an aging Rumanian ghoul. O'Donnell couldn't remember having seen
this guy around.
“Like another?”
O'Donnell asked, coming back to the bar after serving the two old bags in the
corner.
“One more won't
hurt,” the fellow said. He pointed to a spot above the TV. “You met him, I
guess.”
It was a framed
blowup of a political cartoon. It showed Greg Stilison, his construction helmet
cocked back on his head, throwing a fellow in a business suit down the Capitol
steps. The fellow in the business suit was Louis Quinn, the congressman who had
been caught taking kickbacks in the parking-lot scam some fourteen months ago.
The cartoon was titled GIVING EM THE BUM'S RUSH, and across the corner it had
been signed in a scrawling hand: For Dick O'Donnell, who keeps the best damn
saloon in the third district! Keep drawing them, Dick—Greg Stillson.
“Betcha butt I
did,” O'Donnell said. “He gave a speech in here the last time he canvassed for
the House. Had signs out all over town, come on into the Pub at two o'clock
Saturday afternoon and have one on Greg. That was the best damn day's business
I've ever done. People was only supposed to have one on him, but he ended up
grabbing the whole tab. Can't do much better than that, can you?”
“Sounds like you
think he's one hell of a guy.
“Yeah, I do,”
O'Donnell said. “I'd be tempted to put my bare knuckles on anyone who said the
other way.”
“Well, I won't
try you. “The fellow put down three quarters. “Have one on me.
“Well, okay.
Don't mind if I do. Thanks, mister...?”
“Johnny Smith is
my name.
“Why, pleased to
meet you, Johnny. Dicky O'Donnell, that's me. “He drew himself a beer from the
tap. “Yeah, Greg's done this part of New Hampshire a lotta good. And there's a
lotta people afraid to come right out and say it, but I'm not. I'll say it
right out loud. Some day Greg Stillson's apt to be president”
“You think so?”
“I do,” O'Donnell
said, coming back to the bar. “New Hampshire's not big enough to hold Greg.
He's one hell of a politician, and coming from me, that's something. I thought
the whole crew was nothin but a bunch of crooks and lollygags. I still do, but
Greg's an exception to the rule. He's a square shooter. If you told me five
years ago I'd be sayin somethin like that, I woulda laughed in your face. You'd
be more likely to find me readin poitry than seein any good in a politician, I
woulda said. But, goddammit, he's a man.”
Johnny said,
“Most of these guys want to be your buddy while they're running for office, but
when they get in its fuck you, Jack, I got mine until the next election. I come
from Maine myself, and the one time I wrote Ed Muskie, you know what I got? A
form letter!”
“Ah, that's a
Polack for you,” O'Donnell said. “What do you expect from a Polack? Listen,
Greg comes back to the district every damn weekend! Now does that sound like
fuck you, Jack, I got mine, to you?”
“Every weekend,
huh?” Johnny sipped his beer. “Where? Trimbull? Ridgeway? The big towns?”
“He's got a
system,” O'Donnell said in the reverent tones of a man who has never been able
to work one out for himself. “Fifteen towns, from the big places like Capital
City right down to the little burgs like Timmesdale and Coorter's Notch. He
hits one a week until he's gone through the whole list and then he starts at
the top again. You know how big Coorter's Notch is? They got eight hundred
souls up there. So what do you think about a guy who takes a weekend off from
Washington and comes down to Coorter's Notch to freeze his balls off in a cold
meetin hall? Does that sound like fuck you, Jack, I got mine, to you?”
“No, it doesn't,”
Johnny said truthfully. “What does he do? Just shake hands?”
“No, he's got a
hall in every town. Reserves it for all day Saturday. He gets in there about
ten in the morning, and people can come by and talk to him. Tell him their
idears, you know. If they got questions, he answers them. If he can't answer
them, he goes back to Washington and finds the answer!” He looked at Johnny
triumphantly.
“When was he here
in Timmesdale last?”
“Couple of months
ago,” O'Donnell said. He went to the cash register and rummaged through a pile
of papers beside it. He came up with a dog-eared clipping and laid it on the
bar beside Johnny.
“Here's the list.
You just take a look at that and see what you think.”
The clipping was
from the Ridgeway paper. It was fairly old now. The story was headlined STILLS
ON ANNOUNCES “FEEDBACK CENTERS”. The first paragraph looked as though it might
have been lifted straight from the Stillson press kit. Below it was the list of
towns where Greg would be spending his weekends, and the proposed date's. He
was not due in Timmesdale again until mid-March.
“I think it looks
pretty good,” Johnny said.
“Yeah, I think
so. Lotta people think so.”
“By this dipping,
he must have been ill Goorter's Notch just last weekend.”
“That's right,”
O'Donnell said, and laughed. “Good old Coorter's Notch. Want another beer,
Johnny?”
“Only if you'll
join me,” Johnny said, and laid a couple of bucks on the bar.
“Well, I don't
care if I do.”
One of the two
bar-bags had put some money in the juke and Tammy Wynette, sounding old and
tired and not happy to be here, began singing, “Stand By Your Man.”
“Hey Dick!” the
other cawed. “You ever hear of service in this place?”
“Shut your head!
“he hollered back.
“Fuck—YOU,” she
called, and cackled.
“Goddammit,
Clarice, I told you about saying the eff-word in my bar! I told you..:
“Oh get off it
and let's have some beer.”
“I hate those two
old cunts,” O'Donnell muttered to Johnny. “Couple of old alky diesel-dykes,
that's what they are. They been here a million years, and I wouldn't be
surprised if they both lived to spit on my grave. It's a hell of a world
sometimes.”
“Yes, it is.”
“Pardon me, I'll
be right back. I got a girl, but she only comes in Fridays and Saturdays in the
winter.”
O'Donnell drew
two schooners of beer and brought them over to the table. He said something to
them and Clarice replied “Fuck—YOU!” and cackled again. The beerjoint was
filled with the ghosts of dead hamburgers. Tammy Wynette sang through the
popcorn-crackle of an old record. The radiators thudded dull heat into the room
and outside snow spatted dryly against the glass. Johnny rubbed his temples. He
had been in this bar before, in a hundred other small towns. His head ached.
When he had shaken O'Donnell's hand he knew that the barkeep had a big old
mongrel dog that he had trained to sic on command. His one great dream was that
some night a burglar would break into his house and he would legally be able to
sic that big old dog onto him, and there would be one less goddam hippie pervo
junkie in the world.
Oh, his head
ached.
O'Donnell came
back, wiping his hands on his apron. Tammy Wynette finished up and was replaced
with Red Sovine, who had a CB call for the Teddy Bear.
“Thanks again for
the suds,” O'Donnell said, drawing two.
“My pleasure,”
Johnny said, still studying the dipping. “Coorter's Notch last week, Jackson
this coming weekend. I never heard of that one. Must be a pretty small town,
huh?”
“Just a burg,”
O'Donnell agreed. “They used to have a ski resort, but it went broke. Lotta
unemployment up that way. They do some wood-pulping and a little shirttail
farming. But he goes up there, by the Jesus. Talks to em. Listens to their
bitches. Where you from up in Maine, Johnny?”
“Lewiston,”
Johnny lied. The dipping said that Greg Stillson would meet with interested
persons at the town hall.
“Guess you came
down for the skiing, huh?”
“No, I hurt my
leg a while back. I don't ski anymore.
Just passing
through. Thanks for letting me look at this. “Johnny handed the clipping back.
“It's quite interesting.”
O'Donnell put it
carefully back with his other papers. He had an empty bar, a dog back home that
would sic on command, and Greg Stillson. Greg had been in his bar.
Johnny found
himself abruptly wishing himself dead. If this talent was a gift from God, then
God was a dangerous lunatic who ought to be stopped. If God wanted Greg
Stilison dead, why hadn't he sent him down the birth canal with the umbilical
cord wrapped around his throat? Or strangled him on a piece of meat? Or
electrocuted him while he was changing the radio station? Drowned him in the
ole swimming hole? Why did God have to have Johnny Smith to do his dirty work?
It wasn't his responsibility to save the world, that was for the psychos and
only psychos would presume to try it. He suddenly decided he would let Greg
Stillson live and spit in God's eye.
“You okay,
Johnny?” O'Donnell asked.
“Huh? Yeah,
sure.”
“You looked sorta
funny for just a second there.”
Chuck Chatsworth
saying: if I didn't, I'd be afraid all those people he killed would haunt me to
my grave.
“Out
woolgathering, I guess,” Johnny said. “I want you to know it's been a pleasure
drinking with you.”
“Well, the same
goes back to you,” O'Donnell said, looking pleased. “I wish more people passing
through felt that way. They go through here headed for the ski resorts, you
know. The big places. That's where they take their money. If I thought they'd
stop in, I'd fix this place up like they'd like. Posters, you know, of
Switzerland and Colorado. A fireplace. Load the juke up with rock “n” roll
records instead of that shitkicking music I'd... you know, I'd like that. “He
shrugged. “I'm not a bad guy, hell.”
“Of course not,”
Johnny said, getting off the stool and thinking about the dog trained to sic,
and the hoped-for hippie junkie burglar.
“Well, tell your
friends I'm here,” O'Donnell said
“For sure,”
Johnny said.
“Hey Dick!” one
of the bar-bags hollered. “Ever hear of service-with-a-smile in this place?”
“Why don't you
get stuffed?” O'Donnell yelled at her, flushing.
“Fuck—YO U!”
Clarice called back, and cackled. Johnny slipped quietly out into the gathering
storm,
8.
He was staying at
the Holiday Inn in Portsmouth. When he got back that evening, he told the desk
clerk to have his bill ready for checkout in the morning.
In his room, he
sat down at the impersonal Holiday Inn writing desk, took out all the
stationery, and grasped the Holiday Inn pen. His head was throbbing, but there
were letters to be written. His momentary rebellion—if that was what it had
been—had passed. His unfinished business with Greg Stillson remained.
I've gone crazy,
he thought. That's really it. I've gone entirely off my chump. He could see the
headlines now.
PSYCHO SHOOTS N.
H. REP. MADMAN ASSASSINATES STILLS ON. HAIL OF BULLETS CUTS DOWN U. S.
REPRESENTATIVE IN NEW HAMPSHIRE.
And Inside View,
of course, would have a field day.
SELF-PROCLAIMED
“SEER” KILLS STILLSON, 12 NOTED PSYCHIATRISTS TELL WHY SMITH DID
IT. With a
sidebar by that fellow Dees, maybe, telling how Johnny had threatened to get
his shotgun and “shoot me a trespasser”.
Crazy.
The hospital debt
was paid, but this would leave a new bill of particulars behind, and his father
would have to pay for it. He and his new wife would spend a lot of days in the
limelight of his reflected notoriety. They would get the hate mail. Everyone he
had known would be interviewed—the Chatsworths, Sam, Sheriff George Bannerman.
Sarah? Well, maybe they wouldn't get as far as Sarah. After all, it wasn't as
though he were planning to shoot the president. At least, not yet. There's a
lotta people afraid to come right out and say it, but I'm not. I'll say it
right out loud. Some day Greg Stillson's apt to be president.
Johnny rubbed his
temples. The headache came in low, slow waves, and none of this was getting his
letters written. He drew the first sheet of stationery toward him, picked up
the pen, and wrote Dear Dad. Outside, snow struck the window with that dry,
sandy sound that means serious business. Finally the pen began to move across
the paper, slowly at first, then gaining speed.
CHAPTER
TWENTY-SEVEN
1.
Johnny came up
wooden steps that had been shoveled clear of snow and salted down. He went
through a set of double doors and into a foyer plastered with specimen ballots
and notices of a special town meeting to be held here in Jackson on the third
of February. There was also a notice of Greg Stillson's impending visit and a
picture of The Man Who himself, hard hat cocked back on his head, grinning that
hard slantwise “We're wise to em, ain't we, pard?” grin. Set a little to the
right of the green door leading into the meeting hall itself was a sign that
Johnny hadn't expected, and he pondered it in silence for several seconds, his
breath pluming white from his lips. DRIVER EXAMINATIONS TODAY, this sign read.
It was set on a wooden easel. HAVE PAPERS READY.
He opened the
door, went into the stuporous glow of heat thrown by a big woodstove, and there
sat a cop at a desk. The cop was wearing a ski parka, unzipped. There were
papers scattered across his desk, and there was also a gadget for examining
visual acuity.
The cop looked up
at Johnny, and he felt a sinking sensation in his gut”
“Can I help you,
sir?”
Johnny fingered
the camera slung around his neck. “Well, I wondered if it would be all right to
look around a little bit,” he said. “I'm on assignment from Yankee magazine.
We're doing a spread on town hall architecture in Maine, New Hampshire, and
Vermont. Taking a lot of pictures, you know.”
“Go right to it,”
the cop said. “My wife reads Yankee all the time. Puts me to sleep.”
Johnny smiled.
“New England architecture has a tendency toward... well, starkness.”
“Starkness,” the
cop repeated doubtfully, and then let it go. “Next, please.”
A young man
approached the desk the cop was sitting behind. He handed an examination sheet
to the cop, who took it and said, “Look into the viewer, please, and identify the
traffic signs and signals which I will show you.
The young man
peered into the viewing machine. The cop put an answer-key over the young man's
exam sheet. Johnny moved down the center aisle of the Jackson town hall and
clicked a picture of the rostrum at the front.
“Stop sign,” the
young man said from behind him. “The next one's a yield sign... and the next
one is a traffic information sign... no right turn, no left turn, like that...”
He hadn't
expected a cop in the town hall; he hadn't even bothered to buy film for the
camera he was using as a prop. But now it was too late to back out anyway. This
was Friday, and Stillson would be here tomorrow if things went the way they
were supposed to go. He would be answering questions and listening to suggestions
from the good people of Jackson. There would be a fair-sized entourage with
him. A couple of aides, a couple of advisors—and several others, young men in
sober suits and sports jackets who had been” wearing jeans and riding
motorcycles not so long ago. Greg Stillson was still a firm believer in guards
for the body. At the Trimbull rally they had been carrying sawedoff pool cues.
Did they carry guns now? Would it be so difficult for a U. S. representative to
get a permit to carry a concealed weapon? Johnny didn't think so. He could
count on one good chance only; he would have to make the most of it. So it was
important to look the place over, to try and decide if he could take Stillson
in here or if it would be better to wait in the parking lot with the window
rolled down and the rifle on his lap.
So he had come
and here he was, casing the joint while a state cop gave driver-permit exams
not thirty feet away.
There was a
bulletin board on his left, and Johnny snapped his unloaded camera at it—why in
God's name hadn't he taken another two minutes and bought himself a roll of
film? The board was covered with chatty small-town intelligence concerning
baked-bean suppers, an upcoming high school play, dog-licensing information,
and, of course, more on Greg. A file card said that Jackson's first selectman
was looking for someone who could take shorthand, and Johnny studied this as
though it were of great interest to him while his mind moved into high gear.
Of course if
Jackson looked impossible—or even chancy—he could wait until next week, where
Stillson would be doing the whole thing all over again in the town of Upson. Or
the week after, in Trimbull. Or the week after that. Or never.
It should be this
week. It ought to be tomorrow.
He snapped the
big woodstove in the corner, and then glanced upward. There was a balcony up
there. No—not precisely a balcony, more like a gallery with a waist-high
railing and wide, white-painted slats with small, decorative diamonds and
curlicues cut into the wood. It would be very possible for a man to crouch
behind that railing and look through one of those doodads. At the right moment,
he could just stand up and -'What kind of camera is that?”
Johnny looked
around, sure it was the cop. The cop would ask to see his filmless camera—and then
he would want to see some ID—and then it would be all over.
But it wasn't the
cop. It was the young man who had been taking his driver's permit test. He was
about twenty. two, with long hair and pleasant, frank eyes. He was wearing a
suede coat and faded jeans.
“A Nikon,” Johnny
said.
“Good camera,
man. I'm a real camera nut. How long have you been working for Yankee?”
“Well, I'm a free
lance,” Johnny said. “I do stuff for them, sometimes for Country Journal,
sometimes for Downeast, you know.”
“Nothing national,
like People or Life?”
“No. At least,
not yet. “What f-stop do you use in here?” What in hell is an f-stop.”
Johnny shrugged.
“I play it mostly by ear.”
“By eye, you
mean,” the young man said, smiling. “That's right, by eye. “Get lost, kid,
please get lost. “I'm interested in f,ree4andng myself,” the young man said,
and grinned. “My big dream is to take a picture some day like the flag-raising
at Iwo Jima.”
“I heard that was
staged,” Johnny said.
“Well, maybe.
Maybe. But it's, a classic. Or how about the first picture of a UFO coming in
for a landing? I'd sure like that. Anyway, I've got a portfolio of stuff I've
taken around here. Who's your contact at Yankee?”
Johnny was
sweating now. “Actually, they contacted me on this one,” he said. “It was a...”
“Mr. Clawson, you
can come over now,” the cop said, sounding impatient. “I'd like to go over
these answers with you.”
“Whoops, his
master's voice,” Clawson said. See you later, man. “He hurried off and Johnny
let out his breath in a silent, whispering sigh. It was time to get out, and
quickly.
He snapped
another two or three “pictures” just so it wouldn't look like a complete rout,
but he was barely aware of what he was looking at through the viewfinder. Then
he left.
The young man in
the suede jacket—Clawson—had forgotten all about him, He had apparently flunked
the written part of his exam. He was arguing strenuously with the cop, who was
only shaking his head.
Johnny paused for
a moment in the town hall's entryway. To his left was a cloakroom. To his right
was a closed door. He tried it and found it unlocked. A narrow flight of stairs
led upward into dimness. The actual offices would be up there, of course. And
the gallery.
I.
He was staying at
the Jackson House, a pleasant little hotel on the main drag. It had been
carefully renovated and the renovations had probably cost a lot of money, but
the place would pay for itself, the owners must have reckoned, because of the
new Jackson Mountain ski resort. Only the resort had gone bust and now the
pleasant little hotel was barely hanging on. The night clerk was dozing over a
cup of coffee when Johnny went out at four o'clock on Saturday morning, the
attache case in his left hand.
He had slept
little last night, slipping into a short, light doze after midnight. He had
dreamed. It was 1970 again. It was carnival time. He and Sarah stood in front
of the Wheel of Fortune and again he had that feeling of crazy, enormous power.
In his nostrils he could smell burning rubber.
“Come on,” a voice
said softly behind him, “I love to watch this guy take a beatin. “He turned and
it was Frank Dodd, dressed in his black vinyl raincoat, his throat slit from
ear to ear in a wide red grin, his eyes sparkling with dead vivaciousness. He
turned back to the booth, scared—but now the pitchman was Greg Stillson,
grinning knowingly at him, his yellow hard hat tipped cockily back on his
skull. “Hey-hey-hey,” Stillson chanted, his voice deep and resonant and
ominous, “Lay em down where you want em down, fella. What do you say? Want to
shoot the moon?”
Yes, he wanted to
shoot the moon. But as Stillson set the Wheel in motion he saw that the entire
outer circle had turned green. Every number was double-zero. Every number was a
house number.
He had jerked
awake and spent the rest of the night looking out the frost-rimmed window into
darkness. The headache he'd had ever since arriving in Jackson the day before
was gone, leaving him feeling weak but composed. He sat with his hands in his
lap. He didn't think about Greg Stillson; he thought about the past. He thought
about his mother putting a Band-Aid on a scraped knee; he thought about the
time the dog had torn off the back of Grandma Nellie's absurd sundress and how
he had laughed and how Vera had swatted him one and cut his forehead with the
stone in her engagement ring; he thought about his father showing him how to
bait a fishing hook and saying, It doesn't hurt the worms, Johnny at least, I
don't think it does. He thought about his father giving him a pocketknife for
Christmas when he was seven and saying very seriously, I'm trusting you)
Johnny. All those memories had come back in a flood.
Now he stepped
off into the deep cold of the morning, his shoes squeaking on the path shoveled
through the snow. His breath plumed out in front of him. The moon was down but
the stars were sprawled across the black sky in idiot's profusion, God's jewel
box, Vera always called it. You're looking into God's jewel box, Johnny.
He walked down
Main Street, and he stopped in front of the tiny Jackson post office and
fumbled the letters out of his coat pocket. Letters to his father, to Sarah, to
Sam Weizak, to Bannerman. He set the attache case down between his feet, opened
the mailbox that stood in front of the neat little brick building, and after
one brief moment of hesitation, dropped them in. He could hear them drop down
inside, surely the first letters mailed in Jackson this new day, and the sound
gave him a queer sense of finality, The letters were mailed, there was no
stopping now.
He picked up the
case again and walked on. The only sound was the squeak of his shoes on the
snow. The big thermometer over the door of the Granite State Savings Bank stood
at 3 degrees, and the air had that feeling of total silent inertia that belongs
exclusively to cold New Hampshire mornings. Nothing moved. The roadway was
empty. The windshields of the parked cars were blinded with cataracts of frost.
Dark windows, drawn shades. To Johnny it all seemed somehow dreadful and at the
same time holy. He fought the feeling. This was no holy business he was on.
He crossed Jasper
Street and there was the town hall, standing white and austerely elegant behind
its plowed banks of twinkling snow.
What are you
going to do if the front door's locked? Smart guy?
Well, he would
find a way to cross that bridge if he had to. Johnny looked around, but there
was no one to see him. If this had been the president coming for one of his
famous town meetings, everything would have been different, of course. The
place would have been blocked off since the night before, and men would be
stationed inside already. But this was only a U. S. representative, one of over
four hundred, no big deal. No big deal yet.
Johnny went up
the steps and tried the door. The knob turned easily and he stepped into the
cold entryway and pulled the door shut behind him. Now the headache was coming
back, pulsing along with the steady thick beat of his heart. He set his case
down and massaged his temples with his gloved fingers.
There was a
sudden low scream. The coat-closet door was opening, very slowly, and then
something white was falling out of the shadows toward him.
Johnny barely
held back a cry. For one moment he thought it was a body, falling out of the
closet like some-thing from a spook movie. But it was only a heavy cardboard
sign that read PLEASE HAVE PAPERS IN ORDER BEFORE APPEARING FOR EXAMINATION.
He set it back in
place and then turned to the doorway giving upon the stairs.
This door was now
locked.
He leaned down to
get a better look at it in the dim white glow of the streetlight that filtered
in the one window. It was a spring lock, and he thought he might be able to
open it with a coat hanger. He found one in the coat closet and hooked the neck
of it into the crack between the door and the jamb. He worked it down to the
lock and began to fumble around. His head was thudding fiercely now. At last he
heard the bolt snap back as the wire caught it. He pulled the door open. He
picked up his attache case and went through, still holding the coat hanger. He
pulled the door closed behind him and heard it lock again. He went up the
narrow stairs, which creaked and groaned under his weight.
At the top of the
stairs there was a short hallway with several doors on either side. He walked
down the hall, past TOWN MANAGER and TOWN SELECTMEN, past TAX ASSESSOR and
MEN'S and O'SEER OF THE POOR and LADIES”.
There was an
unmarked door at the end. It was unlocked and he came out onto the gallery
above the rear of the meeting hall, which was spread out below him in a crazy
quilt of shadows. He closed the door behind him and shivered a little at the
soft stir of echoes in the empty hall. His footfalls also echoed back as he
walked to the right along the rear gallery, then turned left. Now he was
walking along the right-hand side of the hall, about twenty-five feet above the
floor. He stopped at a point above the woodstove and directly across from the
podium where Stillson would be standing in about five-and-a-half hours.
He sat down
cros-legged and rested for a while. Tried to get in control of the headache
with some deep breathing. The woodstove wasn't operating and he felt the cold
settling steadily against him—and then into him. Previews of the winding
shroud.
When he had begun
to feel a little better, he thumbed the catches on the attache case. The double
dick echoed back as his footfalls had done, and this time it was the sound of
cocking pistols.
Western justice,
he thought, for no reason at all. That was what the prosecutor had said when
the jury found Claudine Longet guilty of shooting her lover. She's found out
what western justice means.
Johnny looked
down into the case and rubbed his eyes. His vision doubled briefly and then
things came together again. He was getting an impression from the very wood he
was sitting on. A very old impression; if it had been a photograph, it would
have been sepia-toned. Men standing here and smoking cigars, talking and
laughing and waiting for town meeting to begin. Had it been 1920? 1902? There
was something ghostly about it that made him feel uneasy. One of them had been
talking about the price of whiskey and cleaning his nose with a silver
toothpick and
(and two years
before he had poisoned his wife)
Johnny shivered.
Whatever the impression was, it didn't matter. It was an impression of a man
who was long dead now.
The rifle gleamed
up at him.
When men do it in
wartime, they give them medals, he thought.
He began to
assemble the rifle. Each click I echoed back, just once, solemnly, the sound of
a cocking pistol.
He loaded the Remington
with five bullets.
He placed it
across his knees.
And waited
3.
Dawn came slowly.
Johnny dozed a little, but he was too cold now to do more than doze. Thin,
sketchy dreams haunted what sleep he did get.
He came fully awake
at a little past seven. The door below was thrown open with a crash, and he had
to bite his tongue to keep from crying out, Who's there?
It was the
custodian. Johnny put his eye to one of the diamond shapes cut into the
balustrade and saw a burly man who was bundled up in a thick Navy pea coat. He
was coming up the center aisle with an armload of firewood. He was humming “Red
River Valley”. He dropped the armload of wood into the woodbox with a crash and
then disappeared below Johnny. A second later he heard the thin screcing noise
of the stove's firebox door being swung open.
Johnny suddenly
thought of the plume of vapor be was producing every time he exhaled. Suppose
the custodian looked up? Would he be able to see that?
He tried to slow
the rate of his breathing, but that made his head ache worse and his vision
doubled alarmingly.
Now there was the
crackle of paper being crumpled, then the scratch of a match. A faint whiff of
sulphur in the cold air. The custodian went on humming “Red River Valley”, and
then broke into loud and tuneless song: “From this valley they say you are
going... we will miss your bright eyes and sweet smiiiiile...”
Now a different
crackling sound. Fire.
“That's got it,
you sucker,” the custodian said from directly below Johnny, and then there was
the sound of the firebox door being slammed shut again. Johnny pressed both
hands over his mouth like a bandage, suddenly afflicted with suicidal
amusement. He saw himself rising up from the floor of the gallery, as thin and
white as any self-respecting ghost. He saw himself spreading his arms like
wings and his fingers like talons and calling down in hollow tones: “That's got
you, you sucker.”
He held the
laughter behind his hands. His head throbbed like a tomato full of hot,
expanding blood. His vision jittered and blurred crazily. Suddenly he wanted
very badly to move away from the impression of the man who had been cleaning
his nose with the silver toothpick, but he didn't dare make a sound. Dear
Jesus, what if he had to sneeze?
Suddenly, with no
warning, a terrible wavering shriek filled the hall, drilling into Johnny's
ears like thin silver nails, climbing, making his head vibrate. He opened his
mouth to scream. -It cut off.
“Oh, you whore,”
the custodian said conversationally.
Johnny looked
through the diamond and saw the custodian standing behind the podium and
fiddling with a microphone. The mike cord snaked down to a small portable amp.
The custodian went down the few steps from the podium to the floor and pulled
the amplifier farther from the mike, then fooled with the dials on top of it.
He went back to the mike and turned it on again. There was another feedback
whine, this one lower and then tapering away entirely. Johnny pressed his hands
tight against his forehead and rubbed them back and forth.
The custodian
tapped on the mike with his thumb, and the sound filled the big empty room. It
sounded like a fist knocking on a coffin lid. Then his voice, still tuneless,
but now amplified to the point of monstrosity, a giant's voice bludgeoning into
Johnny's head: “FROM THIS VAL-LEEE THEY SAY YOU ARE GOING...”
Stop it, Johnny
wanted to scream. Oh, please stop it, I'm going crazy, can't you stop it?
The singing ended
with a loud, amplified snap! and the custodian said in his own voice, “That's
got you, whore.”
He walked out of
Johnny's line of sight again. There was a sound of tearing paper and the low
popping sounds of twine being snapped. Then the custodian reappeared, whistling
and holding a large stack of booklets. He began to place them at close
intervals along the benches.
When he had
finished that chore, the custodian buttoned his coat and left the hall. The
door slammed hollowly shut behind him. Johnny looked at his watch. It was 7:
45. The town hall was warming up a little. He sat and waited. The headache was
still very bad, but oddly enough. it was easier to bear than it had ever been
before. All he had to do was tell himself that he wouldn't have to bear it for
long.
4.
The doors slammed
open again promptly at nine o'clock, startling him out of a catnap. His hands
clamped tightly over the rifle and then relaxed. He put his eye to the
diamond-shaped peephole. Four men this time. One of them was the custodian, the
collar of his pea coat turned up against his neck. The other three were wearing
topcoats with suits underneath. Johnny felt his heartbeat quicken. One of them
was Sonny Elliman. His hair was cut short now and handsomely styled, but the
brilliant green eyes had not changed.
“Everything set?”
he asked.
“Check for
yourself,” the custodian said.
“Don't be
offended, Dad,” one of the others replied. They were moving to the front of the
hall. One of them clicked the amplifier on and then clicked it off again,
satisfied.
“People round these
parts act like he was the bloody emperor,” the custodian grumbled.
“He is, be is,”
the third man said—Johnny thought he also recognized this fellow from the
Trimbull rally. “Haven't you got wise to that yet, Pop?”
“Have you been
upstairs?” Elliman asked the custodian, and Johnny went cold.
“Stairway door's
locked,” the custodian answered. “Same as always. I gave her a shake.”
Johnny silently
gave thanks for the spring lock on the door.
“Ought to check
it out,” Elliman said.
The custodian
uttered an exasperated laugh. “I don't know about you guys,” he said. “Who are
you expecting? The Phantom of the Opera?”
“Come on Sonny,”
the fellow Johnny thought he recognized said. “There's nobody up there, We just
got time for a coffee if we shag ass down to that resrunt on the corner.”
“That's not
coffee,” Sonny said. “Fucking mud is all that is. Just run upstairs first and
make sure no one's there, Moochie. We go by the book.”
Johnny licked his
lips and clutched the gun. He looked up and down the narrow gallery. To his
right it ended in a blank wall. To his left it went back to the suite of
offices, and either way it made no difference. If he moved, they would hear
him. This empty, the town hall served as a natural amplifier. He was stuck.
There were
footfalls down below. Then the sound of the door between the hall and the
entryway being opened and closed. Johnny waited, frozen and helpless. Just
below him the custodian and the other two were talking, but he heard nothing
they said. His head had turned on his neck like some slow engine and he stared
down the length of the gallery, waiting for the fellow Sonny Elliman had called
Moochie to appear at the end of it. His bored expression would suddenly turn to
shock and incredulity, his mouth would open: Hey Sonny, there's a guy up here!
Now he could hear
the muffled sound of Moochie climbing the stairs. He tried to think of
something, anything. Nothing came. They were going to discover him, it was less
than a minute away now, and he didn't have any idea of how to stop it from
happening. No matter what he did, his one chance was on the verge of being
blown.
Doors began to
open and close, the sound of each drawing closer and less muffled. A drop of
sweat spilled from Johnny's forehead and darkened the leg of his jeans. He could
remember each door he had come past on his way here. Moochie had checked TOWN
MANAGER and TOWN SELECTMEN and TAX ASSESSOR. Now he was opening the door of
MEN'S, now he was glancing through the office that belonged to the O'SEER OF
THE POOR, now the LADIES” room. The next door would be the one leading to the
galleries.
It opened.
There was the
sound of two footfalls as Moochie approached the railing of the short gallery
that ran along the back of the hall. “Okay, Sonny? You satisfied?”
“Everything look good?”
“Looks like a
fucking dump,” Moochie responded, and there was a burst of laughter from below.
“Well, come on
down and let's go for coffee,” the third man said. And incredibly, that was it.
The door slammed to. The footsteps retreated back down the hall, and then down
the steps to the first floor.
Johnny went limp
and for a moment everything swam away from him into shades of gray. The slam of
the entryway door as they went out for their coffee brought him partially out
of it.
Below, the
custodian presented his judgment: “Bunch of whores. “Then he left, too, and for
the next twenty minutes or so, there was only Johnny.
5.
Around 9: O A.
M., the people of Jackson began to file into their town hall. The first to
appear was a trio of old ladies dressed in formal black, chattering together
like magpies. Johnny watched them pick seats close to the stove—almost entirely
out of the field of his vision—and pick up the booklets that had been left on
the seats. The booklets appeared to be filled with glossy pictures of Greg
Stillson.
“I just love that
man,” one of the three said. “I've gotten his autograph three times and I'll
get it again today, I'll be bound.”
That was all the
talk there was about Greg Stillson. The ladies went on to discuss the impending
Old Home Sunday at the Methodist Church.
Johnny, almost
directly over the stove, went from very cold to very hot. He had taken
advantage of the slack tide between the departure of Stillson's security people
and the arrival of the first townfolk, using it to shed both his jacket and his
outer shirt. He kept wiping sweat from his face with a handkerchief, and the
linen was streaked with blood as well as sweat. His bad eye was kicking up
again, and his vision was constantly blurred and reddish.
The door below
opened, there was the hearty tromp-tromp-tromp of men stamping snow from their
pacs, and then four men in checked woolen jackets came down the aisle and sat
in the front row. One of them launched immediately into a Frenchman joke.
A young woman of about
twenty-three arrived with her son, who looked about four. The boy was wearing a
blue snowmobile suit with bright yellow markings, and he wanted to know if he
could talk into the microphone.
“No, dear,” the
woman said, and they went down behind the men. The boy immediately began to
kick his feet against the bench in front of him, and one of the men glanced
back over his shoulder,
“Sean, stop
that,” she said.
Quarter of ten
now. The door was opening and closing with a steady regularity. Men and women
of all types and occupations and ages were filling up the hall. There was a
drifting hum of conversation, and it was edged with an indefinable sense of
anticipation. They weren't here to quiz their duly-elected representative; they
were waiting for a bona-fide star turn in their small community. Johnny knew
that most “meet-your-candidate” and “meet-your-representative” sessions were
attended by a handful of die-hards in the nearly empty meeting halls. During
the election of 1976 a debate between Maine's Bill Cohen and his challenger,
Leighton Cooney, had attracted all of twenty-six people, press aside. The
skull-sessions were so much window-dressing, a self-testimonial to wave when
election time came around again. Most could have been held in a middling-sized closet.
But by 10 A. M., every seat in the town hall was taken, and there were twenty
or thirty standees at the back. Every time the door opened, Johnny's hands
tensed down on the rifle. And he was still not positive he could do it, no
matter what the stakes.
Five past, ten
past. Johnny began to think Stillson had been held up, or was perhaps not
coming at all. And the feeling which moved stealthily through him was one of
relief.
Then the door
opened again and a hearty voice called:
“Hey! How ya
doin, Jackson, N. H.?”
A startled,
pleased murmur. Someone called ecstatic-ally, “Greg! How are you?”
“Well, I'm
feeling perky,” Stillson came right back, “How the heck are you?”
A spatter of
applause quickly swelled to a roar of approval.
“Hey, all right!”
Greg shouted over it. He moved quickly down the aisle, shaking hands, toward
the podium.
Johnny watched
him through his loophole. Stillson was wearing a heavy rawhide coat with a
sheepskin collar, and today the hard hat had been replaced with a woolen ski
cap with a bright red tassel. He paused at the head of the aisle and waved at
the three or four press in attendance. Flashbulbs popped and the applause got
its second wind, shaking the rafters.
And Johnny Smith
suddenly knew it was now or never. The feelings he had had about Greg Stillson
at the Trimbull rally suddenly swept over him again with a certain and terrible
clarity. Inside his aching, tortured head he seemed to hear a dull wooden
sound, two things coming together with a terrible force at one single moment.
It was, perhaps, the sound of destiny. It would be too easy to delay, to let
Stillson talk and talk. Too easy to let him get away, to Sit up here with bis
head in his hands, waiting as the crowd thinned out, waiting as the custodian
returned to dismantle the sound system and sweep up the litter, all the time
kidding himself that there would be next week in another town.
The time was now,
indisputably now, and every human being on earth suddenly had a stake in what
happened in this backwater meetinghouse.
That thudding
sound in his head, like poles of destiny coming together.
Stillson was
mounting the steps to the podium. The area behind him was clear. The three men
in their open topcoats were lounging against the far wall.
Johnny stood up.
6.
Everything seemed
to happen in slow motion.
There were cramps
in his legs from sitting so long. His knees popped like dud firecrackers. Time
seemed frozen, the applause went on and on even though heads were turning,
necks were craning; someone screamed through the applause and still it went on;
someone had screamed because there was a man in the gallery and the man was
holding a rifle and this was something they had all seen on TV, it was a
situation with classic elements that they all recognized. In its own way, it was
as American as The Wonderful World of Disney. The politician and the man in a
high place with the gun.
Greg Stillson
turned toward him, his thick neck craning, wrinkling into creases. The red puff
on the top of his ski cap bobbed.
Johnny put the
rifle to his shoulder. It seemed to float up there and he felt the thud as it
socketed home next to the joint there. He thought of shooting partridge with
his dad as a boy. They had gone deer-hunting but the only time Johnny had ever
seen one he had not been able to pull the trigger; the buck fever had gotten
him. It was a secret, as shameful as masturbation, and he had never told
anyone.
There was another
scream. One of the old ladies was clutching her mouth and Johnny saw there was
artificial fruit scattered along the wide brim of her black hat, Faces turned
up to him, big white zeros. Open mouths, small black zeros. The little boy in
the snowmobile suit was pointing. His mother was trying to shield him.
Still-son was in the gunsight suddenly and Johnny remembered to flick off the
rifle's safety. Across the way the men in the topcoats were reaching inside
their jackets and Sonny Elliman, his green eyes blazing, was hollering:
Down! Greg, get
DOWN!”
But Stillson
stared up into the gallery and for the second time their eyes locked together
in a perfect sort of understanding, and Stillson only ducked at the same
instant Johnny fired. The rifle's roar was loud, filling the place, and the
slug took away nearly one whole corner of the podium, peeling it back to the
bare, bright wood. Splinters flew. One of them struck the microphone, and there
was another monstrous whine of feedback that suddenly ended in a guttural,
low-key buzzing.
Johnny pumped
another cartridge into the chamber and fired again. This time the slug punched
a hole through the dusty carpeting of the dais.
The crowd had
started to move, panicky as cattle. They all drove into the center aisle. The
people who had been standing at the rear escaped easily, but then a bottleneck of
cursing, screaming men and women formed in the double doorway.
There were
popping noises from the other side of the hall, and suddenly part of the
gallery railing splintered up in front of Johnny's eyes. Something screamed
past his ear a second later. Then an invisible finger gave the collar of his
shirt a flick. All three of them across the way were holding handguns, and
because Johnny was up in the gallery, their field of fire was crystal clear—but
Johnny doubted if they would have bothered overmuch about innocent bystanders
anyway.
One of the trio
of old women grabbed Moochie's arm. She was sobbing, trying to ask something.
He flung her away and steadied his gun in both hands. There was a stink of
gunpowder in the hall now. It had been about twenty seconds since Johnny had
stood up.
“Down! Down,
Greg!”
Stillson was
still standing at the edge of the dais, crouching slightly, looking up. Johnny
brought the rifle down, and for an instant Stilison was dead-bang in front
sight. Then a pistol-slug grooved his neck, knocking him backward, and his own
shot went wild into the air. The window across the way dissolved in a tinkling
rain of glass. Thin screams drifted up from below. Blood poured down and across
his shoulder and chest.
Oh, you're doing
a great job of killing him, he thought hysterically, and pushed back to the
railing again. He levered another cartridge into the breech and threw it to his
shoulder again. Now Stilison was on the move. He darted down the steps to
floor4evel and then glanced up at Johnny again.
Another bullet
whizzed by his temple. I'm bleeding like a stuck pig, he thought. Come on. Come
on and get this over.
The bottleneck at
the entryway broke, and now people began to pour out. A puff of smoke rose from
the barrel of one of the pistols across the way, there was a bang, and the
invisible finger that had flicked his collar a few seconds ago now drew a line
of fire across the side of Johnny's head. It didn't matter. Nothing mattered
except taking Stillson. He brought the rifle down again.
Make this one
count -Stillson moved with good speed for such a big man.
The dark-haired
young woman Johnny had noticed earlier was about halfway up the center aisle,
holding her crying son in her arms, still trying to shield him with her body.
And what Stillson did then so dumbfounded Johnny that he almost dropped the
rifle altogether. He snatched the boy from his mother's arms, whirled toward
the gallery, holding the boy's body in front of him. It was no longer Greg
Stillson in the front sight, but a small squirming figure in
(the filter blue
filter yellow stripes tiger stripes)
a dark blue
snowmobile suit with bright yellow piping. Johnny's mouth dropped open. It was
Stillson, all right. The tiger. But he was behind the filter now.
What does it
mean? Johnny screamed, but no sound passed his lips.
The mother
screamed shrilly then; but Johnny had heard it all somewhere before. “Tommy!
Give him to me!
TOMMY! GIVE HIM
TO ME, YOU BASTARD!”
Johnny's head was
swelling blackly, expanding like a bladder. Everything was starting to fade.
The only brightness left was centered around the notched gunsight, the gunsight
now laid directly over the chest of that blue snowmobile suit.
Do it, oh for
Christ's sake you have to do it he'll get away -And now—perhaps it was only his
blurring eyesight that made it seem so—the blue snowmobile suit began to
spread, its color washing out to the light robin's egg color of the vision, the
dark yellow stretching, striping, until everything began to be lost in it.
(behind the
filter. yes, he's behind the filter, but what does it mean? does it mean it's
safe or just that he's beyond my reach? what does it)
Warm fire flashed
somewhere below and was gone. Some dim part of Johnny's mind registered it as a
flashbulb.
Stilison shoved
the woman away and backed toward the door, eyes squeezed into calculating
pirate's slits. He held the squirming boy firmly by the neck and the crotch.
Can't. Oh dear
God forgive me, I can't.
Two more bullets
struck him then, one high in the chest, driving him back against the wall and
bouncing him off it, the second into the left side of his midsection, spinning
him around into the gallery railing. He was dimly aware that he had lost the
rifle. It struck the gallery floor and discharged point-blank into the wall.
Then his upper thighs crashed into the ballustrade and he was falling. The town
hall turned over twice before his eyes and then there was a splintering crash
as he struck two of the benches, breaking his back and both legs.
He opened his
mouth to scream, but what came out was a great gush of blood. He lay in the
splintered remains of the benches he had struck and thought: It's over. I
punked out. Blew it.
Hands were on
him, not gentle. They were turning him over. Elliman, Moochie, and the other
guy were there. Elliman was the one who had turned him over.
Stillson came,
shoving Moochie aside.
“Never mind this
guy,” he said harshly. “Find the son of a bitch that took that picture. Smash
his camera.
Moochie and the
other guy left. Somewhere close by the woman with the dark hair was crying out:
behind a kid,
hiding behind a kid and I'll tell every-body...”
“Shut her up,
Sonny,” Stillson said.
“Sure,” Sonny
said, and left Stillson's side.
Stillson got down
on his knees above Johnny. “Do we know each other, fella? No sense lying.
You've had the course.”
Johnny whispered,
“We knew each other.”
“It was that
Trimbull rally, wasn't it?”
Johnny nodded.
Stillson got up
abruptly, and with the last bit of his strength Johnny reached out and grasped
his ankle. It was only for a second; Stillson pulled free easily. But it was
long enough.
Everything had
changed.
People were
drawing near him now, but he saw only feet and legs, no faces. It didn't
matter. Everything had changed.
He began to cry a
little. Touching Stillson this time had been like touching a blank. Dead
battery. Fallen tree. Empty house. Bare bookshelves. Wine bottles ready for
candles.
Fading. Going
away. The feet and legs around him were becoming misty and indistinct. He heard
their voices, the excited gabble of speculation, but not the words. Only the
sound of the words, and even that was fading, blurring into a high, sweet
humming sound.
He looked over
his shoulder and there was the corridor he had emerged from so long ago. He had
come out of that corridor and into this bright placental place. Only then his
mother had been alive and his father had been there, calling him by name, until
he broke through to them. Now it was only time to go back. Now it was right to
go back.
I did it. Somehow
I did it. I don't understand how, but I have.
He let himself
drift toward that corridor with the dark chrome walls, not knowing if there
might be something at the far end of it or not, content to let time show him
that. The sweet hum of the voices faded. The misty brightness faded. But he was
still he—Johnny Smith—intact.
Get into the
corridor, he thought. All right.
He thought that
if he could get into that corridor, he would be able to walk.
PART THREE
Notes from the Dead
Zone
1.
Dear Dad,
Portsmouth, N. H.
January23, 1979
This is a
terrible letter to have to write, and I will try to keep it short. When you get
it, I guess I will probably be dead. An awful thing has happened to me, and I
think now that it may have started a long time before the car accident and the
coma. You know about the psychic business, of course, and you may remember Mom
swearing on her deathbed that God had meant for it to be this way, that God had
something for me to do. She asked me not to run from it, and I promised her
that I wouldn't—not meaning it seriously, but wanting her mind to be easy. Now
it looks as if she was right, in a funny sort of way. I still don't really
believe in God, not in a real Being who plans for us and gives us all little
jobs to do, like Boy Scouts winning merit badges on The Great Hike of Life. But
neither do I believe that all the things that have happened to me are blind
chance.
In the summer of
1976, Dad, I went to a Greg Stillson rally in Trim bull, which is in New
Hampshire's third district. He was running for the first time then, you may
recall. When he was on his way to the speaker's rostrum he shook a lot of
hands, and one of them was mine. This is the part you may find hard to believe,
even though you have seen the ability in action. l had one of my “flashes”,
only this one was no flash, Dad. It was a vision, either in the biblical sense
or in something very near it. Oddly enough, it wasn't as clear as some of my
other “insights” have been—there was a Puzzling blue glow over every-thing that
has never been there before—but it was incredibly powerful. I saw Greg Stillson
as president of the United States. How far in the future I can't say, except
that he had lost most of his hair. I would say fourteen years, or perhaps
eighteen at the most. Now, my ability is to see and not to interpret, and in
this case my ability to see was impeded by that funny blue filter, but l saw
enough. If Stillson becomes president, he's going to worsen an international
situation that is going to be pretty awful to begin with. If Stillson becomes
president, he is going to end up precipitating a full-scale nuclear war. I
believe that the initial flash point for this war is going to be in South
Africa. And I also believe that in the short, bloody course of this war, it's
not going to be just two or three nations throwing warheads, but maybe as many
as twenty—plus terrorist groups.
Daddy, I know how
crazy this must look. It looks crazy to me. But I have no doubts, no urge to
look back over my shoulder and try to second-guess this thing into something
less real and urgent than it is. You never knew -no one did—but l didn't run
away from the Chatsworths because of that restaurant fire. I guess I was
running away from Greg Stillson and the thing I am supposed to do. Like Elijah
hiding in his cave or Jonah, who ended up in the fish's belly. I thought I
would just wait and see, you know. Wait and see if the preconditions for such a
horrible future began to come into place. I would probably be waiting still,
but in the fall of last year the headaches began to get worse, and there was an
incident on the roadcrew I was working with. l guess Keith Strang, the foreman,
would remember that...
Excerpt from
testimony given before the so-called “Stillson Committee”, chaired by Senator
William Cohen of Maine. The questioner is Mr. Norman D. Verizer, the
Committee's Chief Counsel. The witness is Mr. Keith Strang, of 1421 Desert
Boulevard, Phoenix, Arizona. Date of testimony: August 17, 1979.
Verizer: And at this
time, John Smith was in the employ of the Phoenix Public Works Department, was
he not?
Strang: Yes, Sir,
he was.
V: This was early
December of 1978.
S: Yes, Sir.
V: And did
something happen on December 7 that you particularly remember? Something concerning
John Smith?
S: Yes, Sir. It
sure did.
V: Tell the
Committee about that, if you would.
S: Well, I had to
go back to the central motor pool to get two forty-gallon drums of orange
paint. We were lining roads, you understand. Johnny—that's Johnny Smith -was
out on Rosemont Avenue on the day you're talking about, putting down new lane
markings. Well, I got back out there at approximately four-fifteen—about
forty-five minutes before knocking-off time—and this fellow Herman Joellyn that
you've already talked to, he comes up to me and says, “You better check on
Johnny, Keith. Something's wrong with Johnny. I tried to talk to him and he
acted like he didn't hear. He almost run me down. You better get him straight.
“That's what he said. So I said, “What's wrong with him, Hermie?” And Hermie
says, “Check it out for yourself, there's something offwhack with that dude.
“So I drove on up the road, and at first everything was all right, and
then—wow!
V: What did you
see?
S: Before I saw
Johnny, you mean.
V: Yes, that's
right.
S: The line he
was putting down started to go haywire. Just a little bit at first—a jig here
and there, a little bubble—it wasn't perfectly straight, you know. And Johnny
had always been the best liner on the whole crew. Then it started to get really
bad. It started to go all over the road in these big loops and swirls. Some
places it was like he'd gone right round in circles a few times. For about a
hundred yards he'd put the stripe right along the dirt shoulder.
V: What did you
do?
S: I stopped him.
That is, eventually I stopped him. I pulled up right beside the lining machine
and started yelling at him. Must have yelled half a dozen times. It was like he
didn't hear. Then he swooped that thing toward me and put a helluva ding in the
side of the car I was driving. Highway Department Property, too. So I laid on
the horn and yelled at him again, and that seemed to get through to him. He
threw it in neutral and looked over at me. I asked him what in the name of God
he thought he was doing.
V: And what was
his response?
S: He said hi.
That was all. “Hi, Keith. “Like everything was hunky-dory.
V: And your
response was...?
S: My response
was pretty blue. I was mad. And Johnny is just standing there, looking all
around and holding onto the side of the liner like he would fall down if he let
go. That was when I realized how sick he looked. He was always thin, you know,
but now he looked as white as paper, and the side of his mouth was kind of...
you know... drawn down. At first he didn't even seem to get what I was saying.
Then he looked around and saw the way that line was—all over the road.
V: And he
said...?
S: Said he was
sorry. Then he kind of—I don't know -staggered, and put one hand up to his
face. So I asked him what was wrong with him and he said... oh, a lot of
confused stuff. It didn't mean anything.
Cohen: Mr.
Strang, the Committee is particularly interested in anything Mr. Smith said
that might cast a light on this matter. Can you remember what he said?
S: Well, at first
he said there was nothing wrong except that it smelled like rubber tires. Tires
on fire. Then he said, “That battery will explode if you try to jump it. “And
something like, “I got potatoes in the chest and both radios are in the sun. So
it's all out for the trees. “That's the best I can remember. Like I say, it was
all confused and crazy.
V: What happened
then?
S: He started to
fall down. So I grabbed him by the shoulder and his hand—he had been holding it
against the side of his face—it came away. And I saw his right eye was full of
blood. Then he passed out.
V: But he said
one more thing before he passed out, did he not?
S: Yes, Sir, he
did.
V: And what was
that?
S: He said,
“We'll worry about Stillson later, Daddy, he's in the dead zone now.”
V: Are you sure
that's what he said?
S: Yes, Sir, I
am. I'll never forget it.
3.
...and when I
woke up I was in the small equipment. shed at the base of Rosemont Drive. Keith
said I'd better get to see a doctor right away, and I wasn't to come back to work
until I did. I was scared, Dad, but not for the reasons Keith thought,. I
guess. Anyway, I made an appointment to see a neurologist that Sam Weizak had
mentioned to me in a letter he wrote in early November. You see, I had written
to Sam telling him that I was afraid to drive a car because I was having some
incidents of double vision. Sam wrote back right away and told me to go see
this Dr. Vann—said he considered the symptoms very alarming, but wouldn't
presume to diagnose long-distance.
I didn't go right
away. I guess your mind can screw you over pretty well, and l kept thinking
right up to the incident with the road-lining machine—that it was just a phase
I was going through and that it would get better. I guess I just didn't want to
think about the alternative. But the road-lining incident was too much. I went,
because I was getting scared—not just for myself, because of what I knew.
So I went to see
this Dr. Vann, and he gave me the tests, and then he laid it. out for me. It
turned out I didn't have as much time as I thought, because...
4.
Excerpt from
testimony given before the so-called “Stillson Committee”, chaired by Senator
William Cohen of Maine. The questioner is Mr. Norman D. Verizer, the
Committee's Chief Counsel. The witness is Dr. Quentin M. Vann, of 17 Parkland
Drive, Phoenix, Arizona. Date of testimony: August 22, 1979.
Verizer: After
your tests were complete and your diagnosis was complete, you saw John Smith in
your office, didn't you?
Vann: Yes. It was
a difficult meeting. Such meetings are always difficult.
Ve: Can you give
us the substance of what passed between you?
Va: Yes. Under
these unusual circumstances, I believe that the doctor-patient relationship may
be waived. I began by pointing out to Smith that he had had a terribly frightening
experience. He agreed. His right eye was still extremely bloodshot, but it was
better. He had ruptured a small capillary. If I may refer to the chart...
(Material deleted
and condensed at this point)
Ve: And after
making this explanation to Smith?
Va: He asked me
for the bottom line. That was his phrase; “the bottom line”. In a quiet way he
impressed me with his calmness and his courage.
Ve: And the
bottom line was what, Dr. Vann?
Va: Ah? I thought
that would be clear by now. John Smith had an extremely well-developed brain
tumor in the parietal lobe.
(Disorder among
spectators; short recess)
Ve: Doctor, I'm
sorry about this interruption. I'd like to remind the spectators that this
Committee is in session, and that it is an investigatory body, not a
freak-show. I'll have order or I'll have the Sergeant-at-Arms clear the room.
Va: That is quite
all right, Mr. Verizer.
Ve: Thank you,
Doctor. Can you tell the Committee how Smith took the news?
Va: He was calm.
Extraordinarily calm. I believe that in his heart he had formed his own
diagnosis, and that his and mine happened to coincide. He said that he was
badly scared, however. And he asked me how long he had to live.
Ve: What did you
tell him?
Va: I said that
at that point such a question was meaningless, because our options were all
still open. I told him he would need an operation. I should point out that at
this time I had no knowledge of his coma and his extraordinary—almost
miraculous—recovery.
Ve: And what was
his response?
Va: He said there
would be no operation. He was quiet but very, very firm. No operation. I said
that I hoped he would reconsider, because to turn such an operation down would
be to sign his own death-warrant.
Ve: Did Smith
make any response to this?
Va: He asked me
to give him my best opinion on how long he could live without such an
operation.
Ve: Did you give
him your opinion?
Va: I gave him a
ballpark estimate, yes. I told. him that tumors have extremely erratic growth
patterns, and that I had known patients whose tumors had fallen dormant for as
long as two years, but that such a dormancy was quite rare. I told him that
without an operation he might reasonably expect to live from eight to twenty
months.
Ve: But he still
declined the operation, is that right?
Va: Yes, that is
so.
Ve: Did something
unusual happen as Smith was leaving?
Va: I would say
it was extremely unusual.
Ve: Tell the
Committee about that, if you would.
Va: I touched his
shoulder, meaning to restrain him, I suppose. I was unwilling to see the man
leave under those circumstances, you understand. And I felt something coming
from him when I did... it was a sensation like an electric shock, but it was
also an oddly draining, debilitating sensation. As if he were drawing something
from me. I will grant you that this is an extremely subjective description, but
it comes from a man trained in the art and craft of professional observation.
It was not pleasant, I assure you I... drew away from him... and he suggested I
call my wife because Strawberry had hurt himself seriously.
Ve: Strawberry?
Va: Yes, that's
what he said. My wife's brother... his name is Stanbury Richards. My youngest
son always called him Uncle Strawberry when he was very small. That association
didn't occur until later, by the way. That evening I suggested to my wife that
she call her brother, who lives in the town of Goose Lake, New York.
Ve: Did she call
him?
Va: Yes, she did.
They had a very nice chat.
Ve: And was Mr.
Richards—your brother-in-law—was he all right?
Va: Yes, he was
fine. But the following week he fell from a ladder while painting his house and
broke” his back.
Ve: Dr. Vann, do
you believe John Smith saw that happen? Do you believe that he had a
precognitive vision concerning your wife's brother?
Va: I don't know.
But I believe that it may have been so.
Ve: Thank you,
Dr...
Va: May I say one
more thing?
Ve: Of course.
Va: If he did
have such a curse—yes, I would call it a curse—I hope God will show pity to
that man's tortured soul.
5.
and I know, Dad,
that people are going to say that I did what I am planning to do because of the
tumor, but Daddy, don't believe them. It isn't true. The tumor is only the
accident finally catching up with me, the accident which I now believe never
stopped happening. The tumor lies in the same area that was injured in the
crash, the same area that I now believe was probably bruised when I was a child
and took a fall one day while skating on Runaround Pond. That was when I had
the first of my “flashes”, although even now I cannot remember exactly what it
was. And I had another just before the accident, at the Esty Fair. Ask Sarah
about that one; I'm sure she remembers. The tumor lies in that area which I
always called “the dead zone”. And that turned out to be right, didn't it? All
too bitterly right. God... destiny providence... fate... whatever you want to
call it, seems to be reaching out with its steady and unarguable hand to put
the scales back in balance again. Perhaps l was meant to die in that car-crash,
or even earlier, that day on the Runaround. And I believe that when I've
finished what I have to finish, the scales will come completely back into
balance again.
Daddy, I love
you. The worst thing, next to the belief that the gun is the only way out of this
terrible deadlock I find myself in, is knowing that I'll be leaving you behind
to bear the grief and hate of those who have no reason to believe Stillson is
anything but a good and just man...
6.
Excerpt from
testimony given before the so-called “Stillson Committee”, chaired by Senator
William Cohen of Maine. The questioner is Mr. Albert Renfrew, the Committee's
Deputy Counsel. The witness is Dr. Samuel Weizak, of 26 Harlow Court, Bangor,
Maine.
Date of
testimony: August 23, 1979.
Renfrew: We are
now approaching the hour of adjournment, Dr. Weizak, and on behalf of the
Committee, I would like to thank you for the last four long hours of testimony.
You have offered a great deal of light on the situation.
Weizak: That is
quite all right.
R: I have one final
question for you, Dr. Weizak, one which seems to me to be of nearly ultimate
importance; it speaks to an issue which John Smith himself raised in the letter
to his father which has been entered into evidence. That question is...
W: No.
R: I beg your pardon?
W: You are
preparing to ask me if Johnny's tumor pulled the trigger that day in New
Hampshire, are you not?
R: In a manner of
speaking, I suppose...
W: The answer is
no. Johnny Smith was a thinking, reasoning human being until the end of his
life. The letter to his father shows this; his letter to Sarah Hazlett also
shows this. He was a man with a terrible, Godlike power perhaps a curse, as my
colleague Dr. Vann has called it—but he was neither unhinged nor acting upon
fantasies caused by cranial pressure—if such a thing is even possible.
R: But isn't it
true that Charles Witman, the so-called “Texas Tower Sniper”, had...
W: Yes, yes, he
had a tumor. So did the pilot of the Eastern Airlines airplane that crashed in
Florida some years ago. And it has never been suggested that the tumor was a
precipitating cause in either case. I would point out to you that other
infamous creatures -Richard Speck; the so-called “Son of Sam”, and Adolf
Hitler—needed no brain tumors to cause them to act in a homicidal manner. Or
Frank Dodd, the murderer Johnny himself uncovered in the town of Castle Rock.
However misguided this Committee may find Johnny's act to have been, it was the
act of a man who was sane. In great mental agony, perhaps—but sane.
7.
...and most of all,
don't believe that I did this without the longest and most agonizing
reflection. If by killing him I could be sure that the human race was gaining
another four years, another two, even another eight months in which to think it
over, it would be worth it. It's wrong, but it may turn out right. I don't
know. But I won't play
Hamlet any
longer. I know how dangerous Stillson is. Daddy, I love you very much. Believe
it.
Your Son,
Johnny
8.
Excerpt from testimony
given before the socalled “Stillson Committee”, chaired by Senator William
Cohen of Maine. The questioner is Mr. Albert Renfrew, the Committee's Deputy
Counsel. The witness is Mr. Stuart Clawson, of the Blackstrap Road in Jackson,
New Hampshire.
Renfrew: And you
say you just happened to grab your camera, Mr. Clawson?
Clawson: Yeah!
Just as I went out the door. I almost didn't even go that day, even though I
like Greg Stillson—well, I did like him before all of this, anyway. The town
hall just seemed like a bummer to me, you know?”
R: Because of
your driver's exam.
C: You got it.
Flunking that permit test was one colossal bummer. But at the end, I said what
the hell. And I got the picture. Wow! I got it. That picture's going to make me
rich, I guess. Just like the flag-raising on Iwo Jima.
R: I hope you
don't get the idea that the entire thing was staged for your benefit, young
man.
C: Oh, no! Not at
all! I only meant... well... I don't know what I meant. But it happened right
in front of me, and... I don't know. Jeez, I was just glad I had my Nikon,
that's all.
R: You just
snapped the photo when Stillson picked up the child?
C: Matt Robeson,
yessir.
R: And this is a
blowup of that photo?
C: That's my
picture, yes.
R: And after you
took it, what happened?
C: Two of those
goons ran after me. They were yelling “Give us the camera, kid! Drop it.
“Shi—uh, stuff like that.
R: And you ran.
C: Did I run?
Holy God, I guess I ran. They chased me almost all the way to the town garage.
One of them almost had me, but he slipped on the ice and fell down.
Cohen: Young man,
I'd like to suggest that you won the most important footrace of your life when
you outran those two thugs.
C: Thank you,
Sir. What Stillson did that day... maybe you had to be there, but... holding a
little kid in front of you, that's pretty low. I bet the people in New
Hampshire wouldn't vote for that guy for dog-catcher. Not for...
R: Thank you, Mr.
Clawson. The witness is excused.
9.
October again.
Sarah had avoided
this trip for a very long time, but now the time had come and it could be put
off no longer. She felt that. She had left both children with Mrs. Ablanap—they
had house-help now, and two cars instead of the little red Pinto; Walt's income
was scraping near thirty thousand dollars a year—and had come by herself to
Pownal through the burning blaze of late autumn.
Now she pulled
over on the shoulder of a pretty little country road, got out, and crossed to
the small cemetery on the other side. A small, tarnished plaque on one of the
stone posts announced that this was THE BIRCHES. It was enclosed by a rambling
rock wall, and the grounds were neatly kept. A few faded flags remained from
Memorial Day five months ago. Soon they would be buried under snow.
She walked
slowly, not hurrying, the breeze catching the hem of her dark green skirt and
fluttering it. Here were generations of BOWDENS; here was a whole family of
MARSTENS; here, grouped around a large marble memorial, were PILLSBURYS going
back to 1750.
And near the rear
wall, she found a relatively new stone, which read simply JOHN SMITH. Sarah
knelt
beside it,
hesitated, touched it. She let her fingertips skate thoughtfully over its
polished surface.
10.
Dear Sarah,
January 23, 1979
I've just written
my father a very important letter, and it took me nearly an hour and a half to
work my way through it. I just don't have the energy to repeat the effort, so I
am going to suggest that you call him as soon as you receive this, Go do it
now, Sarah, before you read the rest of this.
So now, in all
probability, you know. I just wanted to tell you that I've been thinking a lot
about our date at the Esty Fair just recently. If I had to guess the two things
that you remember most about it, I'd guess the run of luck I had on the Wheel
of Fortune (remember the kid who kept saying “I love to see this guy take a
beatin”?), and the mask I wore to fool you. That was supposed to be a big joke,
but you got mad and our date damn near went right down the drain. Maybe if it had,
l wouldn't be here now and that taxi driver would still be alive. On the other
hand, maybe nothing at all of importance changes in the future, and I would
have been handed the same bullet to eat a week or a month or a year later.
Well, we had our
chance and it came up on one of the house numbers—double zero, I guess. But I
wanted you to know that I think of you, Sarah. For me there really hasn't been
anyone else, and that night was the best night for us...
11.
“Hello, Johnny,”
she murmured, and the wind walked softly through the trees that burned and
blazed; a red leaf flipped its way across the bright blue sky and landed,
unnoticed, in her hair. “I'm here. I finally came.”
Speaking out loud
should have also seemed wrong, speaking to the dead in a graveyard was the act
of a crazy person, she would have said once. But now emotion surprised her,
emotion of such force and intensity that it caused her throat to ache and her
hands to suddenly clap shut. It was all right to speak to him, maybe; after
all, it had been nine years, and this was the end of it. After this there would
be Walt and the children and lots of smiles from one of the chairs behind her
husband's speaking podium; the endless smiles from the background and an
occasional feature article in the Sunday supplements, if Walt's political
career skyrocketed as he so calmly expected it to do. The future was a little
more gray in her hair each year, never going braless because of the sag,
becoming more careful about makeup; the future was exercise classes at the YWCA
in Bangor and shopping and taking Denny to the first grade and Janis to nursery
school; the future was New Year's Eve parties and funny hats as her life rolled
into the science-fictiony decade of the 1980s and also into a queer and almost unsuspected
state—middle age.
She saw no county
fairs in her future.
The first slow,
scalding tears began to come. “Oh, Johnny,” she said. “Everything was supposed
to be different, wasn't it? It wasn't supposed to end like this.”
She lowered her
head, her throat working painfully -and to no effect. The sobs came anyway, and
the bright sunlight broke into prisms of light. The wind, which had seemed so
warm and Indian summery, now seemed as chill as February on her wet cheeks.
“Not fair!” she
cried into the silence of BOWDENS and MARSTENS and PILLSBURYS, that dead
congregation of listeners who testified to nothing more or less than life is
quick and dead is dead. “Oh God, not fair!
“
And that was when
the hand touched her neck.
12.
...and that night
was the best night for us, although there are still times when it's hard for me
to believe there ever was such a year as 1970 and upheaval on the campuses and
Nixon was president, no pocket calculators,
no home video
tape recorders, no Bruce Springsteen or punk-rock bands either. And at other
times it seems like that time is only a handsbreadth away, that I can almost
touch it, that if I could put my arms around you or touch your cheek or the
back of your neck, I could carry you away with me into a different future with
no pain or darkness or bitter choices.
Well, we all do
what we can, and it has to be good enough... and if it isn't good enough, it
has to do. I only hope that you will think of me as well as you can, dear
Sarah. All my best,
and all my love,
Johnny
13.
She drew her
breath in raggedly, her back straightening, her eyes going wide and round.
“Johnny...?”
It was gone.
Whatever it had
been, it was gone. She stood and turned around and of course there was nothing there.
But she could see him standing there, his hands jammed deep into his pockets,
that easy, crooked grin on his pleasant-rather-than-handsome face, leaning
lanky and at ease against a monument or one of the stone gateposts or maybe
just a tree gone red with fall's dying fire. No big deal, Sarah—you still
sniffin that wicked cocaine?
Nothing there but
Johnny; somewhere near, maybe everywhere.
We all do what we
can, and it has to be good enough... and if it isn't good enough, it has to do.
Nothing is ever lost, Sarah. Nothing that can't be found.
“Same old
Johnny,” she whispered, and walked out of the cemetery and crossed the road.
She paused for a moment, looking back. The warm October wind gusted strongly
and great shades of light and shadow seemed to pass across the world. The trees
rustled secretly.
Sarah got in her
car and drove away.